Skip to main content

Full text of "Eleven select sermons"

See other formats


:<)o  «=>u^Yc^" 


<. 


rf^V-   I   '^«- 


ELEVEN  SELECT 


S  E  R  M  O  N  S, 


OF  THE  LATE 


Ref.  JAMES  SAUR  IN, 


ON 


VARIOUS  IMPORTANT  SUBJECTS. 


CG  NCO  RD : 
PRINTED  BY  GEORGE  HOUGH, 

FOR    CHARLES    PEinCE, 
PORTSMOUTH,    N.   IÎ, 


1B06. 


TTlli:  NEW  YORK 
PUBLIC  LTHTIARY 

Bâmm 

astor,  lenox  anp 
hldkn  f(5un  dations 

I  1940  L 


PREFACE. 


THE  Reverend  James  Sjuruv, 
the  author  of  the  enfuing  difcourles, 
was  born  at  Nifoies,  a  noted  city  of 
France,  in  1677.  His  father  was  a 
lawyer,  eminent  for  his  learning  and 
eloquence,  of  the  prate ftant  profef- 
llon,  who,  upon  the  revocation  of  the 
edid  of  Nantz,  retired  to  Geneva, 
where  he  ended  his  days.  James  re« 
moved  with  him,  and  was  educated 
under  fome  of  the  naoft  learned -and 
pious  profefibrs  of  the  age. 

Having  completed  his  ftudies,  in- 
1700  he  vifited  England,  where  he 
peiided  nearly  five  years,  and  was  re- 
markably acceptable  as  a  preacher 
among  his  fellow  exiles  in  the  city 
of  London. 

"  His  ftyle,"  fays  the  tranfiator  of 
his  fermons,  the  Reverend  Rcùeri 
Robinfon^  "  was  pure,  unafFeded,  and 
eloquent,  fometimes  plaîn,  fometimes 
flowery  ;  but  never  improper,  as  it 
was  always  adapted  to  the  audience 
for  whofe  fake  he  fpoke,'' 

In 


îv  PREFACE. 

In  1705,  a  chaplain  (111  p  to  fome 
of  the  nobiiity  at  the  Hague  was  of-. 
fered  him,  which  he  accepted.  Here 
he  continued  till  his  death.  He  was 
conftantly  attended  by  a  very  crowd- 
ed and  brilliant  aiTeinbly,  He  wa^ 
heard  with  the  utmofl:  attention,  and 
his  ininiderial  labors  were  abundant- 
ly blefTed  by  the  great  Head  of  the 
church. 

île  departed  this  life," for  a  better, 
on  the  30th  of  December,  1730,  at 
I  il  e  age  of  5  2 ,  ii  n  c  e  re  1  y  a  n  d  u  n  i  v  c  r  fal- 
iy  regretted  by  the  people  of  his 
charge,  and  by  all,  who  had  the ,  hap- 
pinejTs  of  an  acquaintance Àvith  him. 

Mr.  Saurin's  printed  fermons  are 
comprifed  in  twelve  volumes.  From 
thoie,  which  have  been  tranflatedy 
rliis  feleâ.ion  has  been  carefully  made 
by  a  gentleman  of  leifure,  judgment, 
and  tafle,  r  : 

To  thofe,  who  have  not  had  op- 
portunity for  pcrufing  thé  fermons 
of  this  celebrated  divine,  the  follow- 
ing recommendation  pnay  ootheuia* 
acceptable,      .l-.'j^:  :::  yA^:  '^:::!''r  'iv; 

approbation 


PREFACE.  V 

approbation  of  the  Walloon  Church  at 

'  Dort^    anphyed   by  the     Synod    of 

Utrecht^  to  examine  the  fermons  of 

Air,  Saurfu, 

**  WE  have  found  nothing  in  ali 
thefe  fermon%contrary  to  the  doctrine 
received  among  us.  We  have  re- 
marked eveiy  where,; a  manly,  el o- 
([uence  ;  a  clofe  reafontng  ;  an  im- 
aginatiopij  lively  and  proper,  to  eftab- 
Inh  tqe-Trutti  of  oar  hoi j  religion  ; 
and  to  e.-^plairi;  fubftaDtiaily  and  ele- 
gantly, the  doctrines  of  morality.  Ac- 
cordingly, we  believe  they  will  effec- 
tually contribute  to  edify  the  Church, 
and  to  render  more  and  more  refped:- 
able  the  memory  of  this  worthy  fer- 
vant  of  God  ;  whofe  death,  the  ex- 
amination of  his  v/orks,  hath  given 
us  a  frefli  occafion  to  lament.  We 
atteft  this  to  the  venerable  Synod  at 
Utrecht.  In  the  fame  fentiments,  we 
fend  the  prefent  atteftation  to  our  dear 
brother,  Mr.  Dumont,  paftor  and  pro- 
feflbr  at  Rotterdam,  whom  the  late 


vi  PREFACE. 

Mr.  Saurln  appointed,  by  his  will,  to 
take  the  charge  of  publifhing  fuch  of 
his  works  as  were  fit  for  the  prefs. 
Done  at  the  Conji/lory  of  the    WaU 
loon  Churchy  at  Dort ^  May  7.0th ^ 
1 73 1,    and  figned  by    order  of 
all,  by 
H.  G.  Certon,  Pajior, 
S.  Comperat,  Pajlor, 
Adrian  Bruets  Jacobz,  Elder^ 
John  Backris,  Elder. 
John  Van  Breda,  Deacon. 
^inuon  Taay  Van  Campen,  DcacJ^ 


CONTENTS. 

SERMON  I. 

The  OmniprcfenceofGod. 

PSALM   CXXXiX.  r,   8,  9,    10,    11,    12. 

Page  ......   17 

SERMON  IL 

The  Manner  of  praifing  God. 

Psalm  xxxiii*  1. 

Page  4r 

SERMON  III. 

The  Sovereignty  of  Jefiis  Chrift  in  the 

Church. 

KûMANs  xiv.  7,  8. 

Page ea 

SERMON  IV. 

The  Equality  of  Mankind, 

PaovfcKBS  xxii.  2. 

Page  ......  95 

SERMON  V. 

The  Worth  of  the  SouL 

^-ATTHEW    Xvi,    26. 

Page  ,   119 


vlii  C  O  N  T  E  N  T  S. 

SERMON  VÎ. 
The  Birth  of  Jeftis  Cbri/l. 

Isaiah    ix.   6,   7. 

'Page  144 

SERMON  VIL 

The  Rcfurrecfion  of  J  ejus  Chriji, 

Psalm   cxviii.    15,    16. 

Page  170 

SERMON  VIÎI. 

The    Ahfurdity    of   Libtrtmifm    and 
Lifdelity, 

Psalm   xciv.  7,   8,  9,    10. 

Page 197 

SERMON  IX. 

The  Harmony  of  Religion  and  Civil 
Polity, 

Proverbs  xiv.  34. 

Page 222 

SERMON  X. 

Chrifian  Heroifm* 
Proverbs  xvi.  32. 

Page  «.,...  254 

SERMON  XI. 

Gc7ieral  Mifakes, 

Pa^-e  .....*  2 re 


LIFE 

OF 

3î£r.   JAMES    SJURIK 


M 


R.  SAURIN,  the  father  of  our  a», 
thor,  was  an  eminent  proteftant  lawyer  at  Nifmcs, 
who,  after  the  repeal  of  the  edi6l  of  Nantz, 
1685,  retired  to  Geneva.  He  was  confidered  at 
Geneva  as  the  oracle  of  the  French  language,  the 
nature  and  beauty  of  which  he  thoroughly  under- 
ilood.  He  had  four  fons,  whom  he  trained  up  in 
learning,and  who  were  all  fo  remarkably  eloquent, 
that  eloquence  was  faid  -to  be  hereditary  in  the 
family.  The  Reverend  Lewis  Saurin,  0!?e  of  the 
Tons,  was  afterwards  pallor  of  a  French  church 
in  London.  Saurin,  the  father,  died  at  Geneva^ 
James,  the  author  of  the  following  fermons,  was 
born  at  Hifmes,  in  1677,  and  went  with  his  fa-» 
ther  into  exile,  to  Geneva,  where  he  profited  very 
much  in  learning. 

In  the  feven  tee  nth  year  of  his  age,  1694,  Sau* 
Tin  quitted  his  ftudies  to  go  into  the  army,  and 
made  a  campaign  as  a  cadet  in  lord  Galloway's 
company.  The  next  year,  1695,  his  captaiii 
gave  him  a  pair  of  colours  in  his  regiment,  which 
then  ferved  in  Piedmont  ;  but  the  yesr  after, 
1696,  the  duke  of  Savoy,  under  whom  Saur'rn 
ferved,  having  made  his  peace  with  France,  Sau- 
rin quitted  the  profelRon  of  arms,  for  which  he 
was  never  defigned,  and  returned  to  Geneva  to 
ftudy. 

Geneva  was,  at  that  time,  the  refidence  of  fomc 

of  the  befl:  fcholars  in  Europe,  who  were  in   the; 

highefl:  eflimation  in  the  republic  of  letters.     Pic« 

tet,  Lewis  Tronchin,  and  Philip  MeHrezat,  -were 

B  profclTors 


10  Life  oj 

prof(r{Tors  of  dlvinitj'  there  ;  Alphonfo  TiirretHi 
was  profeiïor  of  furred  hifto«y  ;  and  Choiiet,  who 
%vas  Aîfterwards  t?(ken  from  his  profelTorfhip,  and 
admitted  into  the  government  of  the  republic, 
■>vas  profeffor  of  natural  philofophy.  The  other 
clepai  tments  were  filled  with  men,  equally  emi- 
îient  in  their  feveral  profcffions.  Some  of  them 
were  natives  of  Geneva,  others  were  exiles  from 
Italy  and  France,  feveral  were  of  noble  families, 
and  all  of  them  were  men  of  eminent  piety. 
-Under  thefc  great  mafters,  Saurin  became  a  flu- 
dent,  and  particularly  applied  himfelf  to  divinity, 
as  he  now  began  to  think  of  devoting  himfelf  to 
the  miniflry,  1696.  To  dedicate  one's  felf  to 
the  minillry  in  a  wealthy,  flounr.iing  church, 
'where  rich  benefices  are  every  day  becoming  va- 
cant, lequires  very  little  virtue,  and  fomctimes 
only  a  (h-ong  propenfity  to  vice  ;  but  to  choofe 
to  be  a  minifler  in  fuch  a  poor,  banifhed,  perfe- 
futed  church  as  that  of  the  French  proteltants, 
argues  a  noble  contempt  of  the  world,  and  a  fu- 
preme  love  to  God  and  to  the  fouls  of  men. 
Thefe  are  the  beft  tellimonials,  however,  of  a 
young  minifter,  whofe  profefïion  is,  not  to  enrich, 
but  to  save  himself^  and  them  ivbo  hear  hhn^ 
I  Tim.  IV.   16. 

After  Mr.  Saurin  had  faiiHied  his  ftudies,  1700., 
he  vifited  Holland  and  England,  In  the  firft  he 
made  a  very  (hort  .{lay  ;  but  in  the  laft  he  (laid 
«Imoft  five  years,  and  preached  with  great  accept- 
ance among  his  fellow  exiles  in  London.  Of  his 
pcrfon  an  idea  may  be  formed  by  the  annexed 
copper-plate,  which  is  faid  to  be  a  great  likenefs, 
and  for  which  I  am  indebted  to  my  ingenious 
friend  Mr.  Thomas  Holloway.  His  drefs  was 
that  of  the  French  clergy,  the  gown  and  cafTock* 
His  addrefs  was  perfetlly  genteel,  a  happy  com- 
pound of  the  alFable  and  the  grave,  at  an  equal 
difVance  from  rufticity  and  foppery.  His  voice 
«ra?  Ilrong,  clear,  and  harmonious,  aad  he  never 


Êcv*  Jama  Saurin*  il 

ïbfi  the  man^tgement  of  it.  His  ftyle  was  pure, 
oiiafFetled,  and  eloquent,  fometiities  plain,  and- 
fometiiiies  flowery  ;  bat  never  improper,  as  it  was 
always  adapted  to  the  audience,  for  whofe  f^kc 
he  fpoke.  An  Italian  acquaintance  of  mirie,' 
^vho  often  heard  him  at  the  Hague,  tells  n)e,  thatf 
in  the  introductions  of  his  fermons  he  ufed  to 
deliver  hinaielf  in  a  tone  modefl:  and  low  ;  in  the 
body  of  thef  fermon,  which  was  adapted  to  the 
«nderftanding,  he  was  plain,  clear,  and  argu- 
jijentative,  paufihg''  at  the  dole  of  each  period, 
that  he  might  difcover,  by  the  countenances  and 
motions  of  his  hearers,  whether  they  were  con- 
vinced by  his  reaioning  ;  in  his  addreffes  to  the 
■wicked,  (and  it  is  a  folly  to  preach  as  if  there 
•were  none  in  our  afiemblies,  Mr.  Saurin  knew 
mankind  too  well)  he  was  often  fonorous^  bur  df- 
tener  a  weeping  fuppliant  at  their  feet.  In  the 
one  he  ftrftained  the  authoritative  dignity  of  his 
office,  in  the  other  he  exprcfTed  his  Mafter's  and 
lïis  own  benevolenee  to  bad  men,  praying  tbem 
in  Christ's  stead  to  be  reconciled- to  God»  2  Core 
V.  20.  In  general,  adds  my  friend^  his  preach- 
îng"  refembled  a  plentiful  fiiower  of  dew,  foftly 
and  imperceptibly  infinuating  itfelf  into  the  minds 
of  his  numerous  hearers,  as  the  dew  into  the  poreâ 
cf  plants,  till  the  whole  church  was  diffolved,  and 
all  in  tears  under  his  fermons.  His  dbdrine  was 
that  of  the  French  proteftants,  which,  at  that 
time,  was  moderate  calvinifm.  He  approved  of 
the  difcipline  of  his  own  churches*  which  was 
prefbyterian.  He  was  an  admirable  fcholar,  and^ 
•which  were  his  higheft  encomiums,  he  had  an 
unconquerable  averfion  lo  fin,  <)  fupreme  love  to 
God  and  to  the  fouls  of  men,  and  a  holy  unblem- 
iflied  life.  Certainly  he  had  fomc  faults  ;  but^ 
as  I  have  never  heard  of  any,  I  can  publiOi  none; 
During  his  ftay  in  England,  he  married  a  Mifs 
Catherine  Boyton,  in  1703,  by  whom  he  had  a 
fon,  named  Philip,  who  farrived  him  ;  but  wheth« 

cr 


jEHK 


12  Lift  of 

cr  ^e  had  any  more  children  I  know  not.  Tw« 
years  after  his  marriage  he  returned  to  Holland, 
in  1705,  where  he  had  a  irind  to  fettle  ;  but,, 
the  paftoral  ofiices  bcinj  all  full,  and  meeting 
with  no  prolpedi  of  a  fettlemcnt,  though  his 
preaching  was  received  with  univerfal  applaufe, 
he  was  preparing  to  return  to  England,  >»faen  a 
chaplainfhip  to  fonie  of  the  nobility  at  the  Hague, 
with  a  rtipend,  was  offered  to  him.  This  fitua- 
tion  exatily  fuited  his  withes,  and  he  accepted 
the  place- 

The  ^ague,  it  is  faid,  is  the  finefl  village  iu 
"Europe,  It  is  the  refidencc  of  the  States  Gen- 
eral, of  ambaffadors  and  envoys  from  other 
courts,  of  a  great  number  of  nobility  and  gentry, 
and  of  a  multitude  of  French  refugees.  The 
princes  of  Orange  have  a  fpacious  palace  here, 
and  the  chapel  cf  the  palace  was  given  to  the 
refugees  for  a  place  of  public  wovlhip  ;  and,  it 
being  too  fmall  to  contain  them,  it  was  enlarged 
by  above  a-  hîiîf.  This  French  church  called  hini 
to  be  one  of  their  paRors.  He  accepted  the  call, 
and  continued  in  his  office  till  his  death.  He 
was  conftantly  attended  by  a  very  crowded  and 
brilliant  audience,  was  heard  with  the.utmoft  at» 
tention  and  pleafurc,  and,  what  few  miniftcr?  can 
fay,  the  effc^cfls  of  his  minifterial  labours  were- 
feen  in  the  holy  lives  of  great  numbers  of  his 
people. 

When  the  princefs  ef  Wales,  afterward  Queen- 
tHaroIine,  pafTed  through  Holland  in  her  way  tq 
England,  Mr.  Saurin  had  the  honour  of  paying 
his  refpeils  to,  that  illuftrioijs  lady.  Her  royal 
highncfs  wui  pleafed  to  fingle  him  out  from  the 
refi  of  the  clergy,  who  were  prefent,  and  to  fay 
to  him,,  "  Do  not  imagine  that,  being  dazzled 
with  the  glory  which  this  revolution  feems  to 
promife  me,  I  have  loft  fight  of  that  God  from 
whom  it  proceeds.  He  hath  been  pleafed  to  dif- 
linguifh  it  with  fo  many   c:ctrdc;diuary  marks, 

that 


Rcy.  y  âmes  Saurin.  13 

that  I  cannot  miftake  his  divine  hand  ;  and,  as  I 
confider  this  long  irain  of  favours  as  immediate- 
ly coming  from  him,  to  him  alone  I  confeciate 
them."  It  is  not  alîonilhing,  that  Saurin  fpealw 
of  condefcenfion  with  rapture.  They  are  the 
kind  and  chriftian  allions  of  the  governors  of  il 
free  people,  and  not  the  haughty  airs  of  a  French 
tyrant,  infuiting  his  flaves,  that  attach  and  iw- 
flame  the  hearts  of  mankind*  The  hiftory  of  this 
lUuftrious  chriftian  queen  is  not  \Yritten  in  bloody 
and  therefore  it  is  always  read  wiUi  tears»  of 
grateful  joy. 

Her  royal  highiiefs  was  fo  well  fatiified  of  Mr» 
Saurin's  merit,  that  foon  after  her  arrival  in 
England  Ihe  ordered  Dr,  Boulter,  who  was  pre- 
ceptor to  prince  Frederick,  the  favHer  of  his  pref- 
cnt  majçfty,  to  write  to  Sautin,  to  draw  up  a 
treatife  on  the  education  of  princes,  Saurin  im- 
mediately obeyed  the  order,  and  preExed  a  dcdi*. 
cation  to  the  young  princes.  The  book  was 
Mcver  printed  ;  but  as  it  obtained  the  approba- 
tion of  the- princefs  of  Wales;  wha  was  an  irr- 
comparable  judges  we  may  conclude  tha-t  it  was 
excellent  in  its  kind»  This  was  followed  by  â 
Landfome  preient  from  the  princefs  to- the  author. 

His  moil  confiderable  work  was  entitled, D;V- 
cuurses^,  historical^  critical^  and  morale  on  the 
7]wst'  memorabie  events  of 'the  old'  and'new  testom 
ment.  This  work  was  undertaken  by  the  dcfire 
©f  à  Dutch  merchant,  who  e:^pendtd  an  immenfe 
fum  in  the  engraving  of  a  multitude  of  copper- 
plates, which  adorn  the  work.  It  conliils  of  fix 
folio  volumes.  Mr.  Saurin  died  before  the  third 
■was  finiflied  ;  but  Mr,  Roques  finifhed  the  third, 
and  added  a  fourth  on  the  old  teflamrnt  ;  and 
Mr.  de  Beauibbre  fubjolned  two  on  the  new  tef- 
tament.  The  whole  is  replete  with  very  exteii- 
live  learning,  and  well  worth  the  careful  perufal 
«fHudents  in  divinity.     The  fir U   of  theie   was 

B  2  tranilate4 


14  Lift  of 

irai){îa.ted    into  Engliibby,  Chamberlayne,    foon 
after  ks  firft  publication  in  French. 

Our  author's  dissertation  on  the  expedience  of 
sometimes  disguising  the  trutby  raifed  a  furious 
clamour  agp.inll  him.  He  does  not  decide  the 
queftion  ;  but  he  feems  to  take  the  aiirmativc* 
Xhis  produced  a  paper  war,  and  his  auiagonifts 
unjudly  cenfured  his  morals.  The  mildnefs  of 
ins  difpofition  rendered  him  n  dcfuable  opponent, 
for  though  he  was  furc  to  conquer,  yet  he  fub* 
cued  his  adverfary  fo  handfoniely,  that  the  cap- 
tive was  the  better  for  his  defeat.  But  others 
did  not  controvert  "with  fo  much  temper.  Some 
■wrote  againft  him,  others  for  him.  At  length- 
the  fynod  decided  the  difpute  in  his  favour. 

He  publifhed  a  fmall,  but  valuable  piece,  on 
the  state  of  Christianity  in  Fronce*  It  treats  of 
many  important  points  of  religion,  in  controverfy 
between  catholics  and  proieflants.  There  is  alfo 
a  fmall  catechism  of  his  publifhing,  "which  I 
think  worth  the  attention  of  fuch  as  educate 
children  in  the  firfl  principles  of  religion. 

There  are  twelve  volumes  of  his  fermons, 
3orae  are  dedicated  to  his  maje fly  George  II.  and 
tlw.  king  was  pleafed  to  allow  him  a  handfomc 
penfion.  Some  to  her  majefty  Queen  Caroline^ 
while  file  was  princcfs  of  Wales.  One  to  count 
Waffanaer,  a  Dutch  nobleman.  Two  \v«re  ded-- 
icatcd  to  her  majefty,  after  his  deceafe,  by  his 
ion.  Profeffor  Domont,  and  Mr.  HufVon,  to; 
whom  Mr.  Saurin  left  his  manufcripts,  publilhed 
the  reft,  and  one  volume  is  dedicated  to  the. 
epunttfs  Dowager  of  Albemarle.  The  Englifii 
ieem  therefore  to  have  a  right  to  the  labours  of 
this  great  man. 

Mr.  Saurin  died  at  the  Hague,  on  Dec.  SOth, 
1730,  aged  53,  moft  finccrtly  regretted  by  all 
his  acquaintances,  as  well  as  by  his  church,  who 
lo(l  m  him  a  truly  primitive  chrtllian  niiniftcr, 


Rev.  Jamtî  Saurini  i^, 

who  fpent  his  life  in  watching  over  his  flock,  as 
one  who  knew  he  muft  give  an  account. 

In  regard  to  this  tranflation,  it  was  firft  under- 
taken by  the  délire  of  a  fmall  circle  of  private 
friends^  for   our   mutual   edification.-    If  i  have 
fuffered  ray  private  opinion  to  be  prevailed  over- 
by  others  to  print  this  tranflation,  it  is  not  be- 
caufe  I  think   myfelf  able  to  give   language   to- 
Saurin  ;  but  becaufe  I  humbly  hope  that  the  fen- 
tinients  of  the  author  may^  be  conveyed   to   the. 
reader  by  it.     His  fentiments,   1  think,   are,   in 
general,  thofe  of  the  holy  fcripture,  and  his  man- 
ner of  treating   them   well   adapted   to   imprefs 
them  on  the  heart.     I  have  endeavoured  not  to 
difguife  his    meaning,   though  I  have    not  been 
;vblc  to  adopt  his  ftyle  j  for  which  defecSl,  though 
1  print  them  by  private  fubfcription,  for  the  wfe 
of  my  friends,  on  whofe  candour  Idepend,  yet  I 
do  not  offer  to  publifli  them  to  the  world  for  the 
language   of  Mr.   Saurin»     I   fhould   have  been 
glad  to  have  plcafed  every  fubfcriber^   by  infert- 
ing  thofe  fermons,  which  were  moft  agreeable^ta- 
him,  had  I  known  which  they  were  ;  but  as  this^ 
"was  impofiiblc,  I  have  followed   my  own   jodg, 
ment,  or   perhaps  cxpofed  my  want  of  it.     The; 
full  volume  aims  to  fecure  the  doArine  of  a  God,  . 
•.^gainft^  the  attacks  of  atheifts.     In  the  fécond,, 
we  tnean  to  plead  for  the  holy  scriptures  againft 
âcifts.      In   the    third,  we  intend  to  take  thofe 
fermons,  which  treat  of  the  doctrines  of  chris^ 
tianity,  as  v/e  humbly  conceive  that  the  new  tef* 
tament  is  fometbing  more  than  a  fyftem  of  moral  : 
philofophy.     And  the  laft  volume  we  dedicate  to» 
moral  fubjc£ts,   becaufe  we  think  chriûianity  a 
holy,  religion,  productive  of  moral  obedience  in 
all  its  true  difciplcs.     To  this  fécond  edition  a 
Jiftb.  volume  is  added  on   mifcellaneous   fubjed\s* 
May,  the  God  of' all  grace  blefs   the    revading   of 
them  tothc  weakening  of  the  dominion  of  fin^ 
and  to  the  advancement  of,  the  kingdom  of.  ouj? 
blcfrc4  Redeemer,  Jefus  Ghrifti 


SERMONS.. 


•ÎS-- 


SERMON    L 

THE   OMNIPRESENCE  OF  GOD. 

Psalm  cxxxix.  7,  8,  9,  10,  11,  i3. 

Whither  shall  I  go  from  thy  spirit  ?  or  whither 
shall  I  fiee  from  thy  presence  ?  If  I  ascend: 
tip  into  heaven^  thou  art  there  ;  If  I  make  my 
led  in  helly  behold  thou  art  there.  If  /  tak^ 
the  wings  of  the  morning,  and  dwell  in  the  ut" 
termost  parts  of  the  sea,  eiyen  there  shîiU  thy 
hand  lead  me,  and  thy  right  hand  shall  holâl 
me»  If  I  say,  Surely  the  darkness  shall  cover 
me  :  even  the  night  shall  he  light  aBout  me* 
Tea  the  darkness  hideth  not  from  thee  ;  but  tb'e^ 
night  shineth  as  the  day  :  the  darkness  andthE: 
light  arc  both  alike  to  thee.. 

Gould  I  have  one  wifii,  to  anfwcifr 
wy  propolcd  end  of  preaching  to-day  with  effica- 
cy, chrifliansr,  it  fhould  be  to  fhew  you  God  in 
this  affembly..  Mofes  had  fuch  an  advantage,  no 
man  therefore  ever  fpokc  with  greater  fuccefs. 
He  gave  the  law  to  the  people,  in  God  the  legif- 
lator's  prfifence..  He  could  fay,  This  law  which 
I  give  you,  proceeds  from  God  :  here  is  his  throne, 
there  is  his  lightning,  yonder  is  his  thunder. 
Accordingly,  never  were  a  people  more  ftruck 
>yith  a  legillator's  voice.  Mofes  had  hardly  be- 
gun to  fpeak,  but,  at  lead  for  that  moment,  all 
hearts  were  united,  and  all  Sinai  echoed  with 
one  voice,  crying,  "  All  that  thou  liafl  fpokeii 
wc  will  do."    £xod,  xix.  8. 

But. 


i'8^^'    The  Omnipresence  of  Goal 

But  in  vain  are  our  fermons  drawrt  from  the" 
fa  c  red  four  ces  :  in  vain  do  we  fay  to  you,  Thus 
jaiib  the  Lord  :  you  fee  only,  a  man  ;  you  hear 
«nly  a  mortal  voice  in  this  pulpit  ;  God  hath  put 
kis  treasure  into  fnm.?^tn' vessels  y  2  Cor.  iv.  7-- 
and  our  auditors,  edi mating  the  treafure  by  the 
Tiieannefs  of  the  veffrl,  inftcad  of  fupporting  the 
«leannefs  of  the  veiTcI  for  the  fhke  of  the  treaf- 
ure,  hear  us  without  refpe^V,  and,  generally,  de- 
rive no  advantage  from  the  miniitry. 

But  were  God  preient  in  this  aiTembly,  could 
we  Ihew  yoir  the  Deity  amongft  you,  authorizing 
«ur  voice  by  his  approbation  and  prefence,  and 
examining  with  what  difpofitions  you  hear  his 
■word  which  of  you,  which  of  you,  my  brethren» 
could,  reufi  fo  eminent  and  fo  noble  a  motive  ? 

Chrillians,  this  idea  is  not  deftitute  of  rtaliiy  :  ■ 
God  is  every  wh^re  ;   he  is  in  this  church.-.  Vails 
of  fielh   and    blood   prevent  your  Cght-of  him  ;" 
thefe  mufk  fall,   and  you  muft  open  tiie  eyes  of 
your  fpirits,  if  you   would  fee  a  Gody   who  is  s. 
spirit,    John  iv.  24.      Hear  ouiv>  prophet  ;   hear 
his  magnificent  defcription  of  th5>  iramenfuy  and 
omniprefence    of    God,      "Whither    fhall    I   go 
from  thy  fpirit  ?   or  whithçr  fhall  I  flee  from  thy 
pre  fen  ce  ?     If  I  afcend  up  into  heaven,  thou  art 
there;   if  I  make  my  bed  in    hell,  behold,   thou 
art  there.      If  I.take  the  wings  of  the   morning, 
and  dwell  in  the  uttermoft  parts  of. the  fea  ;  even 
.there  Aî-iiH  thy  hand  lead  mc,  and  thy  right  hand" 
iliail   hold    me,^    If   I    fay,   Surely    the- darknefs  ■ 
llviil  cover  me  ;    even    the    night    fhall    be-  light'- 
about  me»     Yea  the    d.arkncfs    hideth    not    from 
thee  ;    but  the    night   (liinçth  as  the  day  :    the  • 
darknefs  and  the  light  are  both  alike  to  thee." 

In  a  text  lel^  abundant  in  riches,  we  might 
make  fome  remarks  on  the  terms  spirit  2Lndpres~ 
ence  ;  but  we  will  content  ourfelves  at  prefent 
•with  indicating  what  ideas  we  affix  to  them,  hv 
oblervinç,  that  by  the  s^jirit'ind  preseiice  of  God, . 

we 


*Fhe  Omni'pye$ence  of  G&d,         -é^ 

■^we  underhand  God  himfelf.  I  know,  Torae  dU 
;"vines  dilcover  great  myfteries  in  thefe  terms,  and 
jtell  us  that  there  are  lome  pafTag-es  in  fcripture 
•tvhere  the  v/ord  presence  means  the  fécond  per- 
fon  in  the  mod  holy  Trinity,  and  where  the  term 
spirit  is  certainly  to  be  underftood  of  the  third» 
But  as  there  are  fome  pafTages  where  thefe  terms 
have  not  this  fignification,  it  is  beyond  all  doubt 
.that  this,  which  vife  are  explaining,  ,is  precilely 
cf  the  latter  kind.  However,  if  any  Qifpute  our 
comment,  we  fliall  leave  them  to  difpute  it  ;  for 
it  would  be  unjuft  to  confume  that  time,  which 
is  dedicated  to  the  edification  of  a  -whole  congre- 
gation, in  refuting  a  particular  opinion.  The 
bther  exprefîions  in  our  text,  heaven^  bell  ;  the 
loings  of  the  mornings  a  figurative  expreifion, 
denoting  the  rapidity  of  the  light  in  communi- 
cating itfelf  from  cne  end  of  the  world  to  the 
other  J  thefe  exprefnons,  I  fay,  need  no  com- 
ment, Thç  presenc€  of  God,  the  spirit  of  God, 
fignify  tV^n  the  divine  elTence  ;  and  this  affem- 
b'lage  of  ideas,  tvhither  shall  I  go  from  thy  spir- 
it  ?  wbitber  shall  I  flee  from  thy  prcsejice  f 
means,  that'God  is  immenfe,  and  that  he  is  pref- 
iCnt  in  -every  jilace. 

ïBut  wherein  confifts  tiiis  immenHty  and  omnî- 
prefenee  ?  If  ever  a  queftion  required  develop- 
ing, this  certainly  does  ;  not  only  bec^ufe  it  pre- 
sents to  the  mind  an  abftradl  fubje6l,  which  does 
rot  fall  under  the  obfervatlon  of  the  fenfcs,  but 
becaufe  many  who  have  treated  this  matter,  (par- 
don'an  opinion  which  does  not  proceed  from  a 
defire  of  oppofing  any  individual,  but  only  frocn 
a  love  to  the  truth)  many  who  have  handled  the 
fubjedl,  have  contributed  more  to  perplex,  than 
to  explain  it.  We  may  obfcrve,  in  general, 
that,  unlefs  we  be  wholly  unacquainted  with  the 
hiflory  of  the  fciences,  it  is  impoffible  not  to  ac- 
knowledge, that  all  quellions  about  the  nature  of 
fpirits,  all  that  are  any  way  related  to  metaphyf- 

ics^ 


«o         The  Omnipresence  of  God» 

ÎCS,  were  very  little  underftood  before  the  time 
OÎ  that  celebrated  philofopher,  whom  God  feems 
to  have  bellowed  on  the  wodd  to  purify  reafon, 
as  he  had  feme  time  before  raifcd  up  others  to 
purify  religion.* 

What  heaps  of  crude  and  indigefted  notions 
do  we  find,  among  the  fchoolmen,  of  the  immen- 
fity  of -God  ?  One  faid,  God  was  a  point,  indi- 
"«iiîble  indeed,  but  a  point,  however,  that  had 
*he  peculiar  property  of  occupying  every  part  of 
the  univerfe.  Another,  that  God  was  the  place 
of  all  beings,  the  immenfe  extent  in  which  his 
power  had  placed  them.  Another,  that  his  ef- 
fence  was  really  in  heaven,  but  yet,  repletivelyj 
as  they  exprefs  it,  in  every  part  of  the  univerfe. 
In  fhort,  this  truth  hath  been  obfcured  by  the 
groffeft  ignorance.  Whatever  averfion  we  have 
to  the  decifive  tone,  we  will  venture  to  afiFinn, 
that  people,  who  talked  in  this  manner  of  God, 
had  no  ideas  therafelves  of  what  they  advanced. 

Do  not  be  afraid  of  our  conduding  you  into 
thefe  wild  mazes  ;  do  not  imagine  that  we  will 
bufy  ourfelves  in  expofing  all  thefe  notions,  for 
the  fake  of  labouring  to  refute  them.  We  will 
content  ourfelves  with  giving  you  fonie  light  in- 
to the  omniprcfence  of  God  : 

T.  By  removing  thofe  falfe  ideas,  which,  at 
firft,  fecm  to  prefent  thcmlelves  to  the  imagina- 
tion ; 

II.    By  affigning  tbe  true. 

I.  Let  us  remove  the  falfe  ideas,  which,  at 
firft,  prefent  themfelves  to  the  imagination  ;  as 
if,  when  we  fay  that  God  is  prefent  in  any  place, 
we  mean  that  he  is  adually  contained  therein  ; 
as  if,  when  we  fay  that  God  is  in  every  place,  we 
mean  to  afîîgn  to  him  a  real  and  proper  extcn« 


on. 


•  The  philofopher  Intended  by  Mr.  S.  I  fnppofe,  is 
his  countryman  Dçfcartes»  born  in  15^6.  Vie  de  Defc« 
parBaillct. 


Tilt  Omnipresence  of  God.         21 

fion.  Neither  of  thcfc  is  défigned  ;  and  to  re- 
move  thefe  ideas,  my  brethren,  two  refle£lions 
are  fufficient. 

God  is  a  fpirit.  A  fpirit  cannot  be  in  a  place, 
at  leaft  in  the  manner  in  which  we  conceive  of 
place. 

1.  God  is  a  fpirit.  What  relation  can  yoa 
find  between  wifdom,  power,  mercy,  and  all  the 
other  attributes,  which  enter  into  your  notion  of 
the  divinity,  and  the  nature  of  bodies  ?  Pulver- 
ize matter,  give  it  all  the  different  forms  ot 
"which  it  is  fufceptible,  elevate  it  to  its  higheft 
degree  of  attainment,  make  it  vafl  and  immenfe, 
moderate  or  fmall,  luminous  or  obfcivre,  opaque 
or  tranfparent  :  there  will  never  refult  any  thinjj 
but  figures,  and  never  will  you  be  able,  by  all 
the[^  combinations  or  divificns,  to  produce  one 
fingle  fentiment,  one  Tingle  thought,  like  thî^t  of 
the  meanefl  and  mofl  contra6\ed  of  all  mankind. 
If  matter  then  cannot  be  the  fubjed  of  one  Tin- 
gle operation  of  the  foul  of  a  mechanic,  how  fJiall 
it  be  the  fufcjeiSl  of  thofe  attributes  which  make 
the  effence  of  God  himfelf  ? 

But  perhaps  God,  who  is  Tpiritual  in  one  part 
of  his  elTence,  may  be  corporeal  in  another  part, 
like  man,  who,  although  he  hath  a  fpiritual  foul, 
is  yet  united  to  a  portion  of  matter.  No  :  for, 
however  admirable  in  man  that  union  of  fpiritual 
and  fenTible  may  be,  and  iliofe  laws  which  unifie 
his  foul  to  his  body,  nothing  more  fully  marks 
his  weakneTs  and  dependence,  and  corifequently 
nothing  can  lefs  agree  with  the  divine  elTence. 
'Is  it  not  a  mark  of  the  dependence  of  an  immor- 
tal and  intelligent  foul,  to  be  enveloped  in  a  lit- 
tle flefh  and  blood,  which,  accofding  to  their 
different  motions,  determine  his  Joy  or  forrow, 
his  happinefs  or  mifery  ?  Is  it  not  a  mark  of  liie 
%veakneTs  of  our  fpirits,  to  have  the  power  of 
afling  only  on  that  little  matter  to  which  we  are 
united,  and  to  have  no  power  over  more  ?  Who 
C  can 


2  2         The  Omnipresence  of  God. 

Can  imagine  that  God  hath  fuch  limits  ?  He 
hath  no  body.:  he  is  united  to  none.;  5'et  be  is 
united  to  all.  That  celebrated -philolbpher,  fliall 
I  call  him  ?  or  atheift,*  who  faid  that  the  alTem- 
blage^cf  all  exigence  conOitiited  the  divine  ef- 
fence,  who  would  have  us  coniider  all  corporeal 
beings  as  the  body  of  the  divinity,  publifl^ed  a 
great  extravagance,  if  he  meant  that  the  divine 
CiTence  conGlled  of  this  affemblage.  But  there 
is  a  very  jufi;  fenfe,  in  which  it  may  be  faid  that 
the  whole  univerfe  is  the  body  of  the  Deity.  In 
efFeâ:,  as  I  call  this  portion  of  matter  my  body, 
which  I  move,  a£^,  and  diredl  as  I  pleafe,  io 
God  aduates  by  his  will  every  part  of  the  ur,i- 
verfe  :  he  obfcures  the  fun,  he  calms  the  winds, 
he  commands  the  fea.  But  this  very  notion  ex- 
cludes ïll  corporiety  from. God,  and  proves  t'ut 
God  is  a  .fpirit.  If  God  fometimes  repvefents 
himfeU  with  feet,  with  hands,  with  eyes,  be 
-riieans  in  thefe  portraits,  rather  to  give  us  em- 
blems of  his  attributes,  than  images  (properly 
fpeaking")  of  any  parts  which  he  po^'effetb. 
Therefore,  when  he  attributes  thefe  to  himfelf, 
"he  gives  them  fo  vaft  an  extent,  that  we  eafily 
perceive  they  are  not  to  be  grofsly  underRood. 
Hath  he  hands  ?  they  are  hands  ivh'ich  nveigb 
the  moi^italns  in  scales^  and  the  hills  in  a  bal- 
ance^  which  measure  tke  ivaters  in  the  hollow  of 
his  hand,  and  mete  out  the  heavens  ivith  a  span^ 
Ifa.  Ix.  12.  Hath  he  eyes  ?  they  are  eyes  that 
penetrate  the  mod  unmeafurable  diRances.  Hath 
he  feet  ?  they  are  feet  which  reach  from  heaven 
to  earth,  for  the  heaven  is  his  throne,  end  the 
earth  is  his  footstool,  ch.  Ixvi.  1.  Hath  he  a 
voice?  it  is  as  the  sound  of  many  ivaters,  break- 
ing the  cedars  of  Lebanon,   making  mount  Sirion 

skip 

*  Mr.  S.  means,  I  fliould  fuppofe,  Spinoza;  whof« 
fyftem  of  atheifm,  fays  a  fenfiblc  writer,  is  more  grofs, 
and  therefore  lefs  dangerous,  thau  Othffrs  ;  his  poifo» 
carrying  its  antidote  with  it, 


The  Omnipresence  of  God.         23 

Aip   like   an  unicorn,    and' the   binds   to   calvc, 
Pfal.  xxix.  3,  5,  6,  9. 

This  reminds  me  of  a  beautiful  palVage  in  1  .û- 
to.  He  fays  that  the  p;ods,  particularly  the 
chief  god,  the  ineffable  beauty,  as  he  calls  bin, 
cannot  be  conceived  of  but  by  the  underftandmg 
only,  and  by  quitting  fenfible  objeûs  j  that,  in 
order  to  contemplate  the  divinity,  terre[\iial 
ideas  muft  be  furmounted  ; .  that  the  eyes  cannot 
fee  hira  ;  that  the  ears  cannot  hear  him.  A 
thought  which  Julian  the  apoflate,  a  great  ad- 
mirer  of  that  phUofopher,  fo  nobly  expreffes  in 
his  fatire  on  the  Cxfars.  Thus  every  thing 
ferves  to  eftablilh  our  firft  principle,   that  God  i3 

a  fpirit. 

2.  But  to  prove  that  God  is  a  fpirit,  and  to 
prove  that  he  occupies  no  place,  at  lead  as  our 
imagination  conceives,  is,  in  our  opinion,  to  ef- 
tablifli  the  fame  thefis. 

1  know  how  difficult  it  is  to  make  this  Gonfe- 
guence  intelligible  and  clear,  not  only  to  thofe 
•who  have  never  been  accu'flomed  to  aiecitation, 
and  who  ar^  therefore  more  excufable  for  having 
confufed  ideas  ;  but  even  to  fuch  as,  having  cul- 
tivated the  fciences,  are  nioft  intent  on  refining 
their  ideas.  I  freely  acknowledge,  that  afcer  we 
have  ufed  our  utmoft  efforts  to  rife  above  fenfe 
and  matter,  it  will  be  extremely  difïlcult  to  con- 
ceive the  exigence  of  a  fpirit,  without  conceiv- 
ing it  in  a  certain  place.  Yet,  I  think,  what- 
ever difEeulty  there  may  be  in  the  fyftem  of 
thofe  who  maintain  that  an  immaterial  being 
"cannot  be  in  a  place,  properly  fo  called,  there  are 
greater  ditficuUics  aill  in  the  oppofue  opinion  : 
for,  what  is  immaterial  hath  no  parts  ;  what 
hath  no  parts  hath  no  form  ;  what  hath  no  form 
hatli  no  ext^nfion  ;  what  hath  no  extenfion  caa 
have  no  fituation  in  place,  properly  fo  called. 
For  what  is  it  to  be  in  place  ?  is  it  not  to  fill 
fpace  ?  is  it  not  to  be  adiulted  with  furrounding 
^  bodies  ? 


a 4         ^-^^  Omnipresincc  of  God. 

bodies  ?  how  adjuft  with  furroundirg  bodies 
■without  parts  ?  how  conlifl  of  parts  without  be- 
inf:  corporeal  ?  But  if  you  afcribe  a  real  and 
jpioper  cxienCion  to  a  fpirit,  every  thought  of 
»h;it  fpirit  would  be  a  feparate  portion  of  that 
cxtenîon,  as  eveiy  part  of  the  body  is  a  feparate 
portion  of  the  whale  body  ;  every  operation  of 
fpirit  would  be  a  modification  of  that  extenfxon, 
as  every  operation  of  body  is  a  modification  of 
body  ;  and,  were  this  the  cafe,  there  would  be 
no  abfurdiiy  in  faying  that  a  thought  is  round, 
or  fquare,  or  cubic,  which  is  nothing  lefs  than 
the  confounding  of  fpirit  v^itîi  matter.  Thus 
the  idea,  which  our  imagination  forms  of  the 
omniprefence  of  God,  when  it  veprefents  the  el- 
fcnce  of  the  Supreme  Being  filling  infinite  fpaces,-. 
us  we  are  lodged  in  our  houfes,  is  a  falfe  idea 
that  ought  to  be  carefully  avoided. 

II.  What  notions  then  muft  we  form  of  the 
immenfity  of  God  ?  In  what  fenfe  do  we  con- 
ceive that  the  infinite  Spirit  is  every  where  pref- 
cnt  ?  My  brethren,  the  bounds  of  our  knowl- 
edge are  fo  ftrait,  our  fphere  is  fo  contrafted,  we 
have  fuch  imperfeft  ideas  of  fpirits,  even  of  our 
own  fpirits,  and,  for  a  much  ftrouger  reafon,  of 
the  Father  of  fpirits,  that  no  genius  in  the 
world,  however  exalted  you  may  luppofe  him, 
after  his  greateft  efforts  of  meditation,  can  fay 
to  you,  Thus  far  extend  the  attributes  of  God  ; 
behold  a  complete  idea  of  his  inamenfity  and  om- 
niprefence. Yet,  by  the  help  of  found  reafan, 
above  all  by  the  aid  of  revelation,  we  may  give 
you,  if  not  complete,  at  leaft  diRimit  ideas  of  the 
l'ab|e6l  \  it  is  poIEble,  if  not  to  indicate  all  the 
icnles  in  which  Ooè.  is  iinmcnfe,  at  ÎT^.!  to  poifit 
out  fome  :  it  is  pofTible,  if  not  to  fliew  you  all 
the  truth,  at  lead  to  difcover  it  in  part. 

L^t  ys  not  conceive  the  omniprefence  of  God 
^s  a  particular  attribute  (if  I  may  venture  to  fay 
io)  of  the  Dcii/)  as  g-oodnefs  or  wifdoro,  but  as 

'  the 


The  Omnipresence  of  God»         25 

the  extent  or  infinity  of  many  others.  The  cm- 
niprelence  of  God  is  tha»  univerfal  property  by 
which  he  communicates  himfelf  to  all,  difTufes 
hunftrlf  through  all,  is  the  great  dire(Slor  of<  all, 
or,  to  confine  ourfelves  to  more  diftin£l  ideas 
ftill,  the  infinite  Ipirit  is  preient  in  every  place, 

1.  By  a  boundlefs  knowledge, 

2.  By  a  general  influence. 

3.  By  an  univerfal  diredion. 

God  is  every  where,  becaufc  he  seeib  all,  be- 
eauie  he  wjluenceth  all,  becaufe  he  directeth  all. 
This  we  mud  prove  and  eftablifb.  Bat  if  you 
■would  judge  rightly  of  what  you  have  heard,  and 
of  what  you  may  dill  hear,  you  mufl  remember 
that  this  fubjedt  hath  no  relation  to  yonr  pleaf- 
vires,  nor  to  your  policy,  nor  to  any  of  thole  ob- 
jects which  occupy  and  fill  your  whole  fouls  ; 
and  confequenilyj  that  if  you  would  follow  us, 
you  mufl  Itretch  your  mediîauon,  and  go,  as  it 
were,  out  of  yourfclvesa 

I,  The  aril  idea  of  God's  omniprefence  is  his 
omniscience,  God  is  eve/y  vvhere  pitfcnt,  be- 
caufe he  sei:th  all.  This  the  pvopli^.-'t  bad  princi- 
.pally  in  view.  -  ^'  O  Lord,  thou  hait  îeiàrched  me, 
.and  known  me.  Thou  knoweft  my  down-liaing* 
and  mine  up-rifing,  thou  undt^rPtandc-îl  my 
thoughts  afar  off'.  Thou  compniTcd  my  path  aud 
njy  lying  down,  and  art  acquainted  u  iUi  ail- my 
ways.  For  there  is  not  a  word  in  my  tongue, 
but  lo,  O  Lord,  thou  knowefl  it  altogeiher. 
Thou  hafl  befet  me  behind  and  before.  Such 
knowledge  is  too  wonderful  for  me;  it  is  high,  I 
cannot  attain  unto  it,"  ver.  1,  2,  3,  Sec.  Then 
follow  the  words  of  our  text  :  ^'  Whither  fliall 
I  g-o  from  thy  fpirit,"   and  fo  on. 

Let  us  not  then  confider  the  Deity,  after  the 
example  of  the  ichoclmen,  as  a  point  fixed  in 
the  univerfallty  oi  beings.  Let  us  conlider  the 
;Univerfiility  of  beings  as  a  point,  and  the  Deity 
.as  an  immeuFc  eye,  which  fees  all  that  paffes  in 
C  2  that 


26         The  Omnipresence  of  God. 

that  point,  all  that  can  pofllbly  pafs  there  ;  and 
■which,  by  an  alUanimating  intelligence,  niakei 
an  exadl  combination  of  all  the  eficds  of  matter, 
and  of  all  the  difpoiitions  of  fpirit. 

1.  God  knows  all  the  efFcû:s  of  matter.  Ai: 
expert  workman  takes  a  parcel  of  matter  propor- 
tioned to  a  work  which  he  meditates,  he  makea 
divers  wheels,  difpofcs  them  properly,  and  fees, 
hy  the  rules  of  his  art,  what  mufl:  refulc  from 
their  aiTcmblage.  Suppofe  a  fublime,  exad  geni- 
U3,  knowing  how  to  go  from  principle  to  princr- 
ple,  and  from  confcquence  to  co^fequence,  after 
ibrefeeing  what  muft  refult  from  two.  wheefs 
joined  together,  ftiould  imagine  a  third,  he  wirl 
as  certainly  know  what  muil  refult  from  a  third, 
as  from  a  iirft  and  fécond  ;  after  imagining-  a 
third,  he  may  imagine  a  fourth,  and  properly  ar-». 
range  it  with  the  reft  in  his  imagination  ;  after 
a  fourth  a  fifth,  and  fo  on  to  an  endlefs  number* 
Such  a  man  could  mathematically  demondrate, 
in  an  exadl  and  infallible  manner,  what  muft  re- 
fait from  a  work  compofed  of  all  thefe  different 
wheeh.  Suppofe  further,  that  this  woikman^ 
Jiaving  accurately  confidered  the  effects  which 
would  be  produced  on  thefe  wheels,  by  ihat  fub- 
tie  matter  which  in  their  wliirlings  continually 
furrounds  them,  and  which,  by  its  perpetual  ac- 
tion and  motion,  chafes,  wears,  and  diffolvcs  all 
bodies  ;  this  workman  would  tell  you,  with  the 
lame  cxadnefs,  how  long  each  of  thefe  wheels 
"Would  wear,  and  when  the  whole  work  would  be 
confumed.  Give  this  workman  life  and  induftry 
proportional  to  his  imagination,  furnifh  him  with 
materials  proportional  to  his  ideas,  and  he  will 
produce  a  vaft,  immenCe  work,  all  the  different 
motions  of  which  he  can  exadly  combine;  all 
the  different  effe£ls  of  which  he  can  evidently 
forefcc.  He  will  fee,  in  what  thme  motion  will 
be  communicated  from  the  firft  of  thefe  wheel's 
to  the  fécond,  at  what  lime  the  fccond  will  movt: 

the 


The  Omnipnsencè  of  God.         2.7" 

the  third,  and  fo  of  the  reft  :  he  will  foretel  all 
their  different  motions,  and  all  the  effecla  which 
jjiuft  rcfult  from  their  different  comblnatians. 

Hitherto  this  is  only  fuppofition,  my  brethren, 
but  it  is  a  fuppofition  that  conducls  us  to  the 
moft  certain  of  all  fails»  This  workman  is  God, 
God  J8  this  fubiime,  exack,  infinite  -genius.  He 
calls  into  being  matter,  without  motion,  and,  in 
fome  fenfc,  without  form.  He  gives  this  matter 
form  and  motion»  He  ro'akes  a  certain  number 
of  wheels,  or  rather  he  makes  then»  without 
number.  He  difpofes  them  as  he  thinks  proper. 
He  communicates  a  certain  degree  of  motion, 
agreeable  to  th«  laws  of  his  wifdoni.-  Thence 
anfes  the  world  which  ftrikes  our  eyes.  By  the 
forenientioned  example,  1  conceive,  that  God,  by 
his  own  intelUgence,  faw  what  muft  refult  from- 
the  arrangement  of  all  the  wheels  that  compofe 
this  world,  and  knew,  with  the  utmeft  exadncfs, 
ail  their  combinations»  He  faw  that  a  certain., 
degree  of  motion,  imparted  to  a  certain  portion 
of  matter,  would  produce  water  j  that  another, 
degree  of  motion,  communicated  to  another  pop-- 
tion  of  matter,  would  produce  fire  j  that  another 
■would  produce  earth,  and  fo  of  the  reft.  He 
forefavv,  with  the  utmoft  precifion,  what  would 
refult  from  this  water,  from  this  fire,  from  thi^ 
earth  when  joined  together,  and  agitated  by  fuca 
a-  degree  of  motion  as  he  fliould  eommunicate»- 
By  the  bare  infpeiSlion  of  the  laws  of  motion,  he 
forefaw  fires,-  he  forefaw  (hipwrecks,  he  forefavif 
earthquakes,  he  forefaw  all  the  vicifTitudcs  of 
time,  he  forefaw  thofe  which  rauft  put  a  period 
to  time,  when  tbe  beavens  shall  pass  away  tvitb 
a  great  7ioise,  nvhen  the  elements  shall  melt  ivith 
fervent  heaty  when  the  earth  ivith  all  the  ivorks 
that  are  in  it  shall  be  burnt  up-,  2-  Pet.  iii.  10. 

2.  But,  if  God  could  combine  all  that  would 
refult  from  the  laws  of  motion  communicated  to 
matter^  he  could  alfo  combine  all  that  would  r/ïo 

fuit 


3iS         The  Omnipresence  of  God. 

fuit  from  intelligence,  freedom  of  will,  and  all 
the  faculties  which  make  the  effence  of  fpirits  ; 
and,  before  he  had  formed  thofe  f|ViiituHl  beings 
"which  compofe  the  intelligent  world,  he  knew 
"Vi'hat  all  their  ideas,  all  their  projedts,  all  their 
deliberations,  -vs'ould  for  ever  be. 

I  am  aware,  that  a  particular  confequence, 
which  follows  this  dodlrine,  hath  made  fome  di- 
vines exclaim  againfl  this  thffis,  and,  under  the 
fpecious  pretence  of  exculpating  the  Deity  from 
the  entrance  of  fin  into  this  world,  they  have 
affirmed  that  God  could  not  forefee  the  deter- 
minations of  a  free  agent  ;  for,  fay  they,  had  he 
forefeen  the  abufe  which  ma-n  would  have  made 
of  his  liberty,  by  refolving  to  fin,  his  love  to 
liOiinefs  would  have- engaged  him  to  prevent  it» 
But  to  reaf.-)n  in  this  manner  i?,  in  attempting  to 
folve  a  difncultyj  to  leave  that  difEculty  in  all 
its  force, 

Allthey  fay  on  this  article,  proceeds  from  this 
principle,  that  a  God  infinitely  juft,  and  inilriite- 
]y  powerful,  ought  to  difplay  (if  it  be  :\Vlowable 
to  fay  lo)  all  the  infinity  of  his  attributes  to  pre- 
vent fin.  But  this  principle  is  notorioully  falfe» 
Witnefs  that  very  permiflion  of  fin  which  .is  ob- 
ji-^^ted  to  us.  You  will  net  acknowledge  that 
God  forefaw  man's  fall  into  (iti  :  acknowledge, 
at  leai't,  that  he  forefaw  the  pcfiibiiity  of  man's 
falling,  and  tout,  in  forming  a  creature  free,  he 
knew  that  fitch  a  creature  might  chul'e  virtue  or 
vice;  acknowledge,  atleaQ,  that  God  could  have 
created  man  with  fo  much  knowledge,  and  could 
have  afforded  him  fo  many  fuccours  ;  he  could 
Jiavc  prefented  fucb  powerful  motives  to  holinefs 
incelfantly,  and  difcovered  to  Ivira  the  dreadful 
"conlequenees  of  his  rebellion  fo  effeÛualiy  ;  he. 
could  have  united .  obedience  tc  his  commands 
Avith  fo  many  delights,  and  the  moft  diftant 
thouglit  of  difobcdience  with  fo  many  difgufts  ; 
he  could  have  baniHied  from  aian  every  tempta- 
tion 


The  Omnipresence  of  God,         sg; 

tîon  to  (in,  fo  that  he  would  never  have  been  a 
finner*  Yet  God  created  man  in  another  man- 
ner ;  confequently  it  is  not  true,  even  in  your 
fyftetn,  that  God  hath  exerted  all  the  power  ho 
could  to  prevent  fin's  entrance  into  ihe  world» 
Confequently  it  is  falfe,  that  a  Being,  who  per- 
fedly  loves  hohnefs,  ought  to  difpîay  the  whole 
extent  of  his  attributes  to  prevent  fin,  and  to 
eftablilh  virtue.  Confequently,.  the  principle  on 
which  you  ground  your  denial  of  God's  compre- 
henfion  of  ail  the  difpofitions  of  fpirits,  is  an  un- 
warrantable principle,  and  to  attempt  to  folve 
the  difEcuIty  in  this  manner,  is  to  leave  it  in  all 
its  force. 

But  if  you  confult  revelatioit,  you  will  find 
that  God  claims  an  univerfal  knowledge  of  fpir-» 
its.  He  fays,  he  searcbetb  and  knotuetb  tbemj 
Jer.  xvii,  10.  Rev.  ii.  23.  He  forefaw,  he  fore- 
told, the  afSidions  which  Abraham's  pofterity 
•would  endure  in  Canaan,  Gen.  xv.  13.  the  hard- 
ening of  Pharaoh,  the  infidelity  of  the  Jews,  the 
faith  of  the  Gentiles,  the  crucifixion  of  the  Méf- 
fiah,  Exod..  iii.  19,  the  coming  of  the  prince  or 
leader,  that  is  ofVcfpafian,  or  Titus,  who  would 
destroy  the  city  and  the  sanctuary^  Dan.  ix,  25, 
26.  And  confequently,  we  have  a  right  to  af- 
£rm,  that  God  knows  all  the  thoughts  of  the 
mind,  and  all  the  fentiments  of  the  heart,  as  well 
as  that  he  knows  all  the  motions  of  matter. 

Perhaps  you  wifii,  my  brethren,  that  our  fpec- 
vlations  were  carried  further  ;  perhaps  you  would 
Have  us.  difentangle  the  fubjecl  from  all  its  diffi- 
culties ;,  perhaps  you  wiQt  we  could  make  yoii 
comprel^cnd,  in  a  clear  and  difiin<5l  manner,  ho\T 
it  is  poflible  that  fuch  immenfe  obje(fls  can  be 
always  prefent  to  the  Supreme  Intelligence  ;  but 
what  mortal  tongue  can  exprefs  fuch  fublime 
truths,  or  what  capacity  is  able  to  conceive, 
them  I  On  this  article,  we  are  obliged  with  our 
prophet  to  exiclainj)  mcb  knoivlcd^e  is  too  won-' 

dcrfui' 


30         The  Omnifresence  of  God. 

derful  for  me  ;  it  is  high  ;  I  cannot  attain  unto 
it  !  ver.  6.  In  general,  we  conceive  that  the 
fphere  of  divine  knowledge  iè  not  contracted  by 
any  of  the  limits  that  confine  the  ipirits  of  man-- 
.  kind,. 

The  human  fpiric  is  united  to  a  portion  of 
matter.  Man  can  perform  no  operation  without 
the  agitation  of  his  brain,  without  the  motion  cf 
his  animal  fpirits,  without  the  help  of  his  fenfes. 
But  the  brain  wearies,  the  fpirits  evaporate,  the 
fenfes  are  blunted,  and  the  minuteft  alteration 
of  body  clogs  the  moPc  penetrating  and  aûive 
genius.  But  God,  as  we  have  reprefented  hiin, 
thinks,  underftanUs,  'meditates,  without  brain, 
without  fpirits,  without  any  need  of  fenfes  ;  net 
participating  their  nature,  he  never  participates 
their  alteration,,  and  thus  hath  intelligence  iin- 
jnediately  from  the  trcafure  of  intelligence  itfelf» 
The  fpirit-oi  man  owes  its  exiftence  to  a  fupe- 
,  rior  fpirit,  to  a  foreign  caufe,  to  a  Bc;ing  who 
gives  him  only  fuch  ideas  as  h«  thinks  proper, 
and  who  hath  been  pleafed  to  conceal  numberlef» 
myfleries  from  him.  But  God,  God  not  only 
does  not  owe  his  exigence  to  a  foreign  caufe,  but 
all  that  exift  derive  their  exiftence  from  him. 
His  ideas  were  the  models  of  all  beings,  and  he 
hath  •  only  to  contemplate  himfelf  perfed^ly  to 
know  them,- 

The  fpirit  of  man  is  naturaHy  â  finite  fpirit;. 
he  can  confider  only  one  circle  of  objects  at  once, 
many  ideas  confound  him;  if  he  would  fee  too 
jnuch,  he  fees  nothing;  he  muO  fuccelTively  con- 
template what  he  cannot  coniempiate  in  one  iî>o-- 
ment.  But  G^d  is  an  infinite  fpirit  ;  with  one 
fingle  look  he  beholdetli  the  whole-  univerfe. 
This  is  the  firll:  id^a  of  the  omniprefence  of  God. 
As  I  am  accounted  prefent  in  this  auditory,  be- 
Gaufe  I  fee  the  objecf^s  that  are  here,  becaufe  I 
am  witnefs  of  all  iliat  paffes  here  ;  fo  God  is  ev- 
ery where,  becaufe  he  fees  all,    becaufe  veil-s  tl  e 

nDoft 


The  Otnnipresence  of  God. .       3:1 

fnoft  impenetrable,  darknefs  the  maft:  thick^  dii- 
tances  the  moft  immenfe,  can  conceal  nothing 
rlVom  his  knowledge.  Soar  to  the  utmoft  heights, 
:fly  into  the  remotefl:  climates,  Avrap  thyfelf  in  the 
blackeft  darknefs,  every  where,  every  where, 
thou  wilt  be  under  his  eye.  "  Whither  (hall  'I 
go  from  thy  fpirit  ?  or  whither  fiiall  J  flee  from 
thy  pre  fence  ?" 

But,  2.  The  knowledge  of  God  is  not  a  bar« 
knowledge,  his  prefence  i?  not  an  idle  prefence,; 
it  is. an  active  knowledge,  it  is  a  pretence  accom- 
panied with  adion  and  motion.  V/e  faid  jufî: 
now,  that  God  was  every  where,  becaufe  he  i«- 
^.uenced  all,  as  far  as  influence  conjd^sgree  with 
his  perfe£lion5.  Remark  this  reflriâ:ion,  for  as 
%ve  are  difcufTing  a  fubjeâ:  the  moil  fertile  in 
controverfy,  and  as,  in  a  difcoturfe  of  an  hour,  it 
is  impoflible  to  anfvvcr  all  objeâions,  which  may- 
be all  anfwered  elfe  where,  we  would  give  a  gen-» 
C'.al  prefervative  againfl  every  miftake.  We 
mean  an  influence  which  agrees  with  the  divine 
perfe*Slions  ;  and  if  from  any  of  our  general  prop- 
ofitions,  you  infer  any  confequences  injurious  to 
thofe  perfeélions,  you  may  conclude,  from  that 
very  reafon,  that  you  have  flretched  them  beyond 
their  due  bounds.  We  repeat  it  then,  God  in^ 
fluenceth  all  things,  as  far  as  fuch  influence 
agrees  with  his  perfections. 

When  new  beings  appear,  he  is  there.  He 
influences  their  produftion.  He  gives  to  all  ///è, 
mot iony  and  beings  Afts  xvii.  28.  ♦*  Thou,  even 
thou  art  Lord  alone,  thou  haft  made  heaven,  the 
lieaven  of  heavens  with  all  their  hoft,  the  earth 
and  all  things  that  are  therein,  the  feas  and  all 
that  is  therein,  and  thou  preferveft  thera  all,  and 
the  hoft  of  heaven  worfiiippeth  thee,"  Neh.  ix.  6<. 
^'^O  Lord,  I  will  praife  thee,  for  I  am  fearfully 
and  wonderfully  made  ;  marvellous  are  thy 
-works,  and  that  my  foul  knoweth  right  welL 
My  fubftance  was  not  hid  from  thee,  when  I  was 

mads 


-g  2         The  Omnipresence  of  God, 

niade  in  fecret,  and  curionfly  wrought  tn  tht 
loweft  parts  of  the  earth.  Thine  eyes  did  fee 
my  fubftance  yet  being  UTipert'e<Sl,  and  in  thy 
book  all  my  members  were  written,  which  in 
continuance  were  fafhioned,  when  as  yet  there 
was  none  of  them,"  Pfal.  cxxxix.  14,>l5,  16. 
*' Thine  hands  have  made  me,  and  fadùoned  me 
together  round  about.  Thou  haft  clothed  me 
with  fkin  and  flefli,  and  haft  fenced  me  with 
bones  and  fuiews." 

When  beings  are  preferved,  be  is  there.  He 
influences  their  yprelcrvation.  *'  Thy  mercy,  O 
Lord,  is  in  the  heavens,  and  thy  faithfulnéfs 
reacheth  unto  the  clouds.  Thou  preferveft  man 
and  beaft,"  Pfal.  xxxvi.  5,  6.  '<  When  thou 
openeLt  thy  hand  t-hey  are  filled  with  good  :  thou 
hideft  thy  face  they  are  troubled,  thou  takeft 
away  their  breath  they  die,  and  return  to  their 
duft,  ^Thcu  fearieft  forth  thy  fpirit  they  are  cre- 
ated, and  ibou  reneweft  the  face  of  the  earth," 
.^ffal.  civ.  28,  29,  30. 

When  the  world  is  difordered,  he  is  there» 
TUq  influenceth  wars,  peftilences,  famines,  and  all 
the  viciflitudes  which  diforder  the  world.  If 
nature  refufe  her  produûlon^,  it  iî  beoaufe  he 
hath  made  the  heaven  as  iron,  and  the  earth  as 
brass,  Lev,  xxvi.  19.  If  peace  fucceed  war,  he 
makes  both.  If  lions  slay  the  inhabitants  ofSa- 
-maria,  it  is  the  Lord  who  sends  them,  2  Kings 
3cvii.  25-  When  tempt ftuous  winds  break  down 
thofe  immenis  banks  which  your  induftry  has  op- 
pofed  to  them,  when  a  devouring  fire  reduceth 
your  houfes  to  aftics,  it  is  he  who  irakes  the 
•v)inds  his  messengersy  and  his  ministers  Jiames 
offre,   Pfal.  civ.  4. 

When  every  thing  fucceeds  according  to  our 
fifties,  he  is  there.  He  influenceth  profperity. 
'*  Except  the  Lerd  build  the  houfe,  they  labour 
in  vain  that  build  ito  Except  the  Lord  keep  the 
city,  the  watchman  waketh  but  in  vain.     It  is 

vain 


The  Omnipresence  of  God,         33 

viin  for  you  to  rife  up  early,  to  fit  up  late,  to 
eat  the  bread  of  ibrrows.  It  is  God  who  giveth 
his  beloved  fleep,"  Pfal.  cxxvii.  1,  2. 

When  our  underllanding  is  in'formrd,  he  is 
there.  He  influenceth  our  knowledge.  For  in 
bis  light  ive  see  lights  Pfal.  xxxvi.  9.  *'  lie 
Ijghteth  every  man  that  cometh  into  the  world," 
John  i.  9. 

When  our  heart  difpofeth  us  to  our  duties,  he 
is  there.  He  influenceth  our  virtiifa.  It  is  hs 
who  ivorkeib  in  us,  both  to  ivill-and  to  do  of  his 
own  good  pleasure^  Phil.  ii.  13.  It  is  he  who. 
giveth  us  not  only  to  believe  but  to  suffer  for  bis 
sakey  rhap.  i.  29,  It  is  he  who  giveth  to  all 
îl'.at  ask  him  liberally  and  upbraidetb  Jiot, 
James  i.  5. 

When  the  gro^Teft  errors  cover  us,  be  is  there. 
He  inftuenceth  errors.  It  is  God  who  sfnds 
strong  delusions  that  men  should  believe  a  //>, 
i3  Their,  ii.  11.  "  Go  make  the  heart  of  this 
people  fat,  and  make  their  ears  heavy,  and  fliut 
their  eyes,  left  they  ihould  fee  with  their  eyes, 
and  hear  with  their  ears,"  Ifa.  vi.  10. 

When  we  violate  the  laws  of  righteoufnefs,  he 
IS  there.  He  influenceth  fins,  even  the  greatefl 
Tins.  Witnefs  Pharaoh,  whole  heart  he  harden- 
ed, Exod.  iv.  21.  Witnefs  Shimei,  whom  the 
Lord  bade  to  cur^e  David,  2  Sam.  >;vi.  1], 
Witnefs  what  Ifaiah  faid,  the  Lord  hath  ming'ed 
a  perverse  spirit  m  the  midst  of  Egjpt,  chap. 
xix.  14. 

When  magiftrates,  our  earthly  gods,  confult 
and  deliDerate,  he  is  there.  He  influenceth  pol- 
icy. It  is  he  who  hath  the  hearts  of  kings  in 
bis  hand,  and  turneth  the.n  as  ibe  ri'vcrs  of  lua-, 
ter^  Prov.  xxi.  I.  It  is  he  wh-  giveth  kings  in 
bis  anger,  and  taketh  them  anvav  in  his  ivrath, 
Hofea  xiii,  II.  It  is  he  who  maketh  the  Assjr- 
tan  the  rod  of  his  anger,  Ifa.  x.  5.  '•  Herod 
and  Piiaic,  the  G^iXilcà  and  the  people  of  IfraeJ, 
D  did 


34  The  Omnipresence  of  €cd, 

oiii    what    bis    hand   and  his  coiirfvl  det^rmineii 
before  to  be  done,"  A£\s  iv.  27,  21, 

When  we  live,  when  we  die,  he  is  there.  He 
influencelh  life  and  drath.  *' Man's  days  aie 
cetermined,  the  number  of  bis  months  are  with 
him,  he  has  appointed  his  bounds  that  he  cannot 
pais-/'  Job  xiv.  5.  *' To  God  the  Lord  belongs 
the  ifTucs  from  death,"  Pfal.  Ixviii.  20.  "  He 
.  bringeth  down  to  the  grave,  and  bringcth  up," 
I  SaiTi.  ii.  6. 

He  influences  the  lead  events,  2à  well  as  the 
jnoil  confiderabl.e.  Not  being  fatigued  with  the 
care  of  great  things,  he  can  occupy  hunfclf 
about  the  fmalleft:  without  prejudice  to  the  rell:  ; 
number  the  hairs  of  our  headsy  and  not  let  even 
GSparrovj  fall  ivitbcut  his  ivilly  Matt.  x.  1J9,  "C. 

But,  3.  When  God  communicates  himfelf  to 
all,  when  he  thus  adls  on  all,  when  he  diflTufeth 
bimfelf  thus  through  the  whole,  he  conne6ls  all 
with  his  own  defigns,  and  makes  all  ferve  his 
own  connfels  :  and  this  is  our  third  idea  of  his 
iinmenfity  and  omniprefence.  Ood  i;:  prefcnt 
with  all,   becaufe  he  directs  all, 

-Doth  he  call  the  creatures  into  exiflence  ?  it  is 
to  nianifefl  his.  perfections.  It  is  to  have  fub- 
jecfls  on  whom  ke  may  Pnower  his  favours  ;  it  is, 
as  it  were,  to  go  out  of  hinifelf,  and  to  form 
through  the  whole  univerfe  a  concert  refounding 
the  Creator's  exigence  and  glory.  "-For  the 
invifjble  things  of. Ood,  even  his  eternal  power 
and  godhead,  are,  Ufiderftood  by  the  things  that 
are  made,"  Pv.om.  i.  20.  *'  The  heavens  declare 
the  glory  of  God,  and  the  firmament  Tneweth  bis 
Iiandy-work.  Dny  unto  day  uttereth  fpeecb, 
night  unto  night  (heweth  knowledge.  There  is 
-no  fpcech  nor  language  where  their  voice  is  not 
beard,"  Pfal.  xix'.  1,  2,  3. 

poth  he  preferve  his  creatures  ?  it  is  to  anfwer 
his  own  defigns,  the  depth  of  which  no  finite 
mind  can  fathom  \   but  defigos   which  we   Aiall 

oi^e 


The  07nnipresence  of  God.         35 

r!ne  ^ay  know,  and  admire  liis  wirdom  wben  we 
know  them,  as  we  ?.dore  it  now,  thojg'u  we  kno/ 
them  not. 

Dotli  he  fend  phg'iies,  v/ars,  iimines  ?  it  is  to 
make  thofc  feel  his  jufkice  who  have  abufed  hi^ 
^odnefs  ;  it  is  to  avenge  the  violation  of  his 
îiiw,  the  contempt  of  his  gofpel,  the  forgctting^ 
and  forfaking  of  the  interell  of  his  church. 

Doth  he  afford  us  profperity  ^  it  is  to  dra^.u  us- 
ivith  the  bands  of  lo'ûe^  Hofea  xi.  4.  it  is  to  re- 
veal himfeli  to  us  by  that  love  which  is  his  ef- 
fence  ;  it  is  to  engage  us  to  imitate  him,  who 
ne'oer  Ua-oes  himself  'without  'witness  in  cloin^ 
goody  A(5Y3  xiv,  17. 

Doth  he  impart  knowledge  to  us  ?'  it  is  to  dif. 
fover  the  fnares  that  furround  us,  the  miferics 
that  threaten  us,  the  origin  from  which  wc 
fprang,  the  courfe  of  life  we  fhould  follow,  and 
the  end  at  which  v/e  fhould  aim. 

Doth  lie  communicate  virtues  ?  ir  is  to  ^n'l- 
!Tiats  us  in  our  race  ;  it  is  to  convince  V3  tl;  t 
there  is  a  mighty  arj-n  to  raife  us  from  the  abyu 
into  which  our  natural  corruption  hath  plunged 
«s  ;  it  is  that  we  may  luork  out  our  own  salva- 
tion ivitb  fear  and  trcmbltng^  knoTjing  that  God 
xvorketb  in  us  to  iviU  and  to  dj  of  his  own  good 
pleasure  J   Phil.  ii.  12,  13. 

Doth  he  fend  us  error  ?  it  is  to  make  us  re- 
fpeft  that  truth  which  we  have  re&fted. 

Doth  he  abandon  us  to  our  vices  ?  it  is  to  pun- 
ifti  us  for  fonie  other  vices  which  v;e  have  com- 
initted  voluntarily  and  freely  ;  fo  that,  if  we 
could  comprehend  it,  lis  love  for  holincfs  never 
appears  more  clearly,  than  when  he  abandoiis 
men  to  vice  in  this  manner. 

Doth  he  raife  up  kings  ?  it  is  always  to  oblige 
them  to  adminider  judice,  to  protect  the  widow 
and  the  orphan,  to  maintain  order  and  religion. 
Yet  he  often  permits  them  to  violate  equity,  to 
opirefs  their  people,  and  to  becoir.e  the  fcourges 

of 


36  The  Omnipresence  of  God. 

of  his  anger.  By  them  he  frequently  teachetli 
us  how  little  account  he  makes  of  human  gran- 
deurs, feeing  he  beRows  then  foretimes  upon 
unworthy  men,  upon  men  allured  by  voluptuouf- 
ncfs,  governed  by  ambition,  and  dazzled  with 
their  own  glory,  upon  men  who  ridicule  piety, 
fell  their  confciences,  negociate  faith  and  reli- 
gion, facrificlng-  the  fouls  of  their  children  to  the 
infamous  pafiions  that  govern  themfelves. 

Doth  he  prolong  our  life  ?  it  is  becaufe  he  is 
long  suffering  to  us,  2  Pet.  iii.  9.  it  is  becaufe 
he  opens  iii  our  favour  the  riches  of  his  goodness 
end  forbearatice^  to  lead  us  to  rep&ntance^  Rom. 
ii.  4. 

Doth  he  call  us  to  die  ?  it  is  to  open  thofe 
eternal  boot?  in  which  our  actions  r,re  regiflereo; 
it  is  to  gather  our  fouh  into  his  bofori,  to  bind 
them  up  in  the  bundle  of  life,  1  Sam.  xxv.  29. 
to  mix  them  with  the  r^nfomed  armies  of  all  «<r- 
tions,   tongues^  and  people,   Rev.  vii.  9. 

Such  are  our  ideas  of  the  omnipre fence  of  God, 
Thus  God  feeth  all,  infîuenceth  all,  direcleth  all. 
in  this  fenfe  we  are  to  underf^and  this  magnificent 
languatjc  of  fcrinture,  **  VViU  God  indeed  dwell 
on  the  earth  ?  behold  the  heaven  and  the  heaver^ 
of  heavens  e-iinnot  contain  thee,"  1  Kings  viii. 
27.  *' Thus  faith  the  Lord,  The  heaven  is  my 
throne,  and  the  earth  is  my  foctHool,"  Ifa.  Ixvi. 
1.  *<  Wliera  is  th;;  houfe  that  ye  build  unto  me? 
do  not  I  fill  heaveu  and  earth  ?  faith  the  Lord. 
Am  I  God  at  hand,  and  not  afar  off?  Can  any 
hide  himklf  iîi  fecret  places  that  Î  fliall  not  fee 
liim  ?"  Jer.  xxiii.  23,  24.  This  is  what  the 
heathens  had  a  glimpfe  of,  when  they  faid,  that 
God  was  a  circle,  the  centre  cf  which  was  every 
"where,  and  its  circumference  no  where.  That 
all  things  were  full  of  Jupiter.  That  he  filled  all. 
his  works.  That,  fly  whither  we  would,  we  were 
always  before  his  eyes.  This  is  what  tiie  follow. 
Cifs   of  Mahomet   meantj  wliea    tliey   faid,   that 

where 


Tht  Omnipresence  of  Gcd,         37 

where  there  were  two  peifons,  God  made  the 
third  ;  where  there  were'  three,  God  made  the 
fourth.  Above  ûIî,  this  was  our  prophet's  mean- 
ing througliout  the  Pialm,  a  part  of  which  we 
have  explained.  »' O  Lord,  thou  hail  fearched 
me  and  known  me.  Thou  knowefl  my  down- 
fitting  and  mine  up-rifing,  thou  underflanden  niy' 
thoughts  afar  off*  Thou  compalTefl  my  path  ani 
my  lying  down,  and  art  acquainted  with  aU  my 
vays.  For  there  is  not  a  word  in  my  tongue, 
but  lo,  O  Lord,  thou  knoweft  it  altogether. 
Thou  haft  befetttme  behind  and  before,  and  laid 
tfiine  hand  upon  me.  Such  knowledge  is  too 
wonderful  for  me,  I  cannot  attain  unto  ir. 
Whither  (hall  I  go  from  tliy  fpirit  ?  or  whither 
ilia-ll  i  fiee  from  thy  prefence  ?  If  I  afcend  up 
into  heaven,  thou  art  there  ;  if  I  make  my  bed 
ill  .'iell,  behold  thou  art  there.  If  I  take  the 
wings  of  the  morning,  and  dwell  in  the  uttermoil 
pHr:3  OÏ  tîie  fea  j  -even  there  fhill  thy  hand  had 
iv,t\  and  thy  right  hand  fliall  hold  me.  If  I  fay, 
S'uely  the  darknefs  fnall  cover  me  ;  even  the 
night  {hall  oe  light  about  me.  Yea,  the  dark- 
nel's  l/ideth  not  from  thee;  but  the  night  (liincth 
as  the  day  •..  the  darknefs  and  the  light  are  both 
alike  to  tliee,"  ver,  1,  See. 

But  perhaps,  during  the  courfe  of  this  medita- 
tion, you  may  have  murmured  at  our  prefcnting" 
an  object,  of  which  all  the  preaching  in  ih^  world 
can  give  you  only  imperfeél  ideas.  Sufpend  vour 
judgments  ;  we  are  going  to  fliew  you  whither 
this  difcourfe,  all  glimr.-?oring  as  it  is,  ought  to 
conduA  you.  We  are  going  to  fee  what  faljtary 
Gonfcquences  follow  our  efforts,  even  the  weak 
efforts  that  we  have  been  making,  to  explain  the 
grandeur  and  omniorefcnce  of  God,  Let  us  pifs 
to  the  conclufion,  the  chief  dcGgn  of  this  dif- 
courfe. 

I.  Our  firfl  refledion  is  on  the  difficulties  we 
meet  IV  it  h  in  Jixing  our  minds  on  ^ucb  subjects 
D  2  as 


38         The  Omnipresence  of  God. 

as  we  have  been  hearing'.  You  have  doubtleTs 
experienced,  if  you  have  endeavoured  to  follow 
US,  that  you  are  weary,  and  wander  when  you 
would  go  beyond  matter.  Our  minds  find  ahnoft 
nothing  real,  where  they  meet  with  nothing  fei:- 
fible.  Aj  if  the  whole  effencs  of  beings  were 
corporeal,  the  mind  lofeth  its  way  when  it  ceaf- 
eth  to  be  dire£led  by  bodies,  and  it  needs  the 
help  of  imagination  to  repreient  even  thofe  things 
which  are  not  fufceptible  of  images  ;  and  yet 
■whatever  is  mofl  grand  and  noble  in  tlie  nature 
of  beings,  is  fpirit.  The  fublimc^  cLjeifts,  angels 
■who  are  conunually  before  Gnd,  seraphims  vyho 
cover  their  faces  in  hi'i  prefence,  Ifa.  vi,  2.  cher- 
tibims  who  arc  t!ie  minivers  of  hii  will,  thousand- 
thousands  tvhich  minister  unio  him^  ten  thousand 
times  ten  thousand  'ivhic h  stand  before  bim^  Dan, 
vii,  10.  what  is  moft  glorious  in  man,  what  ele- 
vates him  above  other  animaîi,  a  foul  made  in 
the  image  of  God  himfelf,  ti^e  Being  oF  being:s> 
the  Sovereir^n  Beauty  ;  îilî  thefe  beings  are  ipir- 
ituaî,  abPt  acl,  free  from  fcnf,'  and  matter. 
Moreover,  what  pleafes  and  enchants  us  in  bod'- 
iec,  even  that  comts  froin  a  fubjedl  abRraift,  fpir- 
itual  and  corporeal.  Without  your  fo-ui,  alimenf-î 
have  no  taile,  fiowers  no  fmell,  the  earth  no  en- 
amel, fire  no  iiea'c,  \\\<  itars  no  brilliancy,  the  fun 
no  light.  Matter  of  itfelf  iivoid,  and  grofs, 
deiTitutc  of  all  the  qualities  Nvith  which  our  iina- 
gmniion  clothes  i;,  and  which  arc  proper  to  our 
fouls.  What  oughl  %ve  to  conclude  from  this 
refledlion  ?  My  brethren,  have  you  no  idea  of 
your  dignity,  and  primitive  grandeur  ?  Have 
you  not  even  yet  fome  fîlint  releml^ances  of  be- 
ings formed  in  the  Creator's  image  i  You  oughi, 
feeble  as  you  are,  confined  as  you  are  in  a  man- 
ner to  matter,  you  fhould  deplore  your  mifery  ; 
you  fliould  groan  under  that  neceility,  which,  ia 
fbme  fort,  confounds  your  fouls  with  a  little 
duft  ;   you  ihould  ligh  after  that  happy  ftate  rn 

which 


The  Omnipresence  of  God.        3-9- 

whîch  your  rapid,  free,  and  unclogged  fpirits, 
fliall  meditate  likt  then»fc!ves.  This  is  the  firll 
duty  we  fhoukl  prefcribe  to  you. 

2.  Our  next  retîeélion  is  on  tlie  majesty  of 
our  religion»  That  mufl  certainly  be  thought 
the  true  religion  which  gives  us  the  nobleft  ideas 
of  God.  Let  our  religion  be  judgecf  by  this  rule. 
Where  do  we  fee  the  attributes  of  the  Supreme 
Being  placed  in  fo  clear  a  ligh:  ?  what  can  be 
more  noble  than  this  idea  of  God  ?  what  can  be 
conceived  more  fublime  than  a  Being  whom  noth- 
ing efcapes,  before  whom  all  things  are  naked  and 
open,  Heb.  iv,  13,  who,  by  one  fingle  look,  fully 
comprehends  all  beings,  part,  prefent,  and  to 
come,  all  that  do  exid,  all  that  poffitily  can  es- 
ifl:  ;  who  thinks,  in  the  fame  inltant,  with  equal 
facility  on  bodies  and  fprrits,  on  all  the  dimen- 
fions  of  time  and  of  matter  ?  What  more  noble 
can  be  conceived  than  a  Being  who  imparteih 
himfelf  to  all,  diffufeth  himfelf  through  all,  inflij- 
enceth  all,  giveth  life  and  motion  to  all  ?  Wha^ 
can  be  conceived  more  noble  than  a  Being  who 
diredleth  the  condudl  of  the  whole  univerfe,  who 
knoweth  how  to  make  all  concur  to  his  deîîgns, 
whoknoweth  how  to  conned  alike  with  the  laws 
of  order  and  equity,  the  virtues  of  the  righteous, 
the  vices  of  the  .wicked,  the  praifes  of  the  happy, 
the  blafphcmies  of  the  vi6linis  fitiificed  to  his 
vengeance  in  hell  ?  When  we  find  in  any  hea- 
then philofopher,  amidli:  a  thoufaud  falfc  notion;}, 
amidd  a  tlioufand  wild  imaginations,  feme  fe\y 
leaves  of  the  flowers  with  which  our  bibles  are 
ftrewed,  we  arc  ready  to  cry  a  miracle,  a  miracle, 
we  tranfmit  thefe  ftireds  of  the  Deity  (if  I  may 
be  allowed  to  fpeak  fo)  to  the  moftdilUnt  pofler- 
ity,  and  thefe  ideas,  all  defedlive,  and  all  defiled 
as  they  are,  procure  their  authors  immortal  repu- 
tation. On  this  principle,  what  refpe£l,  what 
veneration,  what  deference  ought  we  to  have  ïor 
the  patriarchs  and  the  prophets,  for  the  evangel- 

ias 


40         1^^^^  Omnipresence  of  Gcd. 

ifts  and  the  apoflles,  who  fpoke  of  God  m  fo  fub= 
lime  a  manner  '.  However,  be  not  ùirprifed  al 
tîieir  fuperiority  over  the  great  paç,'an  geniules  ; 
had  the  biblic?.î  writers,  like  thenv,  been  guided 
only  by  human  reafon,  liiie  them  they  would  have 
wandered  too.  If  they  i'poke  fo  nobly  of  God,  iî 
v/is  becaufe  they  liad  received  that  spirit  who 
searcketh  all  things,,  yea  the  deep  things  of  God, 
1  Cor.  ii.  10.  It  was  becaufe  all  scripture  was 
given  by  inspiration^  2  Tim.  iii.  16.  It  was  be- 
caufe the  prophecy  came  not  in  old  time  by  the 
ivili  of  man,  but  Lwly  men  of  God  spake  as  Xhcj 
ivere  moved  by  the  Holy  Gbostj  2  Pet,  i.  21. 

o.  Make  a  third  refic£\ion.  This  attribute  cf 
Gùd' removes  the  greatest  stumbling-bhcks  that 
sceptics  and  infdel's  pretend  to  rieet  ivitb  in  re- 
ligion» It  juftifies  all  thoio  dark  myfteries  which 
are  above  the  comprehenGon  of  our  feeble  reafon. 
We  would  not  make  ufe  of  this  reSedlion  to 
open  a  way  for  human  fancieç,  and  to  authorize 
e-very  thing-  that  is  prefented  to  us  under  the  idea 
of  the  marvellous.  All  doctrines  that  are  incom- 
prehcnfible  are  not  divine,  nor  ongbt  we  to  em- 
brace any  opinion  merely  becaufe  it  is  beyond 
our  knowledge.  But  when  a  religion,  in  other 
.refpecls,  hath  good  guarintec?,  when  we  have 
;Tood  arguments  to  prove  that  fuch  a  revelation 
comes  from  heaven,  when  we  certainly  know  that 
it  is  God  who  fpeaks,  ought  we  to  be  furprifed, 
if  ideas  of  God,  which  come  fo  fully  authenticat- 
ed, abforb  and  confound  us  ?  1  freely  grant, 
thftt,  had  I  confalted  my  own  reafon  only,  1  could 
not  have  difcovered  feme  myfteries  of  the  gofpel. 
Neverthelef;>,  when  I  think  on  the  immenilty  of 
God,  when  I  cafl  my  eyes  on  that  vart  ocean, 
',vhen  I  confider  that  immenfe  all,  nothing  afton- 
ii'hes  me,  nothing  (lumblcs  me,  nothing  feems  to 
me  inadmilTible,  how  incomprehenfible  foever  it 
ïT.ay  he.  When  the  fubject  is  divine,  I  am  ready 
to  believe  all,  to  admit  all,  to  receive  all  ;  pro- 
vided 


The  Omniprésence  of  God.         41 

Vîded  I  be  convinced  that  it  is  God  himfelf  who 
fpeaks  to  me,  or  any  one  on  his  part.  After  this,. 
I  am  no  more  aftonifhed  that  there  are  three  dif- 
tindl  perfons  in  one  divine  effence  ;  one  God,  and.' 
yet  a  Father,  a  Son,  and  a  Holy  Ghoft.  After 
this,  I  am  no  more  aflomihed  that  God  forefees 
all  without  forcing  any  ;  permits  fin  without 
forcing  the  finner  ;  ordains  free  and  intelligent 
creatures  to  fuch  and  fuch  ends,  yet  without  de- 
ftroying  their  intelligente  or  their  liberty.  Af- 
ter this,  I  am  no  more  aftoniflied  that  the  jufticc 
of  God  required  a  fatisfa^lion  proportional  to  his 
greatnefs,  that  his  own  love  hath  provided  t h aft- 
fatisfaftion,  and  that  God,  from  the  abundance 
of  his  compaffion,  defigned  the  mydery  of  an  irir- 
carnate  God  ;  a  myftery  which  angels  admire 
"while  fceptics  oppofe  ;  a  myftery  which  abforbs 
human  reafon,  but  which  fills  all  lieaven  with 
fongs  of  praife  ;  a  myftery  which  is  the  great 
vjysterjy  by  excellence,  1  Tim.  iii.  16*  but  the 
greatnefs  of  which  nothing  flioold  make  us  rejeft, 
fince  religion  propofeth  it  as  the  grand  effort  of 
the  wifdom  of  the  incomprehenfible  God,  and 
commandeth  us  to  receive  it  on  the  teftimony  of 
the  incomprehenfible  God  himlelf.  Either  reli- 
gion mufl:  tell  us  nothing  about  God,  or  what  it 
tells  us  muft  be  beyond  our  capacities,  and,  in 
difcovering  even  the  borders  of  this,  immenfe 
ocean,  it  muft  needs  exhibit  a  vaft  extent  in 
which  our  feeble  eyes  are  loft.  But  what  fur- 
prifes  me,  what  ftumbles  me,  what  frightens  me, 
is  to  fee  a  diminutive  creature,  a  contemptible 
man,  a  little  ray  of  light  glimmering  through  a 
few  feeble  organs,  controvert  a  point  with  the 
Supreme  Being,  oppofe  that  Intelligence  who  Gt- 
teth  at  the  helm  of  the  world  ;  queftion  what  !v^ 
affirms,  difpute  what  he  determine?,  appeal  from 
his  deciGons,  and,  even  after  God  hath  given 
evidence,  reject  all  doctrines  that  are  beyond  liis 
capacity.      Enter  into   thy  nothingnefs,   mo\;^i 

creature. 


42         The  Omniprésence  of  God, 

creature.  What  madnefs  animates  thee  ?  Ho\t- 
'jareft  thou  pretend,  thou  who  srt  but  a  point, 
thou  whofe  effencc  is  but  an  atom,  to  meafure 
thy ftU"  with  the  Supreme  Being, -with  him  who' 
fills  heaven  and  earth,  with  him  whom  bewcsrij 
the  bea'ocTi  of  heavens  cannot  contain  ?  I  Kings 
vui.  27.  '*  Canll  thou  by  fcavching  find  out 
God  ?  Ganfl  thou  find  out  the  Almighty  to  per- 
fection ?  High  as  heawen,  what  canll  thou  do  ? 
deeper  than  hell,  what  canft  thou  know  ?"  Jot> 
xi.  7»  •  "  He  iTt-etcheth  out  the  north  over  the 
empty  place,  aud  hangeih  the  earth  upon  noth- 
ing. He  bindeih  up  the  waters  in  his  thick 
clouds,  the  pillars  ot"  heaven  tremble,  and  are  al-- 
tonifiied  at  his  reproof;  Lo  thefe  are  parts  of  his 
ways,  but  how  little  a  portion  is  heard  of  him  ? 
but  the  thunder  of  his  power  who  can  under- 
hand ?  '  Gird  up  now  thy  loins  like  a  man;  for 
I  will  demand  ot  thee,  and  anlwer  thou  me. 
Where  waft  thou  when  I  laid  the  fonndations  of 
the  earth  ?  declare,  if  thou  haft  underftanding,'* 
c'h.  xxvi.  7>  11,  14-.  -  *'  Who  hath  laid  the  meal"^ 
lires  thereof  ?  who  hàth  ftretc-htd  the  line  upon 
it  ?  Vv'hereupon  are  the  foundations -thereof  fnft-= 
ened  ?  who  laid  the  corner.ftcne  thereof,  when 
the  morning  ftars  fang  together,  and  all  the  fous 
of  God  Oiouted  for  joy  ?  Who  ftrut  up  the  Tea 
with  doors,  when  I  made  the  cloud  the  garment 
thereof,  and  thick  d;vrknelV  a  fwaddling  b:ind  for 
it  ?  when  I  brake  up  for  it  my  decreed  place,  and 
fet  bars  and  doors,  and  f.»id,  Hitherto  Oialt  thou 
come  and- no  further:  and  hc^re  Cijll  thy  proud 
waves  be  ftayed  ?"  ch.  xxxviii.  1,  2,  3,  Êcc.  "  He 
that  reproveth  God,  let  him  an  Twer  this,"  ch.-  x). 
2.  "  O.Lord,  fuch  knowledge  is  too  wonderful 
fo.r  me-;  it  is  too  high,  I  cannot  attain  unto  it  Î" 
4.  But,  my  brethren,  (hall  thefe  be  the  only 
inferences  from  our  text  ?  (hall  we  reap  only 
fpeculations  from  this  difcourfe  ?  (liall  we  only 
believe,  admire,  and  exclaim  ?      Ah  Î  from  this 

idea 


TAr  Omniprt^nce  of  Go  à,         43 

:.*EÎca  of  God,  I  fee  all  tbe  virtues  issue  ivhich  rc^ 
îigio Tt-  preset ibes  ! 

If  liich  be  the  grandeur  of  the  God  I  ador?, 
miferable  wretch  1  what  oiigh;  my  repentance  to 
be  !  I,  a  contemptible  worm,  I,  a  ercati>re 
whom  God  could  tread  beneath  his  feet,  and 
crufii  into  duft  by  a  Tingle  2tt  of  his  will,  I  hàv^ 
rebelled  againil  the  ^gr.eat  God,  1  have  endeav- 
oured ZQ  prcDoke  bim  to  jealousy^  as  if  I  had.  been 
stronger  than  he^  I  Cor.  x.,^2.  I  have  infulted 
that  Majefty  which  the  angels  of  heaven  adore  ; 
1  have  attacked  God,  with  madnefs  and  boldnefs, 
on  his  throne,  and  in  his  empire.  Is  it  poiTiole 
Î0  feel  remorfes  too  cutting  for  fins  which  the 
nrijefty  of  the  offended,  and  the  littlenefs  e£  the 
offender,  maire  fo.  very  atrocious  ? 

.If  fuch  be  the  grandeur  of  God,  what  fiiouldr 
our  ùumilitj'ht  i  Grandees  of  the  world,  mortal 
divinities,  who  fwell  with  vanity  in  the  prefence 
of  God,  onpofe  yourfelves  to  the  immenfe,  God. 
Behold  his  eternal  ideas,  his  infinite  knowledge^ 
his  general  influence,  his  univerfal  diredion  ;  en- 
ter his  immenfe  ocean  of  perfections  and  virtues, 
"vvhat  are  ye  ?  a  grain  of  dult,  a  point,  an  ator^i, 
a  nothing. 

If  fuch  be  the  grandeur  of  God,  what  ought 
our  confidence  to  be  .1  *'  If  God  be  for  us,  who 
can  be  againfl  us?'*  Rom.  viii.  31.  Poor  crea- 
ture, toffed  about  the  world,  as  by  fo  many 
winds,  by  hunger,  by  ficknefs,  by  perfecution^  by 
mifery,  by  nakednefs,  by  exile  ;  fear  not  in  :a 
vefTcl  of  which  God  himfelf  is  the  pilot. 

But  above  all,  if  fuch  be  the  grandeur  of  God, 
it  God  be  every  where  prefent,  what  &ould  our 
viigilance  be  Î  and,  to  return  to  the  idea  with 
which  we  began,  what  impreiTion  fhould  this 
thought  make  on  reaforable  fouls  !  God  seetb 
mc*  When  thou  wast  under  tbe  fig-tree,  faid  Je- 
fus  Chrift  to  Nathaniel,  I  saw  ibee^  John  io  48, 
Sec  Eccief.  iii,  23,  24,  25.      We   do  not  kno\v 

"^vhat 


.44         The  Omnipresence  of  Cod. 

Tvliat  Jefus  Chrift  faw  under  the  fig-tree,  nor  is  it 
recelT^ry  now  to  inquire  •  but  it  was  certainly 
Icniething  which,  T*^athaniel  was  fully  perfuaded, 
no  mortal  eye  had  feen.  As  foon,  tbf^refore,  as 
Jefus  Ghrift  had  uttered  thefe  words,  he  believed, 
and  iaid,  Rabbi^  tbou  art  the  Christ,  the  son  of 
tie  living  God.  My  brethren,  God  ufeth  the 
fame  language  to  e;ich  of  you  to-day  ;  ivhen  tbou 
'^ast  under  the  f^g-tree,  I  sanv  thee. 

Thou  hypocrite,  when  wrapped  in  a  veil  of  re- 
ligion, ernbclliQied  with  exterior  piety,  thou  con- 
cealedft  an  impious  heart,  and  didft  endeavour  to 
impofe  on  God  and  man,  /  saio  thee.  I  pene- 
trated all  thofe  labyrinths,  I  diffipated  all  thofe 
darkneiïes,  I  dived  into  all  thy  deep  dcfigns. 

Thou  worldling,  who,  with  a  prudence  truly 
infernal,  haft  the  art  of  giving  a  beautiful  tint  to 
t^e  moll  odious  objects  ;  who  appeared  not  to 
feate  thy  neighbour,  becauie  thou  doft  not  openly 
attack  him  ;  not  to  falsify  thy  promife,  becaufe 
thou  h-dfl  the  art  of  eluding  it  ;  not  to  opprefs 
thy  dependents,  becaufe  thou  knoweft  how  to  im- 
pofe filence  on  them  :  /  sai'j  tbee^  when  thou 
gaved  thofe  fecret  itabs,  when  thou  did"!!  receive 
thoie  bribes,  and  didi>  accumulate  thofe  wages  of 
wnrighteoufneis,  which  cry  for  veugeance  againO: 
thee. 

Thou  flave  to  fenfu^.lity,  afliamed  of  thine  ex- 
cefTes  before  the  face  of  the  fun,  /  sanv  thee^ 
■when,  with  bars  and  bolts,  with  obfcurity  and 
darknefs,  and  compKcated  precautions,  thou  didft 
hide  thy f(*lf  from  the  eyes  of  men,  defile  the  tenu 
pie  of  God,  and  make  the  members  of  Christ  the 
7nembers  of  a  harlot,    1  Cor.  vi.  Î5. 

My  brethren,  the  difcourfes,  which  we  ufually 
preach  to  you,  abforb  your  minds  in  a  multitude 
of  ideas,  A  colledlion  of  moral  ideas  perhaps 
confound  inftead  of  indrudling  voo,  and  wht-n  we 
attempt  to  engage  you  in  too  many  refledtions, 
you  enter  really  into  none.     Behold  an  epitome 

of 


The  Omnipresence  of  God*         45 

of  religion.  Behold  a  morality  in  three  words. 
Return  to  your  houles,  and  every  r/here  carry 
this  reflcflion  with  you,  God  seeth  me^  God  secth 
me»  To  all  the  wiles  of  the  devil,  to  all  the 
fnares  of  the  world,  to  all  the  baits  of  fin,  oppol'c 
this  reficdioiT,  G^d  seeth  me.  If,  clothed  with 
a  human  form,  he  were  ahvays  in  your  path,  were 
he  to  follow  you  to  every  place,  were  he  ahvays 
before  you  with  his  raaicftic  face,  with  eyes  fiafii- 
ing  with  lightning,  with  looks  infpiring  t<?rror, 
dare  ye  before  his  augnft  preience  give  a  loofe  to 
your  paillons  ?  But  you  have  been  hearing  that 
his  majeftic  face  is  every  where,  thole  fparhling 
eyes  do  infpe6l  you  in  every  place,  thofe  terrible 
looks  do  confider  you  every  where.  Particularly, 
in  the  enfuing  week,  while  you  are  preparing  for 
the  Lord's  fupper,  recolledl  this.  Let  each  ex- 
amine his  own  heart,  and  endeavour  to  fearch 
:nto  his  confcience,  where  he  may  difcover  fo 
much  weaknefs,  fo  much  corruption,  fo  much 
hardnefs,  fo  many  unclean  fources  overflowing 
with  fo  many  excelTes,  and  let  this  idea  fiirke 
each  of  you,  God  sectb  me,  God  ftreth  me,  as  I 
fee  myfelf,  unclean,  ungrateful,  and  rebellious. 
O  may  this  idea  produce  contrition  and  forrow,  a 
jufl  remorfe  and  a  found  converfion,  a  holy  and  a 
fervent  communion,  crowned  with  graces  and 
virtues.  Happy,  if,  after  our  examination,  we 
have  a  new  heart  1  a  heart  agreeable  to  thofe 
eyes  that  fearch  and  try  it  !  Happy,  if,  after 
our  communion,  after  a  new  examination,  we 
can  fay  with  the  prophet,  0  Lord)  tbou  hast 
proved  mine  hearty  tbou  hast  tried  me^  and  host 
found  nothings  Pfal.  xvii,  3.  So  be  it.  To  God 
be  honour  and  glory  for  ever.     AmeUo 


SERMON    1% 

THÉ   MANNER    OF  PRAISING   GÛD, 

Frcached  after  the  adminiflration  of  the  Lord's 
Supper, 

Psalm  xxxiii.  i. 

Praise  is  comely  for  the  upright» 

X  HERE  is  fometbing  very  noble,  my 
lîrethren,  in  the  end  for  -which  we  are  now  al- 
lembled  in  the  prefencc  of  God.  His  providence 
hath  infinitely  diverfified  the  conditions  of  thofe 
w-Iij  compofe  this  alTembly.  Some  are  placed  in 
the  moft  eminent,  others  in  the  moft  obfcure  pofts 
of  fociety.  Some  live  in  fplendor  and  opulence, 
others  in  meannefs  and  indigence.  One  is  em- 
ployed in  the  turbulence  of  the  army,  anothes-  in 
the  filence  of  the  firudy.  NotwithfUndin^  thi"? 
infinite  variety  of  employments,  ranks,  and' af^cs, 
**ve  all  affcmble  to-day  in  one  place  ;  one  objetl 
occupies  us  ;  one  fentiment  animates  us  ;  one 
voice  makes  the  church  refound.  Praise  je  the 
Lord,  Jor  his  mercy  endurctb  for  ever,  Plaf. 
cxxxvi,  I.  If  there  be  an  objedl,  that  can  give 
a  mortal  any  ideas  of  the  firft  impreflions,  which 
are  made  on  a  foul,  at  its  firft  entering  the  glori- 
ous palace  of  the  bleiTed  God  in  heaven,  it  is  this. 
The  firft  objedls,  that  ftrlke  fach  a  foul,  are  mul- 
titudes of  all  nations,  tongues,  and  people,  con- 
centered in  a  meditation  on  the  beneficence  of 
God,  proftrating  themlelves  before  his .  throne, 
cafting  their  crowns  at  his  fi^et, -and  crying  out 
of  the  abundance  of  their  hearts,  which  contem- 
plate the  perfections  of  a  Being  worthy  of  their 
profoundcft  praife,  Amen,  Blessing,  and  glory^ 
and  wisdomj  and  thanksgivings  and  bonour,^  find 

powery  ^ 


48        The  Manner  of  praising  God* 

poiuery  and  mighty  be  unto  our  God^  for  ever  and: 
every  Ameny  Rev,  vii.  12.  **  We  give  thee 
thanks,  O  Lord  God  Almighty,  which  art,  and 
•watV,,  and  art  to  come  j  bccauCe  thou=  haft  taken 
to  thee  thy  great  pawer,  and  haft  reigned,"'  chap. 
3ti.  17.  "Great  and  marvellous  are  thy  works, 
luOrd  God  Almighty  ;  juft  and  true  are  thy  ways, 
thou  King  of  faints  I"  chap.  xv.  3.  '*Unto  him 
that  loved  us,  ar.d  wafhed  us  from  our  fins  in  his 
•  wn  blood,  and  hath  made  us  kiftgi  and  priefts 
unto  God  and  his  Father;  to  him  be  glory  and 
dominion  for  ever  and  ever,  Amen,"  chap.  i.  5.  6. 
This  is  the  employment  of  the  blcffed  in  heaveu: 
this  is  what  we  are  doing  to-day  on  earth. 

But  what  a  contradi(Stion,  what  a  contraft  ap- 
pears, when,  lifting  up  the  exterior,  habit  of  pie- 
ty, that  covers  fome  of  ivs,  we  examine  the  in- 
ward difpofitions  of  the  heart.  The  pfalms, 
which  are  uttered  with  the  voice,  are  contradift- 
ed  by  the  tempers  of  the  heart.  The  mouths, 
th.n  were  juft  now  opened  to  biefs  the  Creator, 
will  prefently  be  opened  again  to  blafpheme  and, 
to  curfe  him.  The  praifes,  which  feemed  fo  prop- 
er to  pleafe  him  in  whofe  honour  they  were  of- 
fered, will  incur  this  reproof,  Thou  ivicked  man  I 
What  bast  thou  to  do  to  take  mj  covenant  in  thy 
mouth  ?  Pial.  1.  16. 

My  brethren,  if  we  would  join  our  voices  with 
tbofe  of  angels,  wc  muft  have  the  fentiraents  of 
angels.  We  muft,  (at  leaft  as  far  as  the  duty  is 
imitable  by  fuch  frail  c.eaturcs)  we  muft,  in  or- 
der to  worfliip  God,  as  thofe  happy  fpirits  praife 
liim,  love  him  as  they  do,  ferve  him  as  they  do, 
devote  ourfelves  to  Inm  as  they  devote  themfclves 
to  him  ;  and  this  is  the  manner  of  pralfing  God, 
to  which  I  exhort,  and  in  which  î  would  endeav- 
our to  inflru£l  you  to-day,  agreeably  to  the  proph- 
et's exalted  notion  of  it  in  the  words  of  the  text. 
What  day  can  be  more  proper  to  Infpire  fuch  a 
noble  defi^n  ?     What  day  can  be  more  proper  to 

engage 


71ie  Manner  of  fraim^  Gcd.       49 

engage  you  to  mix  your  vporfliip  with  that  of 
«lorified  intelligences^,  than  this,  on  which  we 
;ire  corne  ur,:o  the  city  of  the  living  God,  the 
'ieaveniy  Jerusalem^  to  an  innumerable  company 
of  angels,  and  to  the  first-born  ivbich  are  ivritten 
in  heaven?   Heb.  xii.  22,  23. 

But,  who  are  we,  to  be  admitted  into  a  fociet,/ 
Î0  holy  ?  Great  God  1  Thou  deft  appear  to  us 
'to-day,  as  thou  tUdft  formerly  to  thy  prophet, 
sitting  upon  a  tbronsy  htgb  and  lifted  ttp)  and  thy 
train  filling  the  temple,  lia.  vi.  1.  Around  thee 
Hand  the  feraphims,  covering  themfelves  vt'ith 
their  wings  in  thy  majeftic  prefence,  and  crying 
one  to  another,  Holy,  bolyy  koly,  is  the  Lord  of 
hosts,  the  ivbole  earth  is  full  of  his  glory,  ver.  3* 
We  are  ftricken,  as  thy'prophct  was,  with  fuch- 
a  tremendous  vifion,  and  each  of  us  cries  with- 
bim,  JVot  is  me  !  I  am  undone  !  I  am  a  man  of 
unclean  lips  !  and  yet,  mine  eyes  have  seen  the- 
Kmg,  the  Lord  of  hosts,  ver.  5.  O  g^reat  God  Î 
command  one  of  thy  feraphims  to  fly  to  us,  as  he 
flev,?  to  him  ;  bid  him  touch  our  mouths,  as  he 
touched  his,  with  a  ii^je  coal  taken  from  off  the 
altar,  ver.  6,-  and,  in  this  day  of  grace,  and  mer- 
cy, let  him  fay  to  each  of  us,  Lc,  ibis  bath  toucha 
cd  thy  lips,  and  thine  iniquity  is  taken  away, 
and  t by  sin  purged  I  Amen,  ver.  7. 

**  Praife  ii- comely  for  the  upright,"  The 
praifing  of  God  is  a  duty^  of  which  v/e  may  form 
two  différent  notions,  a  general  3iud  a  particular 
notion.  B)"'  a  ^t^ifra/ notion  of  praife,  I  mean, 
the  excrclfe  of  a  man,  who,  being  capable  of  ex- 
amining fublime 'objefts,  and  of  comprehending 
grand  fubjtfts,  fixeth  his  attention  on  the  âttri- 
butfs  of  God,  feels  the'  force  cf  thofe  proofs 
■which  elldblifh  the  truth  of  them,  is  delighted 
with  them  to  a  certain  àtgrte,  and  is  happy  in 
publifliing  their  prinfe.  1  mean,  by  h  particular 
n&iiOii  of  praifing  God,   the  cxercife  of  a  mau, 

:E2  -who 


'50       The  Manner  of  praising  God. 

■who,  havîng  received  fome  fignal  favour  of  Gocf-, 
loves  to  exprefs  his  gratitude  for  it.- 

Each  of  tbefe  exerciies  of'pTails  fuppofeth  re^ 
flections  and  sentiments.  To  pfaife  God  in  the 
firft  fenfe,  to  rcflecl  on  his  attributes,  to  con- 
Terfe,  and  to  write  about  them,  without  having 
the  heart  aSeded,  and  without  loving  a  Being, 
"who  is  defcribed  as  fupremely  amiable,  is  a  life- 
lefs  praife,  more  fit  for  a  worldly  philofopher 
than  for  a  rational  chrirtianè  To  praife  God  in 
the  fécond  fenfe,  to  be  aifetted  with  the  favours 
of  God,  without  having  any  diftind  notions  of 
God,  -without  krwwing  whether  the  defcriptioni 
of  the  perfeciions,  that  arc  attributed  to  him,  be 
flights  of  fancy  or  real  truths,  is  an  exercift 
more  fit  for  a  bigot,  who  believes  without  know» 
iîîg  why,  than  for  a  spiritiuil  man,  nvbo  judgeth 
aii  things,  1  Cor.  ii.  15.  If  we  diltmguKh  the 
part,  which  thefe  two  faculties,  reftedion  and 
fcntiment,  take  in  tbtTc  two  exereifes  of  praife, 
we  may  obferve  that  the  iirft,  I  mean  the  praife 
of  God  taken  in  a  general  fenfe,  is  the  fruit  of 
reflections  and  the  ïtcowà  oî zentiment.  The  firft 
is,  if  I  may  be  allowed  to  fpeak  fo,  the  praife  ef 
the  mind  ;   the  fécond  is  the  praife  of  the  heart. 

it  is  difficult  to  determine  which  of  thefe  two 
notions  prevails  in  the  texty  whether  the  pfalmlft 
«fe  the  word  praise  in'the  firft  ov.  in  the  fécond 
fenfe.  If  we  judge  by  the  whole  fubjecl  of  the 
pfalm,  both  are  included*  The  praife  of  the  heart 
is  eafiiy  difcovered.  Whether  the  author  of  the 
pfnlni  were  Hezckiah,  as  many  of  the  fathers 
thought,  who  fay,  this  prince  compoied  it  after 
the  miraculous  defeat  of  Senachcrib  ;  or  wheth- 
er, which  is  moft  likely,  David  were  ths  compof- 
cr  of  it,  after  one  of  thofe  preternatural  deliver- 
ances, with  whicb  his  life  was  fo  often  fignallz- 
€d  ;  what  I  call  the  praife  of  the  heart,  that  is, 
a  lively  fenfe  of  fome  ineftimablc  blcHing,  is 
tlearly  to  be  feeu.     On  tb€  other  hand,  it  is  ftill 

clearerj^ 


The  Manner  of  praising  God.       5  it 

clearer,  that  the  facred  author  doth  not  celebrate 
only  one  particular  obje(St  in-  the  pfalm.  He 
gives  a  greater  icope  to  his  meditation,  and  coni- 
prifeth  ia  it  all  the  works,  and  all  the  perfedions 
«fOod. 

Although  the  folemnity  of  this  day  calls  us  lefs 
to  the  praife  of  the  mind,  than  to  that  of  the 
heart  ;.  although  we  intend  to  make  the  latter 
the  principal  fubjedt  of  this  difcourfe  ;.  yet  it  is 
neceffary  to  attend  a  little  to  the  former* 

I.  Tbc  praise  of  the  Lordy  taking-  the  word 
praife  in  the  vague  fenfe,  that  we  have  affixed  to 
the  term,  is  comely  for  the  upright  :  and  it  is 
comely  for  none  but  for  thcm»- 

"  Praife  is  comely  for  the  upright.'*  Nothing 
is  more  worthy  of  the  attention  of  an  intelligent 
being,  particularly,  nothing  is-*  more  worthy  of 
the  irait'dtioH  of  a  fupcrior  genius,  than  the  won- 
derful perfedions  of  the  Creator.  A  ma^n  of  fu- 
pcrior genius  is  required,  indeed,  to  ufe  his  tal- 
ents to  cultivate  the  fcienccs  and  the  liberal  art»;, 
but  after  all,  the  mind  of  man,  efpecially  of  that, 
5nan  to  whom  God  hath  given  fuperior  talents, 
which  alTimilate  him  to  celeftial  intelligences,  was 
not  created  to  unravel  a  point  in  chronology,  to 
learn  the  various  ibuads  by  which  different  na- 
tions fignify  their  ideas,  to  meafure  a  line,  or  to- 
lofe  itfelf  in  an  algebraic  calculation  ;  the  mind 
of  fuch  a  man  was  not  created  to  ftudy  the  ftars,. 
to  count  their  number,  to  meafure  their  magni- 
tude, to  difcover  more  than  have  yet  been  oblerv- 
ed.  Nobler  objeds  ought  to  occupy  him.  It 
brcomes  fuch  a  man  to  contemplate  God,  to  guide 
the  reft  of  mankind,  to  jead  them  to  God,  who 
dvjclkth  in  the  ligbty  ivbicb  no  man  can  approach 
unto,  I:  Tim.  vi.  16.  and  to  teach  us  to»attenu- 
ate  the  clouds,  that  hide  him  from  our  feeble  eyes» 
It  becomes  fuch  a  man  to  ufe  that  fuperiority^ 
vhich  his  knowledge  gives  him  over  us,  to  elevate^ 
«Û*  lijcaits  Above  the   low    rcg^ion   of  tcrreftriaî 

thijïgs. 


^        The  Manner  of  praising  God, 

things,  where  they  grovel  with  the  brute  bcnfls\ 
and  to  help  us  to  place  them  on  the  bright  abode 
of  the  immortal  God.  Thtprahe  of  the  Lord  is 
comely  fur  upright  men. 

But  praife  is  comely  only  for  uprirrln  men,  I 
believe  it  is  needlefs  now  to  explain  chc  word 
uprightness.  The  term  is  taken  in  the  text  im 
the  nobleft  fenfe  :  this  is  a  fufiicient  explication, 
and  this  is  fufiicient  alfo  to  convince  us  that  the 
praifing  of  God  is  comely  for  none  but  upright 
men.  I  cannot  fee,  wiibout  indignation,  a  phi- 
lofopher  trifle  with  the  important  cueflions  that 
relate  to  the  attributes  of  God,  and  make  then-, 
ilmple  cxercifts  of  genius,  In  which  the  heart 
Irath  no  coHcern>  examining  v/hether  there  be  a 
God,  .  with  the  fame  indifTerence  with  which  he 
inquires  whether  there  be  a  v:Kuum  in  nature,  or 
>vhether  mj^tter  be  inSiiitely  divifible»'  On  deter- 
înining  the  queftions  which  Tciate  to  the-  divine 
attributes,  depend  our  hopes  and  fears,  the  plana 
^ve  n)u(t  forrR,  and  the-  courie  of  life  we  ought  to 
purfue  ;  and  with  thefe  views  we  fliould  e^camine 
*he  perfediens  of  God  ;.  thefé  arc  conftrquences 
that  fhould  follow  our  inquiries.  With  fuch  dif- 
pofi tiens  the  pfa4mift  celebrated  the-  praiies  of 
God,  in  tha  pfalra  out  of  which  we  have  taken 
the  text."  How  comely  are  the  praifes  of  God  in-» 
the  mouth  of  fuch  a  man  ]: 

Let  us  follow  the  holy  man  a' moment  in  his-^ 
m"editation.  His  pfalm  is  not  compofed  in  fchol- 
allic  form,  in  which  the  author  confines -himfclf 
to  fixed  rules,  and  fcrupuloudy  following  a  phi- 
lofophicnl  .method,  lays  down  principles,  and  in- 
fers confequtnces.  However,  he  eftablilheth, 
principles  the  moft  proper  to  give  us  fubllme  ideas 
of  the  Creator;  and  he  fpeaks  with  more  precif. 
ion  of  the  works  and  attributes  of  God,  than  the 
greateft  philofophers  have  fpoken  them. 

How  abfurdly  have  philofophers  treated  of  the 
origin  of  the  world  Ï     How  few  of  thrm  have 

ixafoned 


Tkt  Manner  of  praising  God.       53 

reafoned  conclufively  on  this  important  fubjed  ? 
Our  prophet  folvcs  the  important  quedion  by  one 
fingle  principle,  and  what  is  more  remarkable, 
this  principle,  which  is  nobly  expreffed,  carries 
the  cleareft  evidence  with  it.  The  principre  is 
this  :  By  the  word  of  the  Lord  were  the  heavens 
viade^  and  all  the  host  of  them  by  the  breath  of 
bis  mouth.  This  is  the  moft  rational  account 
that  was  ever  given  of  the  creation  of  the  world. 
The  world  is  the  work  of  a  felf-efficient  will,  and 
it  is  this  principle  alone  that  can  account  for  itsr 
creation.  The  moft  {impte  appearances  in  nature 
are  fufficient  to  lead  us  to  this  principle.  Either 
my  will  is  fclf-eflicient,  or  there  is  fome  other 
being  whofe  will  is  felf-efficient. 

What  I  fay  of  myfelf  I  fay  of  my  parents,  and 
what  I  affirm  of  my  parents  I  affirm  of  my  more 
remote  anceClors,  and  of  all  the  finite  creatures 
from  whom  they  derived  their  exiftenee.  Moft 
certainly,  cither  finite  beings  have  felf-efficient 
wills,  which  it  is  impoffible  to  fuppofe,  for  a 
finite  creature  with  a  felf-efficient  will  is  a  con» 
tradiclion  ;  either,  I  fay,  a  finite  creature  hath  a 
felf-efficient  will,  or  there  is  a  firft  caufe  who 
hath  a  felf-efficient  will  ;  and  that  there  is  fuch 
a  being,  is  the  principle  of  the  pfalraift  :  By  the 
word  of  the  Lord  were  the  heavens  made^  and  all 
the  host  of  them  by  the  breath  of  his  mouth. 

If  philofophers  have  reafoned  inconclufively  on 
the  origin  of  the  world,  they  have  fpokcn  of  it» 
government  with  equal  uncertainty.  The  pfalm- 
ill:  determines  this  queftion  with  great  facility, 
by  a  fingle  principle,  which  rcfults  from  the  for- 
mer, and  which,  like  the  former,  carries  its  evi- 
dence with  it,  "The  Lord  looketh  from  hcav-. 
en  :  he  confidereth  all  the  works  of  all  the  inhab- 
itants of  the  earth,"  vtr.  13,  14.  This  is  the 
dodrine  of  Providence.  And  on  what  is  the 
do£lrine  of  Providence  founded  ?  On  this  prin- 
ciple ;  GQàfaihion^th  their  hearts  alike,  ver.  15»^. 

Attend 


5^4        ^-^^^  Manner  of  praising  Gvdl- 

Attend  a  m-oment  to  the  evidence  cf  this  reafcn.- 
jng,  my  brethren.  The  doclrine  cf  Providence, 
exprefTed  in  thele  words,  God  ccnsideretb  the 
'iVor/iS  of  the  inhabitants  of  the  earthy  is  a  necef- 
fary  conlequence  of  this  principle,  God  fasbionetb 
their  hearts  alike  j-  and  ihis. principle  is  a  necef- 
fary'confequence  of  that  which  the  pfalmitt'had 
before  laid  down  to  account  for  the  origin  of  the 
•world.  Yes  I  from  the  doftrine  of  God  the  Cre- 
ator of  men,  follows  that  of  God  the  infpedor, 
the  diredlor,  ;hc  rewarder,  and  the  puniflier  of 
their  adions.  One  of  the  moft  fpecious  objec- 
tions, that  hath  ever  been  oppofed  to  the  dodlrinc 
of  Providence  J  is  a  contrail  between  the  grandeur 
©f  God  and  tht*  meannefs  ot"  iiien.  How  can 
ftich  an  inlignificant  creature  as  man,  be  an  ob- 
ject of  the  care  and  attention  of  fuch  a  magnifi- 
cent Being  as  God  ?  No  obje£\ion  can  be  more 
iWcious,  or,  in  appearance,,  more  invincible. 
The  diflance  between  the  meanell  infecl  and  the 
xnightieft  monarch,  who  treads-and  cruflies  rep- 
tiles to  death  without  the  leaft  regard  to  them, 
ÎS  a  very  imperfe<Sl  image  of  the  drftance  between 
God  and  man;  That  which  proves  that  it  would 
be  beneath  the  dignity  cf  a  monarch  to  obferve 
the  motions  of  ants,  or  worms,  to  intercit  him- 
ielf  in  their  actions,  to  puuiHu  or  t©  reward  them, 
.  feems  to  demonfirate,  :  tha.t  God  would  degrade 
him felf  were  he  to  obferve,  to  direû,  to  punifh, 
uO  reward  mankind,  who  are  infinitely  inferior  to 
Iiim,-  But,  one  fact  is  fufficient  to  anfwer  this 
fpecious  objection  ;  That  is,  that  God  hath  cre- 
ated mankind.  Doth  God  degrade  hiinfflf  more 
by  governing  than  by  creating  mankind  ?  Who 
can  perfuade  himfelf,  that  a  wife  Being  hath  giv-- 
cn  to  intelligent  creatures  faculties  capable  of 
obtaining  knowledge  and  virtue,  without  willing 
that  they  fliould  endeavour  to  acquire  knowledge 
and  virtue  ?  Or  who  can  imagine,  that  a  wife 
'Being,   who  willeth  that  his  intelligent  creatures 

fliouid 


Whe  Manner  of  praising  God.       ^^ 

iîwuld  ac^quire  knowledge  and  virtue,  will  not 
punifli  them,  if  they  nt-giedl  thpfe  acquifitions  ; 
and  will  not  fliew,  by  the  diftribution  of  his  ben- 
fats,  that  he  approves  their  endeavours  to  obtain 
them  ? 

Unenlightened  philofophers  have  treated  of  the 
^attributes  of  God  with  as  much  abflrufenefs  as 
they  have  written  of  his  worJîs.  Tbt:  jnoral  at^ 
tributes  of  God,  as  they  are  called, in  the  fchools, 
'.vers  myfleries  which  they  could  not  unfold. 
Thefe  may  be  reduced  to  two  claffes,  attributes 
oï  goodness  and  attributes  of  Justice.  Philofo- 
phers, who  have  adniitted  thefe,  have  ufually 
taken  that  for  gra.ntcd  which  they  ought  to  have 
proved.  They.  colle6led  together  in  their  mind« 
all  perfeâ:io53,  they  reduced  them  all  to  one  ob- 
jetfl,  which  they  denominated  /z /ier/V<-f  ^^//Tg-  • 
and  fuppofing,  without  proving,  that  a  perfeâ: 
B?iiîg  exided,  they  attributed  to  him,  without 
proof,  every  thing  that  they  conQdered  as  a  per- 
fciElion.  The  pfalmift  (hews,  by  a  furer  way, 
that  there  h  a  God  fupremely  juft,  and  fupremely 
good^  It  is  necelTary,  in  order  to  convince  a  ra- 
tional being  of  the  juftice  .and  goodnefs  of  God, 
to  follow  fuch  a  method  as  that  v/hich  we  follow 
to  prove  bis  çxil^ence.  When  we  v/ould  prove 
the  exi{\ence  of  God,  we  fay,  there  are  creatures  ; 
therefore,  there  is  a  Creator.  In  like  manner, 
when  we  would  prove,  that  the  Creator  js  a  juft 
and  a  good  Being,  v;e  fay,  there  are  qualities  of 
goodnefs  and  juftice  in  creatures  ;  therefore,  he, 
from  whom  thefe  creatures.derive  their  exiftence, 
is  a  Being  jufl  and  good,  Now  this  is  the  rea- 
foning  of  the  pfalmift,  in  this  pfalm  :  T^'e  Lord 
iov^th  righteousness  and  jud^menty  the  ^arth  ijs 
full  of  the  goodness  j>f  the  Lord^  ver.  5.  that  is 
to  fay,  h  il  impofliDle  to  confider  the  works  of 
the  Creator,  without  receiving  evidence  of  his 
goodnefs.  All  the  works  of  nature,  which  de- 
Xïionftfate  the  goodnefs  of  God,  prove  his  juftice 


JUlll 

lUo  ; 


j^G       The  Manner  of  praising  God. 

:  nlfo  ;  for  God  hath  created  us  with  fuch  difpofi- 
tions,  that  we  cannot  enjoy  the  gifts  of  his  good- 
nefs  without  obeying  the  laws  of  his  righteouf- 
nefs.  The  happineis  Of  an  indivi<iaalj  who  pro- 
cures a.pleafure  by  difobeying  the  laws  of  equity, 
is  a  violent  happinefs,  which  cannot  be  of  long 
duration  ;  and  the  profperity  of  public  bodies, 
when  it  is  founded  in  iniquity,  is  an  edifice, 
•which  with  its  bafes  will  be  prefently  funk  and 
gone. 

But  what  we  Avould  particularly  remark  is, 
that  the  excellent  principles  of  the  pfalmift,  con- 
cerning God,  are  not  mere  fpeculations,  but 
truths  from  which  he  derives  praClicai  inferences  ;' 
Jind  he  aims  to  extend  their  influence  beyond  pri- 
vate perfons,  even  to  legifiators  and  conquerors. 
One  would  think,  confidcring  the  conduct  of 
■mankind,  that  the  confequences,  which  are  drawn 
from  the  doâ:riues  of  which  we  have  been  fpeak- 

-ing,  belong  to  none  but  to  the  dregs  of  the  peo- 
ple ;  that  law-givers  and  conx]uerors  have  a  plan 
of  morality  peculiar  to  themfelvcs,  and  are  above 
the  rules  to  which  other  men  muft  fubmit.     Our 

:|>rophet  had  other  notions.  What  are  his  max- 
ims of  policy  ?  T'hey  are  all  included  in  thefe 
words:  Blessed  is  ibc  nation  nvbose  God  is  the 
Lord,  and  the  people  ivliom  he  hath  chosen  for 
his  oKim  irtheritonce^  ver,  12.  What  are  his 
military  maxims  ?     They  are  all  included  in  thefe 

Av^ôrds  :  There  is  no  king  saved  by  the  multitude 
of  on  host  :  a  viighty  iran  is  not  delivered  by 
much  strength  :  An  horse  is  a  vain  thing  for 
safety  f  neither  shall  he  deliver  any  by  his  great 
Strength^  ver.  16,  17.  Who  propoieth  thefe 
maxims?  A  hermit,  who  never  appeared  on  the 
theatre  of  the  world  ?  or  a  man  deflitute  of  the 
talents  receîTary  to  (I'line  th^re  ?  No  :  one  of 
the  wilell:  of  kings  ;  one  of  the  mofi  bold  and 
able  generals  ;  a  m.an,  whom  God  himfelf  elect- 
ed to  govern  bis  cbcfen  people,  and  to  command 


The  Manner  of  praising  God.       57 

thofe  armies,  which  fought  the  moft  obftinate 
battles,  and  gained  the  moft  complete  vidlories. 
Were  I  to  proceed  in  explaining  the  fyftem  of 
the  pfalmift,  1  might  prove,  that  as  he  had  a 
right  to  infer  the  dodrine  of  Providence  from  the 
"Works  of  nature,  and  that  of  the  moral  attributes 
of  God  from  the  \^orks  of  creation  ;  fo,  from  the 
doctrines  of  the  moral  attributes  of  God,  of  Prov- 
idence, and  of  tt^e  works  of  creation,  he  had  a 
>Tight  to  conclude,  that  no  conquerors  or  law-giv- 
ers could  be  truly  happy,  but  thofe  who  acled 
agreeably  to  the  laws  of  the  juft  and  good  Su- 
-preme.     But  1  ftiall  not  enlarge  on  this  article. 

Permit  mc  only  to  place  in  one  point  of  view 
the  différent  phrafcs,  by  which  the  pfaliDift  de- 
fcribes  the  Deity  in  this  pfalm.  "The  earth  is 
full  of  the  goodnefs  of  the  Lord.  By  the  word 
of  the  Lord  were  the  heavens  made,  and  all  the 
shoft  of  thera  by  the  breath  of  his  nT-'Uh.  He 
gathereth  the  waters  of  the  fea  togec..,r,  as  an 
-.hisap  :  he  layeth  up  the  depth  in  florehoufes. 
The  Lord  looketh  from  heaven  :  he  beholdeth  all 
the  fons  of  men.  From  the  place  of  his  habita- 
tion he  looketh  upon  all  the  inhabitants  of  the 
earth.  He  fafhioncth  their  hearts  alike  ;  he  con- 
fidereth   al!    their    works,"    ver,   5 — 7,    13 — 15« 

From  thefe  fpcculative  ideas  of  God,  he  de- 
rives the  following  rules  of  praûice.  *' Let  all 
the  earth  fear  the  Lord  ;  let  all  the  inhabitants 
of  the  world  ftand  in  awe  of  him.  Our  foul  wait- 
cth  for  the  Lord  :  he  is  our  help  and  our  fliield. 
For  our  heart  fhall  rejoice  in  bim,  becaufe  wc 
have  trufted  in  his  holy  name.  Let  thy  mercy, 
O  Lord,  be  upon  us  according  as  we  hope  in 
thee,"  ver,  8,  20—22.  How  delightful  it  is, 
my  brethren,  to  fpeak  of  God,  when  one  hath 
talents  to  fpeak  of  him  in  fuch  a  noble  manner, 
and  when  one  intends  to  promote  the  fear  and 
the  love  of  him,  with  an  univerfal  obedience  ta 
liini,  from  all  that  is  faid  I  |iow  well  it  becomes 
F  fuch 


58        The  Manner  of  praising  God. 

fuch  a  mîin  to  praife  God  Î  The  praise  of  the 
Lord  is  comely  in  the  months  oï  upright  men. 

II.  Let  ys  now  apply  the  fubjedl  more  imme- 
diately to  the  fervice  of  this  day.  To  praise 
God  is  a  phrafc,  which  is  fometimes  taken,  in  a 
particular  fenfe,  for  the  exercife  of  a  perfon,  who, 
having  received  fingular  favours  of  God,  delights 
in  expreiTing  his  gratitude  to  him.  This  praise 
IS  comely  in  tbe  mouth  of  an  upright  ma»,  for 
four  reafons. 

Firft.  Becaufe  he  î^rrangeth  them  in  their  true 
order,  highly  efiunating  what  deferves  a  high 
efteem,  and  moC:  highly  eftimating  what  deferves 
the  higheft  efteem. 

Secondly.  Becaufe  he  employs  all  his  benefits 
in  the  fervice  of  his  benefadlor* 

Thirdly.  Becaufe,  while  he  recounts  his  blefT- 
ings,  he  diverts  himfelf  of  all  merit,  and  afcribes 
them  only  to  the  goodnefs  of  God  from  whom 
they  proceed. 

Fourthly.  Becaufe  he  imitates  that  goodnefs 
and  love,  which  iuclined  God  to  blefc  him  in  fuch 
a  manner. 

I  will  af£x  to  each  of  thefe  refle£lions  a  fingle 
Avord.  Praise,  or  if  you  will,  gratitude,  is  come- 
ly for  the  upright,  becaufe  it  is  ivise,  reel,  hum- 
lie,  and  magnanimous  :  In  thefe  four  refped..s, 
praise  is  eomety  for  the  upright,  Thefe  are  the 
ientiments,  with  which  the  holy  facrament,  of 
which  we  have  taken  this  morni/ig,  fhould  infpirc 
ts.  Thefe  are  the  moft  important  refleftions, 
-with  which  wc  can  clofe  this  difcourfe, 

I.  The  gratitude  of  upright  men  is  ivise.  The 
praife  of  the  Lord  becomes  them  well,  becaufe, 
while  they  blcfs  Qod  for  all  their  mercies,  they 
arrange  them  in  their  proper  order  ;  they  prize 
each  according  to  its  real  worth,  and  that  moft; 
of  all  which  19  of  the  greateft  value.  It  Is  a  very 
jnortifying  re6c<Slion,  my  brethrçn,  thit  the  more 
wfi  ftud^"  ourfelves,  the  mofe  clearly  we  perceive, 

that 


The  Manner  of  praising  God.        S9 

tfiat  the  love  of  the  world,  and  of  fenfible  things, 
is  the  chief  fprings  of  all  our  atfllons  and  feiu;- 
jTie-nts.  This  dilagreeable  truth  is  proved,  not 
only  by  the  nature  of  our  vices,  but  even  by  tlie 
genius  of  our  virtues  ;  not  only  by  the  offences 
"we  commit  againft-  God,  but  by  the  very  duties 
"We  perform  i;-;  his  fervice. 

A  perfon  fo  ungrateful,  as  not  to  difcover  any 
gratitude  to  God,  when  he  bcftows  temporal  blefl- 
ings  on  htm,  can  fcarcely  be  found.  We  praife 
God,  when  he  delivers  us  from  any  public  calam- 
ity, or  from  any  dome{\ic  adveifuy  ;  when  lie  re- 
covers-us  from  dangerous  illnefs  ;  when  he  raif- 
eth  us  up  an  unexpedled  friend,  or  a  protector, 
"who  ailifti  us  ;  when  he  fends  us  fome  profperity, 
%vhich  renders  life  more  eafy*  In  fueh  cafe-s  as 
thefe,  we  render  an  homage  to  God,  that  cannot 
be  refufed  without  ingratitude. 

But  we  are  extremely  blameabk,  when,  while, 
we  feel  the  value  of  thefe  bleflings,  v,fe  r.iv.ain 
iufeivfvble  of  the  wortlr  of-other-  bleflings,  \vl,;':h 
Uj-i-e  infinitely  more  valuable^  •  and  which  ivcia^ 
infinitely  more  gratitude.  A  blcfllng,  that  di- 
r-e-£lly  regards  the  foul,  is  more  valuable  than  one 
which  regards  only  the  budy.  A  blcffing,  that 
regards  our  eternal  happinefs,  is  of  greater  worth, 
than  one  which  inlluenceth  only  the  happinefs  of.- 
this  life.  Whence  is  it  then,  that,  being  fo  fen-- 
iible  of  blcilings  of  the  firfl  kind,  we  are  lb  little 
affeilled  with  thofe  of  the  lad  I  How  cosies  it 
to  pîfs,  that  we  are  fo  full  of  gratitude,  v.'hen- 
God  gives  the  (late  fome  fignal  vidlory  ;  when 
he  profpers  its  trade  ;  when  he  {lengthens  the 
bonds,  that  unite  it  to  powerful  and  faithful  aU 
lies  ;  and  fo  void  of  it,  while  he  coniiniics  to 
grant  it  the  greatefl  blelTujg  that  a  Tocicty  of  ra- 
tional creatures  can  enjoy,  I  mean  a  liberty  to 
lerve  God  according  to  the  di£latl?s  of  our  own 
conlciences  ?  Whence  is  it,  that  we  arc  fo  very 
thankful  to  Gud  for  prefcrvin^-Jcur  livci.  from  ùie 

dangers 


6o        The  Manner  of  praising  Goâ, 

dangers  that  dailv  threaten  them  ;  and  fo  littl? 
thankful  for  his  miraculous  patience  with  us,  to 
■which  it  is  owing,  that,  after  we  have  hardened 
our  hearts  againft  his  voice  one  year,  he  invites 
lis  another  year  ;  after  we  have  falGfied  our 
promifes  made  on  one  folemnity,  he  calls  us  to 
ano-tlîer  folemnity,  and  giveth  us  new  opportuni- 
nies  of  being  more  faithful  to  him  ?  Whence 
comes  this  difference  ?  Follow  it  to  its  fonrce. 
Does  it  not  proceed  from  what  we  jufl  now  faid  ? 
Is  not  love  of  the  world,  and  of  fenfible  things^ 
the  grand  fpring  of  our  actions  and  fentiments  ? 
The  world,  the  world  ;  lo  1  this  is  the  toucbftcne, 
by  which  we  judge  of  good  and  evil  I 

An  upright  man  judgeth  in  another  manner  s 
he  will,  indeed,  blefs  God  for  all  his  benefits;; 
but  as  he  knows  how  to  aiTange  there,  fo  he 
knows  how  to  prize  each  according  to  its  worth, 
and  how  to  apportion  his  edeem  to  the  real  value 
çf  them  ail. 

According  to  fuch  an  ePiimatlon,  what  ought 
Tidt  our  gratitude  to  God  be  to-day,  my  deav*' 
brethren  i  We  may  affure  ourfelvcs  with  tbe^ 
utmoft  truth,  that  had  the  Lord  united  in  our- 
bonfes  to-day,  pleafu res,  grandeurs,  and  dignities  ;' 
had  he  promifed  each  of  us  a  life  longer  than  that 
of  a  patriarch  ;  a  family  as  happy  as  that  of  Job, 
after  his  misfortunes  ;  glory  as  great  as  that  of 
Solomon;  he  would  hare  beftowed  nothing  equal 
to  that  blefilng,  which  he  gave  us  this  mjrning. 
He  forgave  thofe  fins,  which,  had  they  taken- 
their  natural  eourfe,  would  hare  orcaHoned  end- 
Icfs  remnrfe,  and  would  have  plunged  us  into 
cverlariing  mifery  and  woe.  A  peace  was  shed 
abroad  in  our  confciences,  v/hich  gave  us  a  fore-- 
tafte  of  heaven.  He  excited  hopes,  that  abforb-. 
cd  our  fouls  in  their  grandeur.  Let  us  fay  all  in 
one  word  :  he  gave  us  his  3ou.  *'  He  that  fpar-' 
ed  not  his  own  Son,  how  (hall  he  not  with  hiiii 
alfo  freclv  give  us  all  things  l"  Kom.  viii.  S2. 

2,  The 


The  Manner  of  praising  God,        61 

2.  The  gratitude  of  upright  men  is  real.  The 
praife  of  the  Lord  becomes  them,  becaufe,  while 
they  praife  God  for  his  benefits,  they  live  to  the 
glory  of  their  benefaftor.  Every  gift  of  Gad- 
fùrnillieth  us  with  both  a  motive  and  a  mean  of 
«obedience  to  him.  It  is  an  excefs  of  ingratitude- 
xo  ujiike  a  contrary  ufe  of  hh  gifts,  and  to  turn 
the  benefits  that  we  receive,  againll  the  benefac- 
tor from  whom  we  receive  thcm,^  What  gifts 
are  they,  by  which  God  hath  moft  diftinguifhed> 
us  ?  Thee  he  hath  diflinguifhed  by  a  penetrating 
genius,  which  renders  the  higheft  objedls,  th^ 
drepeft  myileries,  acceffible  to  thee.  Wo  be  to 
thee  \  -if  thou- employ  this  gift  to  invent  argu»- 
ments  againîl  the  truihs  of  religion,  and  to  find 
out  fophifmsthat  befriend  infidelity.  An  irprighè' 
jnan  devotes  this  gift  to  his  benefat\or  j  he  avails 
hlmfelf  of  his  genius,  to  difcover  the  folly  of 
iceptical  fophifmi,  and  to  demonilrate  tne  truth- 
of  religion."  On  thee  he  hath  beif^wed  an  afton- 
i!hing  memory-.  •  Wo  be  to  thee  I  if  thau  ufe  it 
10  retain  ihe  pernicious  rnajdms  of  tlie  world. 
An  up  rig. '-.t  jnan  dedicates  this  gifi  to  his  btne- 
lacior  ;  he  employs  hiS  menieryln  retaining  the 
cxcoUcm  li-irojis  of  equity,  charity,  and  p«lieriC^> 
which  the  iioly  Spirit  h«»th  taught  him  in  thci- 
fcrjptures.  To  thee  he  hath  given  aw  atJthorita« 
t.Vc  eloeulicn,  to  which  every  hearer  is  forced  to 
bow.  Wo  be  to  thee  I  if  then  apply  this  rare 
talent  to  fcduce  the  minds,  and  to  dt-prave  the 
hearts,  cf  mankind.  An  ■iibrirrbt  man  devotes 
this  bh:frirtg  to  the  fervicc  of  his  benefaclor  ;  he 
uleth  his  éloquence  to  free  the  minds  of  men  from 
error,  and  their  lives  from  vice.  Towards  thee 
God  hath  exercifed  a  patience,  which  fecms  con- 
trary to  his  ufual  rules  of  conduil  towards  iin- 
ïîers,  arrd  by  which  he  hath  abounded  toward 
thee  in  forbearance  and  long-fulTering.  Wo  be 
to  thee  \  if  thou  turn  this  bleirin.ij  into  an  oppor- 
tunity of  v>ohting  the  commands  of  God  ;  if 
F  2  thine 


62        The  Manner  of  praising  God: 

thine  obainncy  run  parallel  with  his  patience,, 
and  if,  because  sentence  against  an  evil  work  is  ■ 
not  clT'.''.'.^.  ''^^^'^^^■y^  ^^y  ^^^^'i  ^^  fnlly  set  in' 
thee  to  do  evil,  EccL  viii.  1 1.  An  upiighv  man 
devotes  this  bleliing  ï»  J^i^  benefaaor's  ierv'-;,. 
From  the  patience  of  God  he  oerives  cnot-ives  of 
repentance.  How  eafily  might  this  article  be 
enlarged  1  how  fruitful  in  inftrudlion  would  it 
be  on  this  folcmnity  !     But  we  proceed. 

3.  Gratitude  to  God  weli  becomes  an  upright 
man,  becaiife  it  is  hunible  ;  beca.ufe  an  upright 
man,  by  publifning  the  gilts  of  God's  grace,  di- 
vefts  hinileli"  of  himlVlf,  and  attributes  them  whol- 
ly to  the  good  nefs  of  him  from  whom  thc-y  came« 
Far  from  us  be  a  profane  mixture  of  the  real 
grandeurs  of  the  Creator  with  the  fanciful  gran- 
deurs of  creatures  1  Far  be  thofe  praifes,  in 
T.'hich  he  who  offers  them  always  finds,  in  his 
own  excellence,  the  motives  that  induced  the 
Lord  to  beftow  his  benefits  on  him  I 

Two  refledions  always  exalt  the  gifts  of  God 
in  the  eyes  of  an  upright  man  ;  a  rcPcClion  on 
his  meannefs,  and  a  reflexion  on  his  unwonbi- 
neis  ;  and  it  is  with  this  comelinefs  of  humility, 
li  I  may  venture  to  call  it  fo,  that  I  wilh  to  en- 
gage you  to  praife  God  for  the  blclTings  of  this 
day. 

1.  Meditate  on  your  meanness»  Contraft 
yourfelves  with  God,  who  gives  himfelf  to  you 
to-day  in  fuch  a  tender  manner.  How  fcon  is 
the  capacity  of  n»an  abforbed  in  the  works  and. 
attributes  of  God  1  Conceive,  if  thou  be  capable, 
the  grandeur  of  a  Being,  who  made  the  heavens 
by  his  word,  and  all  the  host  of  them  by  the 
breath  of  his  mouth.  Think,  if  thou  be  capable 
of  thinking,  of  the  glory  of  a  Being,  who  exifled 
from  all  eternity,  whofe  undei Handing  is  infinite, 
•whofe  power  is  irrefiHible,  whofe  will  is  above 
controul.  Behold  him  filling  the  whole  unjverfe. 
with  his  prefence.     Behold  him  in  the  palace  of 

his 


The  Manneir  of  prahirg  God,        63; 

liis  glory,  inhabiting  the  praises  of  the  bleiTed,  - 
Pial.  xxii.  3,  furrounded  by  ihc-afand  thoufands, 
and  by  ten  thoufaiid  times  ten  thou  land  angels, 
who  exct'l  in  ftrength,  and  who  delight  to  fly  at 
the  fiiQ  fignal  of  his  Aviil.  Thou  human  ioul  I 
contemplate  this  objed^,  and  recover  thy  reafoa» 
What  art  thou  ?  What  wr.s  vhine  origin  't 
What  is  thine  end  ?  Thou  dimintstive  atom  ! 
great  only  in  thine  own  eyes  ;  behold  tbyfélf  in 
ihy  true  point  éf  view.  ïluft  !  afiies  Î  putrelac-- 
tion  I  glorious  only  at  the  tribunal  of  tliine  ov:n\ 
pride  ;  dlvefi:  thylelf  cf  the  tawdry  grandeur  in 
■which  thou  lovell  to  array  thyfelf.  Thou  va- 
pour I  >hou  dream  1  thou  exhalation  of  the 
earth  1  evaporating  in  the  air,  and  having  no 
other  conHiience  than  v<*hat  thine  own  imagina- 
tion gives  thee  ;  behold  thy  vanity  and  nothing»- 
nefs.  Yet  this  dream,  this  exhalation,  this  va* 
pour,  this  dufl",  and  afiies,  and  putrefatlion,  thiis 
diminutive  creature,  is  an  objedl  of  the  eternal 
ca'Ve  and  love  of  its  God,  Eor  thee,  contcmpti-^ 
ble  creature  1  the  Lord  ftretched  out  the  heav- 
ens J  for  thee  he  laid  the  foundation  of  the  earth» 
Let  us  fay  more  :  For  thee,  contemptible  crea- 
ture I  God  formed  the  plan  of  redemption,- 
What  could  determine  the  great  Jehovah  to  com* 
Biunicate  himfelf,  in  fuch  a  tender  and  intimate 
manner,  to  fo  contemptible  a  creature  as  man  f 
His  gcodnefs,  his  goodnefs  alone. 

Although  a  fenfe  of  our  meannefs  fhould  not 
terrify  and  confound  us,  yet  it  (hould  exclude  ar- 
rogance, and  excite  lowly  fentiments  :  But  what 
will  our  humility  be,  if  we  eflimate  the  gifts  o0 
God's  grace  by  an  idea  of  our  unwarthinefs  Ï 
Let  each  recolledl  the  mortifying  hiftory  of  his 
own  life.  Remember,  thou  1  thy  fiery  youth,  in 
which,  forgettin^  all  the  principles  that  thy  pious 
parents  had  taught  thee,  thou  didfl:  acknowledge 
«o  law  but  thiuf;  own  pafiionate  and  capricious 
^vill.     Remcuiber,  thou  Î    that  period^   in  whicli 

thy 


6^4         The: Manner  of  prcuingGùè.^ 

thy  heart  being  infâtnated   with  one  Qbje<5>,    and 
"wholly    f^niploytd    aboui    it,    fhou    «iM^l  'make    it- 
tkine   idol,   and   didli  farrifice  to  it  thui'e  honoUr,' 
tby  duty,  tliyGod.      RccoUtclJ   ihbu  I   t.hc  cruel'- 
ufe,    that  for  njany  years  thou  didd,  make  of  thy"^ 
credit,  tiiy  riches,  thy  raiik,  when,  being  devour- 
ed with  leU'-love,  thou  \^a{\.  iufeiifible  to  the  voice 
of  the  widow  and  the  orphan,    and  to  a  number 
of  diftreffed    people,    who   folicired   relief.       Re- 
member,  thou  i   that  fatal  hour,    the  recolleclion 
of  which  ought  to   malce    thy   bead   %vat€rs,    and  ■ 
thine    eyes  a  fountain  of  tears^  Jer.  ix.   1.    that 
fatal  hour^    in  which,    God   liaving  put  thee  into 
the  fiery    trial    of  perfecutlo:-), .  thoir  couîdll    not" 
abide  the  proof.     Like  Ptter,  thou  didi    •  t  kno-iir 
a  difgraced  Redeemer  ;   thou  didTt  cowaiuiy  aban-  ■ 
don  a  perft-cuted  chuich,    and    wall   juft    on    the 
■point  of  abjuring  thy  religion,  -  Let    each  of  us 
lb  confider  himlcli  as  he  fetnis  in  the  eyes  of  a 
holy  God.      A  criminal  worthy  of  the  moft  rigor- 
ous punilliments  Î      Let  each  of  us  fay  to  himfelf, 
Kotwithilanding   all  this,    it  is  1,    guilty  I  ;    I,. 
whofe  fins  are  more  in  number  than  the  hairs  on 
aiy  head  ;    it  is  I,   who   have   been  admitted  this 
morning  into  the  boufe   of  God  ;    it   is  I,.  \vho 
have  been  invited  this  morning    to  that  myltical 
repail,   which   fovereign   wifdom   itfelf  prepnred  ;. 
it  is  I,    who   have   been  encouraged   againfl  the 
juA  fears,  which  the  remembrance  of  my  fins  had 
excited,   and  have  heard  the   voice  of  God,    pro- 
claiming in  my  confcience.   Fear  not^  thou  worm 
Jacob.,    Ifa.  xli.  14.        It    is  I,    who    have    been 
ûbundantlj  satisfcd  with  the  fatness  of  the  house 
of  God,  and  have  drunk  of  the  river  of  his  pleaS" 
uiesy   Pfa!.  xxxvi.  8.     What  inclines  God  to  in- 
dulge me  in  this  manner  ?     Goodnefs  only  I      O 
lurpaffing  and  inconceivable  goodnefs  !   thou  {halt 
for  ever  be  the  objeft  of  my  meditation  and  grat- 
itude !     *'  How  excellent  is  thy  loving  kindntfs, 
O  God  1"  vcr.  7.      Tliefo  are  fcmiraents   th;.t 

QUght 


The  Manner  of  praising  God.        65 

ought  to  animate  our  pralfe  to-day.     Such  praise- 
is  comely  for  the  upright». 

Fin^llj',  The  gruitude  of  an  upright  man  is 
Tioble  and  magnanimous.  The  praife  of 'J^od  well 
becomes  the  mouth  of  an  upright  man,  becaufe 
he  takes  the  love  of  God  to  him  for  a  pattern  of 
his  behaviour  to  his  fellow  creatures.  St.  Paul 
hath  very  emphatically  expreffed  the  hapjTy  changa 
•which  the  gofpel  proJuecth  in  true  chiidiansa . 
''  We  all  with  open  face,  beholding  as  in  a  glafs 
the  glory  of  the  Lord,  are  changed  into  ihe  fame 
image,  from  glory  to  glory,  even  as  by  the  fpirit 
of  the  Lord,"  2  Cor.  nu  18.  Some  commenta- 
tors, infiead  of  reading  wc  all  beboldino-  as  in  a 
glass f  as  the  expreflion  is  rendered  in  our  tranf^. 
latioiï,  render  the  words,  lue  all  becoming^  mir^' 
rors.  I  will  not  undertake  to  prove  that  this  iff 
the  meaning  of  the  term  :  it  is  certainly  the 
fenfe  of  the  apoftle.*  Jîe  means  to  inform  us^ 
tliat  the  impreflion,  which  thé  evangelical .difpl ay 

of 

*  Tyxt  \àt^  oî  reflecting-^  while, one  contemplâtes  ths 
mttributes  of  God,  is  a  very  fine  thou-jh»-,  and  fully  ex- 
preffive  ot  the  benevolent  efieéls  which  chriftlanity 
produceth  in  its  difciples  -.bat  Mr.  Saurin,  whofe  bufi» 
uefs  as  a  chriflian  miniiler  was  not  with  the  fne,  but 
the  true,  only  meant,  by  what  he  "faid  above,  tliiit  i«- 
vas  agreeable  to  th'c  gevei  a'  des:gr.  of  the  apollle.  Eraf- 
mus  was  the  firfl  who  trlnftated  St.  Paul's  term  katop- 
trizome.wi  in  fpsculo  reprivstntantcs.  Beza  renders  it, 
in  fpeculo  intuentes  ;  and  our  French  bibles  have  it, 
W0U5  contemplons  comme  en  un  mlroa*.  Our  author  was 
dclig;hted  with  the  ingenuity  of  Erafmas  ;  however,  he 
could  not  accede  to  his  tianilation,  becaufe,  i.  Hé 
could  meet  with  no  Greek  author,  cotemporary  with 
St.  Paul,  who  had  ut'ed  the  tarni  in  the  fenfe  of  Eraf- 
mus.  2.  Becaufe  Vie  could  not  perceive  an}  conuexiori 
between  that  fignilication  and  the  phrafe  ii'/î/6  open  fact-.- 
île  abode  therefore  by  the  ufual  reading.  See  Serm.  . 
Tom.  ix,  S.  viii.  My  idea  of  an  objedt  pleafes  me, 
therefore  it  is  a  true  idea  of  it,  is  contemptible  logic  : 
yet  how  many  pretended  articles  of  rciigioa  have  aril» 
eu. from  tUis  way  of  reaibninsJ 


C5        The  Manner  of  praising  GocL 

of  the  perfe£\ion3  of  God  makes  on  the  Iruls  of 
believers,  engraves  theui  on  their  minds,  and  ren- 
ders them  lihe  mirrors,  tliat  refle«ft  the  rays,  and 
the  objc(f\s  which  are  placed  oppofite  to  them, 
and  reprcfent  their  imacjes.  Tbej  behold  the  glw 
ry  of  the  Lord  ivith  open  face,  Tbey  are  cbang' 
ed  from  glory  to  glory  into  the  same  image^  even- 
as  by  the  spirit  of  the  Lord,  1  vvi(h,,  my,  breth-- 
ren,  that  the  imprefEon,  which  was  made  on  you 
by  the  generofiiy  and  magraniaiity  of  God,  who 
load«d  you  this  nîorning  with  his  gracious  bene- 
fits, may  transfortn  }'oa  to-day  into  the  same  imi 
tige  from  glory  to  glory, .  I .  would  animate  yoik 
%vitli  this,  the  moll  noble,  the  moft  fublime,  the 
jnofl:  comfortable,  way  of  praiOng  God, 

AVhat  g.ave  you  fo  much  peace  and  pleafure 
this  morning,  in  what  God  did  for >y ou  ?  Was 
it  the  pardon  af  your  fms  ?-  Imitate  it  ;  pardoa 
your  brethren.  Was  it  liis  pad  forbearance  with 
you?  Imitate  iLt;  niodèratev  that  impatience 
•which  the  ingratitude,  of  your- brethren  excifes- 
in  your  minds..  Was  it  that  fplrit  of  ccmmuni-- 
cation,  which  diCpofed  a  God,  who  is  aL-fuii- 
cient  to  his  own  happinefs, .  to  go  out  of  himfclf> 
as  it  were,  .  and  to  communicate  bis  felicity  to 
creatures  ? .  Imitate  it  ;  go  out  of  tholtj  iutrencli-. 
jiients  of  prcfperity  in  which  you  lodgCj  and  im- 
part your  benefus  to  your  brethren»  Was  it  the 
continua!  vatchfulnefs  of  God  for  the  falvatipn- 
of  your  fouls  ?  Imitate- it  ;  ej.;e.rt  yourfeivcs  for 
the  falvation  of  the  fouis  of  your  brethren  ;  fuf- 
fer  not  thofe,  who  are  united  to  you  by  m^  the 
ties  of  nature,  fociety,  and  religion,  to  peiiHi- 
through  your  lukcwarmnefs  and  négligence. 
While  you  triumphantly  exclaim,  on  this  foleaiii 
fcflival)  Ltff  us  make  a  joyful  noise  to  ibc  Itock^ 
of  our  salvation  I  Pl'al.  xcv.  1.  remember  your 
perfecuted  brethren,  to  whom  God  refufeth  thiV 
pleafure  ;  remember  the  ways  of  ZioHy  that. 
piourny  because  none  come  to  the  solemn  feast s^ 
Lam,  i.  >?,  ;    My. 


TJie  Manner  of  praising  God,       67 

My  brethren,  liow  pleaGng  is  a  chriftian  fefti- 
val  I  How  comfortable  the  inftitution,  to  which 
%ve  were  this  morning  called  Î  But  I  remember 
here  a  faying  of  Jefus  Chrift  to  his  apoftles,  I 
.have  other  sbeep  ivhicb  are  not  of  tbts  /old  ^ 
tbem  also  I  must  brings  end  tbere  shall  be  ons 
Jold^  and  one  shepherd)  John  x.  16.  Alas!  we 
alfo  have  flieep  in  another  fold.  When  iTiall  we 
have  the  comfort  of  bringing  them  into  this? 
Ye  divided  families  I  w4io  are  pre  fen  t  in  this  af- 
fembly,  when  will  you  be  united  ?  Ye  children 
of  the  reformation  i  whom  the  misfortunes  of  the 
times  have  torn  from  us.;  ye  ;  dear  parts  of  our- 
felves  1  when  will  you  come  to  us  ?  When  will 
you  be  re-gathered  to  the  flock  of  the  great  J/Jé-j^- 
herd  and  bishop  cf  our  soids  ?  When  will  ye 
lîîcd  in  our  afTemblies  tears  of  repentance,  for 
having  lived  f»  long  without  a  church,  without 
facrament?,  without  public  worfhip  ?  When  will 
yethcd  tears  of  joy  for  having  recovered  thefc 
advantages  ? 

Great  God!  Thou  great  God  who  hidest  thy-^ 
self  Î  is  it  to  extinguifh,  or  to  enflamc  our  zeal, 
that  thou  delayeft  the  happy  period?  Arc  ou» 
liopes  fufpended  or  confounded  ?  God  grant,  my 
dear  brethren,  that  the  praise,  which  wc  render 
to  the  Lord  for  all  his  benefits,  may  obtain  their 
continuance  and  increafe  !  And  God  grant, 
while  he  giveth  us  our  lives  for  a  prey^t  Jer.  xxi» 
9.  that  thofe  of  our  brethren  may  be  given  u« 
alfo  !  To  him  be  honour  and  glory  for  ever  I 
Amen. 


SERMON    m. 


THE   SOVEREIGNTY  OF  JESUS   CHRIST 
IN  THE    CHURCH 

Romans  xiv.  7,  8. 

None  of  us  liveth  io  bhnself  and  no  man  dleth 
to  himself.  For,  ivhether  nve  live,  ive  live 
unto  the  Lord  ;  or,  whether  we  die,  ive  die 
-unto  the  Lord  :  whether  we  live  therefore  or 
die,  we  are  the  -Lord's» 

A  HESE  words  arc  a  generr»!  maxira, 
vhich  St.  Paul  lays  down  for  the  decifioii  of  a. 
particular  controverfy.  We  cannot  well  enter 
into  the  apoflle's  meaning,  unlefs  we  underftand 
the  particular  fubjedl,  which  led  him  to  exprefs 
himfelf  in  this  manner.  Our  firfl  refieé\ion5, 
therefore,  will  tend  to  explain  the  fubjed,  and 
afterward  we  will  extend  our  meditations  to 
greater  obje(Si3.  We  will  attend  to  the  text  in 
that  point  of  view,  in  which  thofe  chriftians  are 
mofl  interefled,  who  have  repeatedly  engaged  to 
devote  therafelves  wholly  to  Jefus  Ghvift  ;  to  coti- 
fecrate  to  him  through  life,  and  to  commit  to  him 
at  death,  not  only  with  fubmiflion,  but  alfo  with 
joy,  thofe  fouls,  over  which  he  hatti  acquired 
the  nobleft  right.  Thus  fiiall  we  verify,  in  the 
moft  pure  and  elevated  of  all  fenfes,  this  faying^" 
of  the  apoftle,  None  of  us  liveth  to  himself,  and 
no  man  dietb  to  himself,  For^  iithether  we  live^ 
we  live  unto  the  Lord  ;  or,  whether  we  die,  we 
die  unto  the  Lord  :  whether  lue  live  therefore  or  . 
die,  we  are  the  Lord's. 

St.  Paul  propofed  in  the  text,    and  in  feme  of 

the  preceding  «nd   following   verfes,    to    edablifli 

the  dodlrine  of  toleration.      By   toleration,    we 

mcaw,  that  difpoiition  of  n  chriliian,  which,  on  s 

G  principle 


jO       The  Sovereignty  of  Jesus  Christ 

principle  of  benevolence,  inclines  him  to  hold 
communion  with  a  man,  who,  through  weaknefs 
of  mind,  mixeth  with  the  truths  of  religion  feme 
-error?,  that  are  not  entirely  incompatible  v;ith  it  ; 
and  with  the  new  tedament  worfhip  fome  cere- 
monies, which  are  unfuitable  to  its  elevation  and 
fimplicity,  but  which,  however,  do  not  defiroy 
itseifence. 

Retain  every  part  of  this  definition,  for  each 

is  efTeniial  to  the  fiibjet^  defined.     I  fay,  that  he, 

vho  exercifeth  toleration,  a6ls  on  a  principle  of 

benevolence  ;   for  were  he  to  afl  on   a   principle 

of  indolence,  or  of  contempt  for  religion,  his  dif- 

pofition  of  mind,  far  from  being  a -virtue  worthy 

cf.praife,  would  .be  a,vice.St  only  for  execration» 

Toleration,  J  fay,  is  to  be  exercifed  towards. him 

only,  who  errs  ihrough  iveakness  of  mind  j  for 

.-fcc,  who  per  fids  in  his  error  through  arrogance, 

and  for  the  fake  of  rending  the  church,  defervcs 

Ttgorous  puniihment.       I  fay,    further,    that, he, 

who  exercifeth  toleration,  ,doth  not  confine  him- 

felf  to  praying  for  him,  who  is  the  objedl  of  it, 

and  to  endeavouring'to  reclaim  him  ;  he  proceeds 

.further,    md  holds  coramunion  with,  liïm;  that  is 

to  fay,  he  affifts  at  the  fame  religious,  exercifes, 

and   partakes  of  the  Lord's  fupper  at  the  faiiic 

table.     Without  this  communion,  can  we  con- 

,fider    him,  .whom    we   pretend    to  tolerr^te,    as,  a 

.brother  in  the  fcnle  of  St.  Paul  ?     I  add,  finally, 

^erroneous  sentimeniSf  ..which  are  tolerated,    must 

\ie  compatible  ivitb  the  great  ..truths  of  religion  ; 

end  observance ::f   -wVkich  are   tolerated,    mi/st^  not 

^destroy  the   essence   of  evangelical  ivorsliip^    ai- 

. though  they  are  incongruous   with   Its  umplicity 

and  glory.     How  canl  a0i(l  in  a  fervice,  which, 

•in  my  opinion,  is  an  infult  on  the  God  whom  i 

adore  ?     How  can  I  approach   the  table   of  the 

Xord.  with  a  man,  who  rejets  all  the  myfterit- s, 

•swJiich  -God  exhibits  thcrç  ?   and  fo  of  the.  rpi\. 

Retain, 


171  the  Church.  ji 

îfetain,  then,  all  the  parts  of  this  definition,  and 
you  will  form  a  juft  notion   of  toleration. 

This  moderation,  always  necelTary  aniouj^ 
chriftians,  was  particularly  fo  in  the  priuîi:i\e 
ages  of  chrilHanity.  The  firfl:  churches  were 
compofed  of  two  foits  of  profelytes  ;  fome  oi: 
tht!m  were  born  of  Jewifli  parents,  and  had  beea 
educated  in  Judaifm,  others  were  converted  from 
paganifm  ;  and  both,  generally  fpeaking,  after 
they  had  embraced  chndfianity,  preferved  fomc 
fraces  of  the  religions  which  they  had  renounced. 
Sdme  or  them  retained  fcruples,  from  which  jufi 
notions  of  chriiVian  liberty,  it  fiiould  feem,  might 
iiave  freed  them.  They  durft  not  eat  fome  foods 
■which  God  gave  for  the  nourifiimcnt  of  mankind, 
I  mean,  the  fiefli  of  animals,  and  they  ate  only 
herbs.  They  fét  apart  certain  days  ïor  devotion- 
al exercifcs  :  not  from  that  wife  motive,  whic!; 
ought  to  engage  every  rational  man  to  take  ?. 
portion  of  bis  life  from  the  tumult  of  tbe  world, 
in  order  to  confecrate  it  to  thé'  fervice  of  iiiè 
Creator  ;  but  from  I  know' not  what  notion  of 
pre-eminence,  ^vhich  they  attributed  to  fome  days,. 
above  others.  -  Thus  far  all  are  agreed  in  regard 
to  the  defign  of  St.  Paul  in  the  text. 

Nor  is  there  any  difUculty  iti  deterinining' 
which  of  the  two  orders  of  chriftians,  of  whom 
we  fpoke,  St.  Paul  confiders  as  an  objedl  of  tol- 
eration J  whether  that  clafs  which  came  frorfi  the 
Gentiles,  or  that  which  came  from  the  Jews. 
It  is  plain  the  laft  is  intended.  Every  body 
knows  that  the  law  of  Mofes  ordained  a  great 
number  of  fsiiils  under  the  penalty  of  the  great 
anathema.  It  was  very  natural  for  the  convert- 
ed Jews  to  retain  a  fear  of  incurring  that  penal- 
ty, which  followed  the  infradlion  of  thofe  laws, 
and  to  carry  their  veneration  for  thofe  feftivaU 
too  far. 

There  was   one  whole  fe£l  among  the  Jews, 
thatabftained  entirel)f  from  the  flefliof  animak  j 

tiie/F 


72       The  Sovereignty  of  Jeius  Chrhi 

they  were  the  Essencs,  Jofephus  exprcfsly  kf- 
firms  this  ;  and  Philo  ^tfTures  us,  that  their  tables 
•were  free  from  every  thing  that  had  blood,  and 
"were  ferved  with  only  bread,  fait,  and  hyffop. 
As  the  ElTenes  profcffed  a  feverity  of  manners, 
which  had  fome  likenefs  to,  the  morality  of  Jefus 
Chrid,  it  is  probable,  many  of  them  embraced 
chriilianity,  and  in  it  interwove  a  part  of  the  pe- 
culiarities of  their  own  it(X, 

I  do  not  think,  however,  that  St.  Paul  had 
any  particular  view  to  the  Effenes  ;  at  leaft,  wc 
are  not  obU^^ed  to  fuppofe,  that  his  views  were 
conûnçd  to  them.  All  the  world  know,  that  Jews 
have  an  averfion  to  blood.  A  Jew,  exa£t  in  his 
religion,  does  not  eat  flefh  now-a-days  with  chrif- 
tianB,  led  the  latter  fhould  Dot  have  taken  fuffi- 
cient  care  to  difcharge  the  blood.  When,  there- 
fore, St.  Pawl  defcribes  converted  Jews  by  their 
fernpulofity  in  regard  to  the  eating  of  blood,  he 
does  not  Ipeak  of  what  they  did  in  their  own  fam- 
.  ilies,  but  of  what  they  pradifed,  when  they  were 
invited  to  a  convivial  r«pa{l  with  people,  who 
thought  themfelves  free  from  the  prohibition  of 
eating  blood,  whether  they  were  Gentiles  yet  in- 
volved in  tke  darknefs  of  paganifm,  or  Gentile 
converts  to  chriftianity.  Thus  far  our  fubjedl  is 
free  from  difficulty. 

The  difficulty  lies  in  the  connexion  of  the 
maxim  in  the  text  with  the  end,  which  St.  Paul 
propoieth  in  eftablifhing  it.  What  relation  is 
there  between  chriftian  toleration  and  \mt  inax- 
im,  None  oj\  us  Uveth  to  himself,,  and  no  man 
dit'tb  to  himself?  How  doth  it  follow  from  thi3 
j)rinciple,  ivvrth^r  W^  /•T^j  ?^f  ^^vc  unto  ii>e  Lord^ 
or,  ivhether  ive  die,  ive  die  unto  the  Lord  ;  how 
doth  it  follow  from  this  principlç,  that  we  ought 
to  tolerate  thofe,  who,  througlithe  weaknefs  of 
their  minds,  mix  fome  error*  with  the  grand 
truths  of  chriftianity,  and  with  the  new  teftament. 
■worOiip  fome  ceremonies,  which  obfcure  it-  fim- 
plicity,  and  debafc  its  glory  ?  The 


in  the  Church,  73 

The  folution  lies  in  the  connexion  of  thé  text 
•#ich  the  foregoing  v-erfes,  ap(d  particularly  wiili 
thé  fourth  verfe,  who  art  thoii^  tftat  judgesi  an» 
other  maTT s  servant  ?  Tojud^e^  in  this  place, 
does  not  fignify  to  difcern,  but  to  condemn.  The 
word  has  this  meaning  in  a  hundred  paffagejs  oX 
the  new  teftament.  I  conSiie  myTelf  to  one  pal- 
fage  for  example,  "If  we  judge  ourfelves,  WP 
fhouid  not  be  judged,"  3  Cor,  xi.  31.  that  is  to 
fay,  if  we  would  condemn  Qurffilves  zt  tlie  tribu- 
nal of  repentance,  after  wc  have  p^irtaken  un- 
worthily of  the  Lord's  fupper,  v,'e  Hiould  not  be 
condemned  at  the  tribunal  of  divine  juflice.  -  In 
like  manner,  who  art  îhou^  that  judgest  another 
man's  servant  ?  is  as  much  as  to  fay,  "jDho  arf 
thou  that  sondemnest  P  St.  Paul  meant  to  make 
the  chriftians  of  Rome  underftand,  that  it  belong- 
ed only  to  tke  fovereign  of  the  church  to  abfclyp 
or  to  condemn,  as  he  faw  fit. 

But  who  is  the  fupreme  head  of  tlie  clinrch  ? 
Jtjfus  Ghrift,  Jefus  Ghrift,  who,  with  his  Father, 
is  ov€r  all^  God  blessed  fçr  ev^r,  Rom»  ix.  5. 
Jefus  Chrirr,  by  dying  for  the  church,  ac^uirefi 
this  fupremacy,  and  in  virtue  of  it  all  trup  chrjf- 
tians  render  lilni  the  homage  of  adoratioii,  AH^ 
this  is  clearly  eiipreffed  by  our  aaoflle,  a))d  gives 
i)s  an  occafion  to  treat  of  one  of  the  moil  abllrufe 
points  of  chriftian  theology. 

That  Jefus  Chrift  is  the  fupreme  hegd  qf  tl^e 
church,  according  to  the  do<^rine  of  St.  Paul,  is 
expreiTed  by  the  apoRIe  in  the  jnoft  clear  and  ex- 
plicit manner  ;  for  after  he  hath  fgid,  ill  the 
words  of  the  text,  VJhether  we  live,  or  die,  ivf 
ate  the^  Lord's^  he  adds  immediately,  for  to  this 
erul  Christ  both  died,  and  rose,  and  revived,  thfit 
he  might  be  Lord  both  of  the  dead  and  livings 

That  this  Jefus,  %vhose,   the  apoftle  fays,   iv.t; 

ere,   is  God,    the  apgflle  does   not  permit  us  to 

daubt  ;  for  he  confounds  the  expreflions  to  eat  to 

the  L(»'df  and  10  give  God  thanks  ;.   to  stand  be* 

G  2  fore 


74       "^hc  Sovereignty  of  Jesus  Christ 

fore  the  judgment  seat  of  Christ,  and  to  give  ac- 
count of  himself  to  God  ;  to  be  Lord  both  of  the 
dead  and  living,  ver.  6,  10,  12.  and  this  majef» 
tic  language,  which  would  be  bUlphemy  in  the 
mouth  of  a  fimple  creature,  As  I  live,  saith  the 
Lord,  every  knee  shall  bow  to  me,  and  every 
tongue  shall  confess  to  God,   ver.  1  1. 

Finally,  That  Jefus  Chrift  acquired  that  fu- 
pvemacy  by  his  fufferings  and  death,  in  virtue  of 
vhich  all  true  chriftisn^  render  him  the  homage 
of  adoration,  the  apoftle  eflabliQieth,  if  poffible, 
ftill  more  clearly.  This  appears  by  the  words  jell 
now  cited,  io  this  end  Christ  both  died,  and  roscy 
end  revived,  that  be  might  be  Lord  both  vf  the 
dead  and  living,  ver.  8,  i  1,  To  the  fame  pur- 
pofe  the  apoflle  fpeaks  in  the  epiflle  to  the  Phi- 
lippians,  *' He  became  obedient  unto  death,  tve» 
the  death  of  the  crofs.  Wherefore  God  hath  al-; 
fo  highly  exalted  him,  and  given  him  a  nawe, 
■which  is  above  every  name  ;  iba'c  at  the  name  of 
Jefus  every  knee  fliail  feo'.v,  of  things  in  heaven, 
and  things  in  earth,  and  things  under  the  earth  ; 
and  that  every  tongue  îhall  confefs  that  Jefns 
Chrifl  is  Lord,  to  the  glory  of  God  the  Father.'* 
This  is  the  fovertignty  which  Jefus  Chrift  scquir- 
td  by  dying  for  the  church. 

But  the  moft  remarkable,  and  at  the  fame  time 
the  moft  difficult  article  on  this  fubjecl,  is  this, 
Thefe  texts,  which  feem  to  eilablilh  the  divinity^ 
of  Chrift  in  a  manner  fo  clear,  furnifti  the  great- 
ell  objedtton,  that  hath  ever  been  prcpofed  agtinfb 
it.  True,  fay  the  enemies  of  this  doctrine,  Jefua 
Chrift  is  God,  fince  the  fcripture  commands  us  ta 
vorfnip  him.  But  his  divinity  is  an  acquired  di- 
vinity ;  fince  that  fuprtmaey,  which  entitles  hira 
to  adoration  as  God,  is  not  an  cffential,  but  an 
2Cquired  fupremacy.  Now,  that  this  fupremacy 
is  acquired,  is  indubitable,  fince  the  texts,  that 
have  been  cited,  exprcfsly  declare,  that  it  is  si 
fruit  of  his  fufferings  and  death.  We  have  two 
arguments  to  offer  in  repl^.  1.  if 


in  the  Church.  yg. 

1.  If  it  were  demonftrated,  that  the  fuprema- 
cy  eftablifhed  in  the  foreclted  texts  was  only  ac- 
quired, and  not  cfR-ntial,  it  would  not  therefore 
follow,  that  JefusChrift  had  no  other  fupremacy 
belonging  to  him  in  common  with  the  Father  and 
the  holy  Spirit.  We  are  commanded  to  worlhip 
Jefus  Chrifl,  not  only  becaufe  he  died  for  us,  but 
alfo  becaufe  he  is  eternal  and  almighty,  the  au- 
thor of  all  beings  that  exifl  ;.  and  becaufe  he  hath 
all  the  perfections  of  Deity,  as  we  can  prove  by- 
other  paffages,  not  neceifary  to  be  repeated  here». 

2.  Nothing  hinders  that  the  true  God,  whoy 
as  the  true  God,  merits  our  adoration,  fhould  ac- 
quire every  day  new  rights  over  us,,  in  virtue  of 
"which  we  have  new  motives  of  rendering  thofa 
3)omages  to  him,  which  we  ad^nowledge  he  al- 
ways infinitely  micrited.  Always  when  God  be-^ 
Sows  a  new  blefiing,  he  acquireth  a  new  right» 
What  was  Jacob's  ©pinion,  when  he  made  this 
TOW  ?  "  If  God  will  be  with  me,  and  will  keep 
TOC  in  the  way  that  I  go,  and  will  give  me  bread 
to  eat,  and  raiment  ta  put  oia,  fo  that  I  come 
again  to  my  father's  houi'e  in  peace  ;  then  Qiali' 
the  Lord  be  my  God/*  Gen.  xxviii.  20,  &c» 
X)id  the  patriarch  mean,  that  he  had  no  other 
reafon  for  regarding  the  Lord  as  his  God,  than 
this  favour,  which  he  aflced  of  him  ?  No  fuclr 
>hing.  He  meant,  that  to  a  great  maRy  reafons, 
■which  bound  him  to  devote  himfelf  to  God,  the 
favour  which  he  afked  would  add  a  new  one.  It 
•would  be  eafy  to  produce  a  long  lift  of  example» 
ef  this  kind.  At  prefenit  the  application  of  this 
•nc  fhould  fuffice.  Jefus  Chrift,  who,  as  fupreme 
God,  hath  natural  rights  over  us,  hath  alfo  acquir- 
ed rights,  becaufe  he  hath  deigned  to  clothe  him- 
felf with  our  flcfh,  in  which  he  died  to  redeem 
us.  None  of  us  is  his  owity  we  arc  all  his,  not 
only  becaufe  he  is  our  Creator,  but  becaufe  he  is 
alfo  our  Redeemer.  He  hath  a  fupremacy  over 
us  peculiar  to  himfelf,  and  diftind  from  that, 


J 6       The  Sovereigniy  of  Jems  Christ 

•which  he  hath  in  common  with  the  Father  and-- 
the  holy  Spirit. 

To  return  then  to  our  principal  fubjeft,  from 
^'hich  this  long  digreiîîon  hath  diverted  us.  This 
Jefus,  who  is  the  fupreme  head  ©f  the  church  ; 
this  Jefui,  to  whom  alj  the  members  of  the' 
church  are  fubjeft  ;  willeth  that  we  fliould  tole- 
rate, and  he  himfelf  hath  tolerated,  thofe,  \yho, 
having  in  other  cafes  an  upright  confcience,  and 
a  fincere  intention  of  fubmitting  their  rcafon  to 
all  his  decifions,  and  their  hearts  to  all  his  com- 
ina.nds,  cannot  clearly  fee,  that  chrifVlan  liberty 
includes  a  freedom  from  the  obfervation  of  cer- 
tain feafts,  and  from  the  dulinâion  of  certain 
foods.  If  the  fovereign  of  the  church  tolerate 
them,  who  err  m.this  manner,  by  what  right  do 
5'Ott,  who  are  only  fimple  fubjeéls,  undertake  to 
condemn  them  ?  "  V7ho  art  thou,  that  judgeft 
another  man's  fervant  ?  to  his  own  mafter  h.e 
flandeth  or  fâlleth.  For  none  of  us  livcth  to 
himfelf,  and  no  man  dieth  to  himfelf.  For 
whether  we  live,  we  live  unto  the  Lord  ;  and, 
whether  we  die,  we  die  unto  the  Lord  :  whether 
we  live  therefore  or  die,  ,we  are  the  Lord'^s.  Let 
us  not  therefore  judge  one  another  any  more." 
Let  us,  who  are  sirong^  bear  the  injirmities  of 
the  iveak. 

This  is  the  dtfign  of  St.  Paul  in  the  words  of 
aiy  text,  in  fume  of  the  preceding,  and  in  fome 
of  the  foUov/ing  verfes.  Can  we  proceed  withr 
out  remarking,  or  without  lamenting,  the  blind— 
nefs  of  thofe  chriftians,  who,  by  their  intoîerîinçe 
to  their  brethren,  feem  to  have  chofçn  for  their 
Hiodel  thofe  members  of  the  church  of  Rome^ 
who  violate  the  rights  of  toleration  in  the  moft 
cruel  manner  ?  We  are  not  fpeaking  of  thofe 
fanguinary  men,  who  aim  at  illuminating  peopled 
minds  with  the  light  of  fires,  and  faggots,  which 
they  kindle  againft  all  who  rejecl  their  fyflems. 
Our  tcars;  and  cur  bloody  have  not  affuaged  their 

rage  ;. 


in  tfte  Church*  jf 

jage  ;  how  can  we  then  think  to  gppeafe  it  by 
our  exhortations  ?  Let  us  not  folicit  the  wrath 
cf  heaven  againft  thefe  perfecutors  of  the  church  ; 
let  us  leave  to  the  fools  of  them,  who  were  llain 
for  the  word  of  God,  to  cry,  How^  hng^  O  Lord, 
koly  and  true^  dost  thou  not  judge  and  avenge  our 
Hood  on  tbem,  that  dwell  09  the  earth  ?  Rev.  vi. 
10. 

But,  y«  intedlne  divifions  I  Thou  fpirit  o£ 
fadlion  Î  Yè  theological  wars  I  how  long  will  ye 
fcc  let  loofe  among  us  ?  Is  it  poffible,  that  chrif- 
tians,  who  bear  the  name  of  reformed,  chriftians 
united  by  the  bond  of  their  faith  in  the  belief  of 
vhe  fame  doctrines,  and,  if  I  may  be  allowed  to 
ipeak  fo,  chriftians  united  by  the  very  eflorts  of^ 
their  enemies  to  deftroy  them  ;  can  they  violate, 
after  all,  thofe  laws  of  toleration,  which  they  ■ 
have  fo  often  prefcribed  to  others,  and  againfl: 
the  violation  of  which  tliey  have  remonftrated 
witk  fo  much  wifdom  and  fuccefs  ?  Can  they 
convoke  ecclefiaftiical  affemblies^  can  they  draw 
«p  canons,  can  they  denounce  excommunications 
and  anathemas  againft  thofe,  who,  retaining  with 
themfelves  the  leading  truths  of  chriftianity  and 
of  the  reformation,  think  differently  on  points  of 
fimple  fpeculation,  on  queftions  purely  raetaphyf- 
3cal,  and,  if  I  may  fpeak  the  whole,  on  matters 
fo  abftrufe,  that  they  are  alike  indeterminable  by 
them,  who  exclude  members  from  the  communion 
of  Jefus  Cbrift,  and  by  thofe  who  are  excluded  ? 
O  ye  fons  of  the  reformarton  I  how  long  will 
you  counteradl  your  own  principles  Î  how  long 
will  you  take  pkafure  in  increafing  the  number 
of  thofe,  who  breathe  only  yotir  deftru6lion,  and 
jmove  only  to  deftroy  you  î  O  ye  fubjecls  of  the 
fovereign  of  the  church  !  how  long  will  you  en- 
croach on  the  rights  of  your  fovereign,  dare  to 
condemn  thofe  whom  he  abfolves,  and  to  rejédt 
thofe  whom  his  generous  benevolence  tolerates! 
Î*  Who  art  thou,  that  judgeft;  another  man's  fer- 

vaot  ?- 


7$       The  Sovereignty  of  Jesus  Christ 

vant  ?    for  none  of  cs  liveth  to  himfelf,   and  no, 
snan  dletli  to  Wmfelfc     For,  whether  we  live,  we 
live  unto  the  Lord  ;   and,  whether  we  die,  we  die 
unto  the  Lord  :  whether  wc  live  therefore  or  die^ 
■we  are  the  Lord's." 

What  v/e  have  fsid  fhall  fuffice  for  the  fubjea, 
Tvhich  occaHoned  the  maxim  in  the  text.  Tua 
remaining'  time  I  devote  to  the  confideration  of 
the  general  ienfe  of  thie  maxim.  It  lays  before 
ys  the  condition,  the  engagements,  the  inclina- 
tion, and  the  felicity  of  a  chriPcian.  What  is 
the  felicity  of  a  chriiTian,  what  is  his  inclination, 
\vhat  are  his  engagements,  what  is  his  condition  ? 
They  are  not  to  be  his  oivn  ;  but  to  fay,  r^hetk- 
er  I  livCf  or  dkf  I  am  the  Lord's,  The  whole, 
that  we  fliall  propolJfc  to  you,  is  contained  in  , 
thefe  four  articles. 

L  -  The  ter^'t  la;/:S  before  us  the  primitive  cow- 
àitiôn  of  a  chriRian.  It  is  a  condition  of  depend' 
ence,  <'  None  of  us  liveth  to  himfelf,  and  no 
iwan  di€th  to  himfelf." 

None  of  us  I tvetb  to  himfelf,  for  Kvhetber  7t»(?' 
live^  K^>e  Ihe  unto  the  Lord*  What  do  we  pof- 
fifsj  during  our  abode  upon  earth,  which  doth 
not  abfolutely  depend  on  him,  who  placed  us 
here  ?  Oar  erdftence  is  not  ours  ;  our  fortune  is 
rot  ours  ;■  cur  rcptttation  u  not-  ours  5  our  virtue 
i*  not  ours  ;  our  reafon  is  cot  ours  ;  our  health 
is  not  ours  ;.  onr  life  is  not  ours. 

Ouv  existence  is  not  ours.  A  few  years  ago- 
"we  found  ourfelves  in  this  world,-  conRituting-  a  - 
very  inconfiderablc  part  of  it.-  A 'few  years  ago 
the  world  itfelf  wa&  nothing.  The  will  of  God 
alone  hath  made  a  being  of  this  nothing,  as  he. 
can  make  this  being,  a  nothing,  whenever  hç~ 
ptleafeth  to  do  fo. 

Our  fortune  is  not  ours.  The  noft  opulent 
perfons  often  fee  their  rides  make  themselves- 
^ings,  and  fy  aivay»  Houfes,  the  beft  eflabhfU- 
cd>^  diCappear   in  au  iiiftant.     We   have   feen  9, 


in  the  Church, 


■79 


Jcb,  who  had  pcffeffed  seven  thousand  sbeepy 
three  thousand  camels^  Jive. hundred  yoke  of  oxcriy 
end  servants  nvUhout  number  ;  we  have  leen  the 
roan,  who  had  been  the  greatest  of  all  the  men 
vf  the  easty  lying  on  a  dunghill,  retaining  noth- 
ing of  his  profperity  but  a  forrowfu!  lenie-in» 
brance,  which  aggravated  the  advcriities  that 
followed  it. 

Gur  reputation  i?  not  ours.  One  fingle  frail- 
ty fometimes  tarnifiieth  a  life  of  the  moft  unful- 
lied  beauty.  One  moment's  abfence  fometimee 
debafeth  the  glory  of  the  m  oft  profound  politi- 
-cian^  of  the  moft  expert  general,  of  a  faint  of  the 
Iiigheft  order.  A  very  diminutive  fault  w-ill  fervc 
to  render  contemptible,  yea,  ,  infamous,  the  man 
■who  committed  it  ;  and  to  make  him  tremble  at 
the  thought  of  appearing  before  men,  who  have 
po  other  advantage  over  him  than  that  of  having 
committed  the  fame  ofîence  more  fortunately;  I 
mean  of  having  concealed  the  commiflion  of  it 
from  the  eyes  of  his  fellow  creatures. 

Our  virtue  is  not  ours.  Want  of  opportunity 
is  often  the  caufe  why  one,  who  openly  profelTeth 
chriftianity,  is  not  an  apoftate  ;  another  an  adul- 
terer ;  another  a  murderer. 

Our  reason  is  not  ours.  While  we  poffefs  it» 
we  are  fubje£i  to  diftra£lions,  to  abfence  of 
thought,  to  fufpenfion  of  intelligence,  which  rea- 
der us  entirely  incapable  of  .  reflexion  ;  and, 
what  is  ftill  more  mortifying  to  human  nature, 
they,  whofe  geniufesare  the  moft  tranfcendant 
and  fublime,  fometimes  become  cither  melan». 
choly  or  mad  ;  like  Nebuchadnezzar  they  fink 
into  beafls,  and  browfc  like  them  on  the  herbage 
of  the  field. 

Our  health  is  not  ours.  The  catalogue  of  thofc 
-infirmities  which  dcllroy  it,  (I  fpeak  of  thofe 
which  we  know,  and  which  mankind  by  a  ftudf 
of  five  or  fix  thcufand  years  have  difcovered) 
makes  whole  volumes.      A  catalogue  of  thofe 

which 


J^       The  Sovereignty  of  J^ sus  Chrifl 

•which  are  unknown,  would  probably  make  larger 

volumes  yet. 

Our  life  is  not  ours.  Winds,  waves,  heat^ 
cold,  aliments,  vegetables,  animals,  nature,  and 
each  of  its  component  parts,  confpire  to  deprive 
us  of  it.  Not  one  of  thofe,  who  have  entered 
this  church,  can  demonftrate  that  he  fhall  go  otit 
of  it  alive.     Not  one  of  thofe,  who  compoi'e  this 

,aiTcmbly,  even  of  the  youngeft  and  ftrongeft,  can 
aiTure  hinifelf  of  one  year,  one  day,  one  hour, 
one  moment  of  life.     None  of  us  liveth  to  him' 

-Self  ;  for,  if  we  live^  we  are  the  Lord's. 

Further,  No  man  dieth  to  himself.  If  lOe  die., 
*-j>e  arc  ibe  Lord's,  How  abfolute  foever  the  do- 
minion of  one  man  over  another  may  be,  there  is 
a  moment,  in  which  both  are  on  a  level  ;  that 
moment  comes  when  we  die.  Death  delivers  a 
I'lave  from  the  power  of  a  tyrant,  under  whofe 
rigour  he  hath  fpent  his  life  in  groans.  Death 
terminates  all  the  relations,  that  fubfifl:  between 
inen  in  this  life.  But  the  relation  of  dependence, 
which  fubfifts  between  the  Creator  and  his  crea- 
tures, is  an  eternal  relation.  That  world,  into 
which  we  enter  when  we  die,  is  a  part  of  his 
empire,  and  is  as  fubjed  to  his  laws  as  that  into 
wliich  we  entered  when  wc  were  born.  During 
this  life,  the  Supreme  Governor  hath  riches  and 
poverty,  glory  and  ignominy,  cruel  tyrants  and 
clement  princes,  rains  and  droughts,  raging  tem- 
peRs  and  refrelhing  breezes,  air  wholelbme  and 
air  infe£led,  faKoine  and  plenty,  vidories  and  de- 
feats, to  render  us  happy  or  miferable.      After 

■  death,  he  hath  abfolotiou  and  condemnation,  a 
tribunal  of  juf^ice  and  a  tribunal  of  mercy,  angels 
and  devils,  a  river  of  pleasure  and  a  lake  burn' 
ing  ivith  fre  and  brimstone^  hell  with  its  horrors 
•and  heaven  with  its  happinef^,  to  render  us  hap- 
py or  miferable  as  he  pleafeth. 

Thefe  refleiflions  are  not  quite  fuffici«nt  t© 
make  Hs  feel  all  our  dependence.      Our  vanity  is 

mortified, 


in  the  Church,  81 

aiortified,  when  we  remember,  that  what  we  en- 
joy is  not  ours  ;  but  it  is  fometimes,  as  it  were, 
indemnified  by  obferving  the  great  means,  that 
God  employs  to  deprive  us  of  our  enj-^yments» 
God  hath,  in  general,  excluded  this  extravagant 
motive  to  pride.  He  hath  attached  our  felicity 
to  one  fibre,  to  one  caprice,  to  one  grain  of  fand, 
to  objedts  the  leafl:  likely,  and  feemingly  the  leafl: 
•capable,  of  influencing  our  deftiny. 

On  what  is  your  high  idea  of  yourfeli  found- 
ed ?  On  your  gewius  ?  And  what  is  necefTary 
to  reduce  the  fineft  genius  to  that  (late  of  melan- 
choly or  madnefâ,  of  v;hich  I  juft  now  fpoke  ? 
Muil  the  earth  quake  ?  Mufl  the  fea  overflow  its 
banks  ?  Mud  the  heavens  kindle  into  lightning 
and  refotind  in  thunder?  Mud  the  elements 
olafli,  and  the  powers  of  nature  be  fiiaken  ?  No  ; 
there  needs  nothing  but  the  difplacmg  of  one  lit- 
tle fibre  in  your  brain  1 

On  what  is  your  high  idea  of  youffelf  found- 
ed ?  On  that  felf-comp'acence,  which  fortune, 
rank,  and  pleafing  objeds,  that  furround  you, 
feem  to  contribute  to  excite  ?  And  what  is  ne- 
celTary  to  diffipate  your  felf-complacence  ?  Mufl; 
the  earth  tremble  ?  Muft  the  fea  overflow  its 
banks?  Muft  heaven  arm  iifclf  with  thunder 
and  lightning  ?  Muft  all  nature  be  fliaken  ? 
No  ;  •one  caprice  is  fudicient.  An  appearance, 
under  which  an  object  prefents  itfelf  to  us,  or 
rather,  a  colour,  that  our  imagination  lends  it, 
*':'.. nifheth  felf-comphcence,  and,  lo  1  the  man 
juft  now  agitated  with  fo  much  joy,  is  fixed  in  a 
black,  a  deep  defpair  ! 

On  what  is  your  lofty  idea  of  yourfelf  found- 
ed ?  On  your  health  ?  But  what  is  neccffary 
to  deprive  you  of  your  health  ?  Earthquakes  ? 
Armies?  Inundations?  Mud  nature  return  to 
its  chaotic  ftate  ?  No  ;  one  grain  of  fand  is  fuf- 
ficient  i  That  grain  of  fand,  which  in  another 
pofuion  was  next  to  nothing  to  you,  and  was  rc- 
H  ally 


82       The  Sovereignty  of  Jesus  Chrisi 

ally  nothing  to  your  felicity,  becomes  in  it?  prêt- 
ent pofition  a  puniflimeiU,  a  niariyrJoin,  a  hell! 

People  foroetimes  fpeculate  Uie  nature  of  thofe 
torments,  which  dirinc  judice  referves  for  the 
Avlcked.  They  are  lefs  concerned  to  avoid  the 
pains  ef  hell,  than  to  difcover  wherein  they  con- 
li(l.  They  aftc,  what  fuel  can  fupply  a  fire,  that 
wHl  nerer  be  extinguifhed.  Vain  refearches  I 
The  principle  in  my  tçxt  is  fuîHcient  to  give  me 
frightful  ideas  of  hell.  We  are  in  a  ftate  of  en- 
tire dependence  on  the  Supreme  Being  ;  and  to 
repeat  it  again,  one  iingle  grain  of  fand,  which 
js  nothing  in  itfelf,  naay  become  in  the  hands  of 
the  Supreme  Being,  a  puniQiment,  a  martyrdom, 
a  hell  ia  regard  to  us.  AVhat  dependence  J 
Whether  ive  live,  or  whether  ive  die,  we  are  tb£ 
Lord's»  This  is  ihe  ^vim'iùwc  condition  oï  jl 
chriftian. 

II.  Our  text  points  out  the  engagements  of  a 
chriÛian.  Let  us  abridge  our  refletStions.  Kc- 
mark  the  ftate  in  which  Jefus  Ghrift  found  us  ^ 
>vhat  he  performed  to  deliver  us  from  it  ;  and 
under  what  conditions  we  enter  on  and  enjoy  this 
deliverance. 

I.  In  what  state  did  Jcfus  Chrifl  find  us, 
'when  he  came  into  our  world  ?  I  am  fprry  to 
fay,  the  afFe£led  delicacy  of  the  world,  which 
increafeth  as  its  irregularities  multiply,  obligeth 
me  to  fupprefs  part  of  a  metaphorical  defcription, 
that  the  holy  Spirit  hath  given  us  in  the  Sixteenth 
chapter  of  Ezekiel.  "  Thy  father  wris  an  Amor- 
ite,  and  thy  mother  an  Hittite,"  faith  he  to  tlie 
church.  *' When  thou  wall  born,  no  eye  pitied 
thee,  to  do  any  thing  unto  thee  ;  but  thou  waft 
caft  out  in  the  open  air,  to  the  loathing  of  thy 
perfon,  in  the  day  that  thou  waft  born.  I  pafTed 
by  thee,  and  faw  thee  polluted  in  thine  own 
blood,  and  I  faid  unto  thee,  when  thou  wafl  in 
thy  blood.  Live.  I  fpread  my  fkirt  over  thee, 
and  covered  thy  nakedaqfs  ;    yea,   I  fwear  unt« 

thee,. 


in  the  Church»  83 

tliee,  a-iid  entered  into  a  covenant  with  thee,  and 
thou  becametl  mine,"  ver.  o,  Sec. 

Let  us  leave  the  metaphor,  and  let  us  confii^c 
our  attention  to  the  meaning.  When  Jel'us 
Ghrifh  came  into  the  world,  in  what  (late  did  he 
find  us  ?  Defcended  from  a  long  train  of  ancef- 
tors  in  rebellion  againfl  the  laws  of  God,  fludu- 
ating  in  our  ideas,  ignorant  of  our  origin  and 
end,  blinded  by  our  prejudices,  infatuated  by  our 
pàflions,  having  no  bopCy  and  being  ioitbout  God 
in  the  world)  Eph,  ii.  12.  condemned  to  die,  and 
relerved  for  eternal  flames.  From  this  ftatc  Je- 
fus  Ghrifl:  delivered  us,  and  brought'us  into  the 
glorious  liberty  cf  the  sons  of  God,  Rom.  viii.  21. 
in  order  to  enable  us  to  participate  the  felicity  of 
the  blefTed  God,  by  making  u£  partakers  of  the 
drvine  nature,  2  Pet.  i.  4,-  By  a  deliverance  fo 
glorioos,  doth  not  the  deliverer  obtain  peculiar 
rfghts  oVer  us  I 

Remark,  further,  on  what  conditions  Jefus 
Ghrift  hath  freed  you  from  your  miferies,  and  yon 
T.'ill  perceive,  that  j^  cr<?  not  your  onvn.  Wiiat 
means  the  morality  that  Jefus  Ghrifl:  enjoined  in 
his  gofpel  ?  What  vows  were  made  for  each  of 
you  at  your  baptifm  ?  What  haft  thou  promifed 
at  the  Lord's  table  ?  In  one  word,  to  what  au- 
thority did-ft  thou  fubmit  by  embracing  the  gof- 
pel ?  Didft  thou  fay  to  Jefus  Chrift,  Lord  Î  I 
will  be  partly  thine,  and  partly  mine  own  ?  To 
thee  I  will  fubmit  the  opinions  of  my  mind  ;  but 
the  irregular  difpolitions  ct"  my  heart  I  will  re* 
ferve  to  myfelf.  I  wil'  confent  to  renounce  my 
vengeance  ;  but  thou  (halt  allow  me  to  retaia 
my  Dalilah  and  my  DruGlla.  For  thee  I  will  quit 
the  world  and  diflîpating  pleafures  ;  but  thou 
(halt  indulge  the  vifionary  and  capricious  flow  of 
my  humour.  On  a  chriflian  feftivaF  I  will  rife 
into  tranfnorts  of  dt-voticn  ;  my  countenance 
fliall  emit  rays  ol  a  divine  flame;  my  eyes  fliall 
%arkle  with  feraphic  fire,  my  heart  and  my  flcsb 

%hall 


84       The  Savtreigniy  of  Jesus  ChtHW 

shall  sry  out  for  the  living  God^  Pfal.  Ixxxîv.  5, 
bur  when  I  return  to  the  world,  I  will  fink  into 
the  fpirit  of  the  men  of  it  ;  I  will  adopt  their 
maxims,  fliare  their  pleafures,  ifinmerfe  myfelf  in 
ther  converfation  ;  and  thus  I  will  be  alternately 
culd  and  hot^  Rev.  iii.  15.  a  chriflian  and  a  hea- 
tlicn,  an  angel  and  a  devil.  Is  this  your  idea  of 
chriUianity  ?  Undoubtedly  it  is  that,  which  ma- 
ny of  oar  hearers  have  formed  ;  and  which  they 
take  too  much  pains  to  prove,  by  the  whole 
courfe  of  their  converfation.  But  this  is  not  the 
idea  which  the  infpired  writers  have  given  bs  of 
chiiltianity  ;  it  is  not  that,  which,  after  their 
example,  we  hive  giren  you.  Hitn  only  I  ac- 
knowledge for  a  true  chriftian,  who  is  n6t  his 
oivriy  at  leafi,  who  continually  endeavours  to 
crkdicate  the  remains  of  fm,  that  renft  the  em- 
pire of  Jcfus  Chrift.  Him  alone  I  acknowledge 
tor  a  true  chriflian,  who  can  fay  with  St.  Paul, 
::lthoygh  not  in  the  fams  degree,  yet  with  equal 
fKîcerity,  I  am  cnic'Jîed '^vitb  Christ  ;  neverthe" 
less  I  live  ;  yet  vot  /,  but  Christ  liveîb  in  me  :. 
and  the  life^  which  I  now  live  in  the  fesb^  I  live 
bj  the  faith  of  the  Son  cf  God,  ivho  laved  mff 
and  gave  himself  for  nie^  Ga!.  ii,  20, 

Gonfider,  thirdly,  what  it  coft  Jefus  Chrift  to 
deliver  you  froai  your  wretched  fiste.  Could 
oyr  freedom  have  been  procured  by  a  few  émo- 
tions C»  benevolence,  or  by  an  <kfi  of  fupretTiS 
power  ?  ïn  C"^^^"^  ^^  deliver  us  from  ovir  griefs. 
5^  ^;^5s"ncce(r3ry  fur  him  tt?  ^'^f?'' ^^''C^  ?/«  ^«^- 
Biinatc  -y'.r  Spr^ô-vs-.  hs-  muO  carrj  tbens  :  (accord- 
^ng  ta  the  bnga?.go  cï  a  prcphet)  to  deliver  U^^ 
from  the  {\rokc5  of  divine  juUicrj^he  mv.{>  be 
jf,ricken  end  sniiUen  ofGod^  îCn.  îiii.  -i.  I  nm 
aware,  that  one  of  th^  moft  ocplorabl-.jnnrirjties 
of  the  hnman  mind,  is  to  brco-ne  inil^.r.Hbîe^  to 
the  moll  aff^aing  objeds  by  becoming'  familiar 
v\th  them..  The  glorified  nints,  we  know,  by 
tontemplattrg   the   fuffcrings   of  the  Savicuv  of 


in  the  Church.  85. 

the  world,  behold  obje<Sls,  that  excite  eternal 
adorations  of  the  mercy  of  Jbim-y  who  loved  themj 
and  nvasbed  them  from  their  sins  in  bis  oivn 
ètoody  and  made  tbem  kings^  and  priests  unto  GoA 
èii  father,  Rev,  i,  5,  6.  but  in  our  prefentilate, 
the  propoiing  of  thefe  obje£"ts  to  us  in  a  courfc 
of  fermons  is  fufEoient  to  weary  us.  However, 
I  af£rm,  that»  if  we  have  not  been  afiefted  wit'a 
what  Ghrlft  hath  done  for  our  falvation,  it  hath 
not  been  owing  to  our  thinking  too  much,  but  to 
our  not  thinking  enough,  and  perhaps  to  our 
never  having  th(>ught  of  the  fubjeft  once,  with 
fuch  a  profound  attention  as  its  interedifjg  na- 
ture demands. 

Bow  thyfclf  tov/ards  thé  niyiiical  ark,  chrif» 
tian  1  and  fix  thine  eyes  on  the  mercy-feat,  Re-»^ 
volve  in  thy  rntdic^aion  the  aRonifliing,  I  had  aU 
mod  faid,  the  incredible  hiftory  of  thy  Saviour'g 
love.  Go  to  Bethlehem,  and  behold  him,  %vbo 
upholdetb  all  things  by  the  ivord  of  bis  povjcr,  (I 
ufe  the  language  of  an  apoftie)  him,  whothought 
it  DO  ufurpation  of  the  rights  of  the  Deity  to  be 
equal  w.''t/i»' GW/..  behold  him  humbling  himself^ 
(I  ufe  here  the  wsrds  of  St.  Paul,  Heb.  i,  3. 
Vini,  ii,  6.  hi^  words  are  more  cmphatical  ftill.) 
Behold  hxm'  annih'ilaied*  ;^  for,  although^  the 
child,  who  was  born  in  a  liable,  and  laid  in  a 
mmgcr,  was  a  real  being,  yet  he  may  fcem  to  be 
annihilated  \t\  regard  to  ths  degrading  circum- 
Û'ancesv  which  veiled  and  cohc^aléd  his  natural 
dignity  ;  behold  Wiinamiif Hated,  by  taking  upon 
him  the  form  of  a  servant/  Follow  him  through 
the  whol--  courte  of  his  life  ;  he  went  about  doing 
good,  Ads  X.  38.  and  cxpbfed  liiinfclf  in  every 
place  to  inconveniences  and  miferies,  through' 
the  abundance  of  his  benevolence  and  love.  Pafs 
to  Gcthfemane  ;  behold  his  agony  ;  fee  him  as 
H  2  thé 

*  Videturhic  alludere  ad  Dan.  ix.  26.  Ubi  dicitur 
Meflias  exinanienc'us,  ut  ei  nihil  fuperfit.  i.e.  quali  in 
a-ihtlum  fit  redigendus.    PoU  Sjnops.  in  loc. 


86       The  Sovereignty  of  Jesu%  Christ 

the  Redeemer  of  mankind  contending  with  the^ 
J.id^e  of  the  whole  earth  ;  in  an  agony,  in  which 
Jei'us  ivfifted  with  orAy  prayers  and  suppli'cationSf 
strong  eying,  and  tears^  Hcb.  v.  7.  an  agony 
preparatory  to  an  cven^  ftill  more  tenible,  the 
bare  idea  of  which  terrified  and  troubled  him, 
made  his  siveat  as  it  ivere  great  drops  of  blood 
falling  to  the  ground,  Luke  xxii.  44.  and  pro- 
duced this  prayer  fo  fruitful  in  controvcrfies  in 
tbefthools,  ancj  fo  penetrating  and  affeifling  ; 
io  fruitful  in  metives  to  obedience,  devotion,  and 
gratitude,  in  truly  chrifiian  hearts,  0  mj  Father, 
if  It  be  possible^  let  this  cup  pass  from  me  ;  nev- 
ert.beless^  not  as  I  willy  but  as  tbou  wilt,  Matt, 
xxvi.  44.  Go  funher  yet,  chrifiian  !  and  after 
thou  haft  feen  all  the  fufferings,  which  Jefus 
Chrift  endured  in  going  from  the  garden  to  the' 
crofs,  afcend  Calvary  with  him  ;  !^op  on  the  fum» 
mit  of  the  hill,  and  on  that  theatre  behold  the 
nioft  ailonifliing  of  all  the  works  of  Almighty 
God.  See  this  Jefus,  the  brightness  of  the  Fa» 
tber*s  glorjf  and  the  express  iraûgc  of  his  person^ 
Hib.  i.  3.  fee  him  Gripped,  fattened  to  an  no-. 
curfed  tree,  confoundea  with  two  thieves,  nailed 
t*»  the  wood,  furrounded  with  executioners  and 
tormentors,  having  left,  during  this  dreadful  pe- 
riod, that  fight  of  the  comfortnble  prefence  of  his 
Fr.ther,  which  conftituied  all  his  joy,  and  being 
driven  to  exclaim,  My  God  I  7ny  God  J  ivhy  h<ss6 
thou  forsaken  me  ?  Matt,  xxvii.  40.  But  be- 
hold him,  amidft  all  thefe  painful  fuSferings, 
ftrnily  fupporting  his  patience  by  his  love,  refo- 
lutely  enduring  all  thefe  punifliments,  from  thofc 
motives  of  benevolence,  v;hich  firft  engaged  him 
to  fubmit  to  them,  ever  occupied  with  the  prof- 
pedl  of  faving  thofe  poor  mortals,  for  whofe  fake 
he  defcended  into  this  world,  fixing  his  eyes  on 
that  world  of  believers,  which  his  crofs  would 
fobdue  to  his  government,  according  to  his  own 
laying,  /,  if  I  be  lifted  up  from  earth,  tvill  dravi 

nil 


in  the  Church,  S^; 

tfll  men  unto  m?,  J^hn  tu.  32.       C^n    we  help 
feeling  the  toicr  ot"  liiat  n.otive,  whtcb  tlie  fcrip- 
ture  propofeth  in   fo   many   places, -and    fo  very 
emphaiically  in  thele  words,   Tbd  love  of  Christ' 
constraintth  us^  2  Cor,  v,  14.   that  is  to  fay,  en- 
gagfth  and  aitachctb  us  clofely  to  him  ;    The  lovt 
of  Christ  constraineth  us^  because  1V3>  thus  judge ■^, 
that  if  one  died  for  all^  then  nuere  all  dead  ;  and. 
that  he  died  for  all,  that  tbey^  vjhich  live^  should, 
vot  henceforth  live  WHO  themsehes^  but  unto  him^ 
ivhich  died  for  them,   and  rose  again.      Yea,  The 
love  cf  Christ  forcetkuSf  when  we  think  what  he 
hath  done  tor  us* 

III.  My  third  article,  "which  fhould  treat  of 
the  inclination  of  a  chriftian,  is  naturally  contain- 
ed in  the  fécond,  that  is,  in  that  which  treats  of" 
his  engagements.  To  devote  ourfelves  to  a  maf- 
ter,  who  hath  carried  his  love  to  us  fo  far;  to^ 
devote  ourfelves  to  him  by  fear  and  force  ;  to 
fubmit  to  his  laws,  becaufe  he  hath  the  power  of- 
precipitating  thofe  into  hell,  who  have  the  auda- 
city to  break  them  ;  to  obey  him  on  this  princi- 
ple only,  this  is  a  difpofition  of  mind  as  oetefta- 
ble  as  difobedience  itfclf,  as  hateful  as  open  re- 
bellion. Th*  fame  arguments,  which  prove  that 
a- chriftian  is  not  bis  own  by  engagement,  prove 
that  he  is  not  bis  own  by  inclination.  When, 
therefore,  we  fiiall  have  proved  that  this  ftatc  is. 
his  felicity  alfo,  we  ftiall  hav«  fmilhed  the  plan 
•f  this  dilcourfe.  ^ 

IV.  Can  it  be  diiïicult  to  perfiiade  you  on- 
this  article  ?  Stretch  your  imaginations.  Find,, 
if  you  can,  any  circumftance  in  life,  in  which  it 
"Would  be  happier  to  rcjeft  chnftianity  than  to 
fijbinit  to  it. 

Amidft  all  the  diCorders  and  confufions, .  and 
(fo  to  fpeak)  amidfl  the  univerfal  chaos  of  the 
prefent  w^jrld,  it  is  delightful  to  belong  to  the 
Governor,  who  firft  formed  the  world,  and  who? 
hatli  affured  us,   that  he  will  difplay   the   fame 

power 


38       The  Sever eignii  (f  Jesus  Christ 

pQVfer  In  renewing  it,  which  lie  difplayed  in  ere» 
ating  it. 

In  the  calamities  of  life,  it  is  delightful  to 
belont^  to  the  Mafter,  who  diftiibutes  them  ; 
who  diuributes  them  only  for  our  good  ;  who 
knows  offliélioiîs  by  CKpenence  ;  whofe  Icve  in- 
clines him  to  terminate  our  fufferings  ;  and  who 
continues  them  from  the  fame  principle  of  love, 
that  inclines  him  to  terminate  them,  when  we 
fliall  have  derived  tbofe  advantages  from  them, 
for  which  they  were  fvint* 

During  the  perfecutions  of  the  church,  it  is 
delightfnl  to  belong  to  a  Guardian,  who  can  curb 
our  perfecutors,  and  contre  ul  every  tyrant  ;  who 
wfeth  them  for  the  eiiecution  of  his  own  counfds  ;- 
and  who  will  break  them  in  pieces  with  a  rod  of 
iron,  when  they  can  no  longer  contribute  to  the- 
fan(5\ifying  of  his  fervant?. 

Under  a  fcnfe  of  bur  infirmities^  when  we  arc 
terrified  with  the  purity^  of  that  morality,  the 
tquity  of  which  we  are  obliged  to  own,  even 
■while  we  tremble  at  its  feveriiy-;  it  is  delightful- 
to  belong  to  a  Judge,  who  doth  not  exacl  his 
rights  with  the  utmolt  rigour  ;  who  knoivetb  our 
frame^  PfaL  ciii.  14*-  who  pitieth  ojr  infirmities  % 
and  who  affureth  us,  that  be  ivill  not  break  a 
bruised  reed^  nor  quench  tbe  smoking  fiaxy 
Matt.  xii.  20;- 

When  our  palïïons  are  intoxicated,  in  tbofe 
ffttal  moments,  in  which  the  defire  of  pofTeffing^ 
tl'.e  objedVs  of  our  paffions  wliolly  occupies  our 
hc/trts,  and  we  confuler  them  as  our  paradife,  our 
gods  ;  it  is  delighit'u),  however  incapable  we  may 
bîe  of  attending  to  it,  to  belong  to  a  Lord  who 
Terrains  and  controuls  us,  becaufe  he  loves  us  ; 
aiid  v/ho  refufeth  to  giant  us  what  we  fo  eagerly 
denre,  becavhfc  he  wi<uld  either  preclude  thofc" 
terrible  regrets,  which  penitents  ltd  after  the 
commiiHon  of  great  fius,  or  thofe  more  terrible' 
torments,  that  are  iufcpHrabie  from  fiual  impeni^ 
tsnaci.  Under 


in  the  Church.-  8^ 

Under  a  recolle£lion  of  our  rebellions,  it  is  de- 
lightful to  belong  to  a  Parent,  who  will  receive 
ws  favourably  when  we  implore  his  clemency  ; 
who  fvveeteus  the  bitternefs  of  our  remorfe  ;  who 
is  touched  with  our  regrets  ;  who  wipes  away 
the  tears,  that  the  remembrance  of  our  backflid- 
ings  makes  us  (bed  ;  who  sparaib  us^  as  a  man 
spareth  bis  own  son,  that  serveth  bim,  Mai. 
iii.  17. 

In  that  empty  void,  into  which  we  are  often 
condu<Slcd,  while  we  feem  to  enjoy  the  moft  folid. 
eftablifbments,  the  moft  exquifite  pleafures,  and 
the  moft  brilliant  honours,  it  is  delightful  to  be- 
long to  a  Patron,  who  referves  for  us  obje£ls  far 
better  fuited  to  our  original  excellence,  and  to 
the  imnienfity  of  our  defires.  To  live  to  Jesus 
Christ  then,  is  tht  felicity  of  a  chriftian. 

But,  if  it  be  a  felicity  to  belong  to  Jefus  Chnifl 
•while  we  live,  it  is  a  felicity  incomparably  great- 
er to  belong  to  him  when  we  die.  We  will  con- 
clude this  meditation  with  this  article  ;  and  it  is 
an  article,  that  I  would  endeavour  above  all  oth- 
ers to  iiTiprefs  on  your  hearts,  and  to  engage  you 
to  take  home  to  your  houfes.  But,  unhappily^ 
the  fubje£t  of  this  article  is  one  of  thofe,  which 
generally  make  the  leaft  impreflions  on  the  minds 
of  chriftians.  I  know  a  qreat  many  chriftians^ 
"who  place  their  happinefs  in  living-  to  Jesus 
Christ  ;  but  how  fev/  have  love  enough  for  him 
to  efteem  it  a  fehcity  to  die  to  him  I  Not  only 
Is  the  number  of  thofe  fmall,  who  experience 
fuch  a  degree  of  love  to  Chrift  ;  there  are  very 
few,  who  even  comprehend  what  we  mean  on  this 
fubjeâ:.  Some  efforts  of  divine  love  relemble 
very  accurate  and  refined  reafonings»  They 
ought  naturally  to  be  the  moft  intelligible  to  in- 
lelligent  creatures,  and  they  are  generally  the 
leaft  underftood.  Few  people  are  capable  of  that 
attention,  which  takes  the  mind  from  every  thing 
foreign   from   the   objedt  in  contemplation,   and 

fixeth 


-^       The  Sovcreîgniy  of  Je  sus  Chrhi 

fixeth  it  not  only  on  the  fubje£^,  but  alfo  on  that 
part,  on  that  point  of  it,  if  I  may  be  allowed  to 
fpeak  fo,  'vhich  is  to  be  inveÛigatcd  and  explain., 
ed  ;  fo  that)  by  a  frailty  which  mankind  cannot 
fuaiciently  deplore,  nrircifion  confufeth  our  ideas, 
and  light  itfelf  makes  a  fu'ojeit' daik.  In  like 
manner,  there  are  fome  efTorts  cf  di\ine  love,  ^ 
detached  from  fenfe,  fo  free  from  all  fennbie  ob- 
jets, fo  fuperior  to  even  all  the  means,  rbat  re- 
lîg'ion  ufeth  to  attract  us  to  God,  fo  eagerly  af- 
piring  after  an  unioii  more  clofe,  -rnore  noble,  and 
jnore  tendejr,  that  the  greattfl;  part  of  chriftiansy 
as  I  faid  before,  are  not  only  incapable  of  expe- 
riencing them,  bat  they  ate  alfo  hard  to  be  per- 
iuaded  that  there  is  any  reality  in  what  ihey^ 
have  been  told  about  them. 

T(?  be  Jésus  Chiist's  in  the  hour  of  death  by 
condiiioHy  by  enga^ffement^  and  Lboveall  by  incli" 
yiatwiiy  is  the  only  means  of  dying  vrth  delight. 
V/ithout  thefe,  whatever  makes  cur  felicity  while 
we  live,  will  become  our  punifimient  when  wc 
die;  whether  it  be  a  criminal  object,  or  ah  inno- 
cent obje<S,  or  even  an  objedt  which  God  himfeif 
commandeth  us  to  love. 

Criminal  obje£ls  will 'punifh  yon»  They  will 
reprefent  death  to  you  as  the  nuffenger  of  an 
avenging  God,  who  comes  to  dr?.g  yea  before  a 
tribunal,  wheve  the  Judge  will  eKamine  and  pwni 
ilh  all  your  crimes.  LaivJ  u  I  ùhj^cXs  will  dill  re  f$- 
you.-  Pleafant  fields  I  ccnveiirent  houfes  I  wc 
mud  fori'ake  you.  Natural  rehcions  !  agree'abh; 
companions  I  fr/ithfal -iViends  I  we  mu{V  give  you 
up.  From  you,  our  d^ar  children  !  who  kindle 
in  our  heart:  a  kind  of  love,  that  agitates  and 
inflames  beings,  wtVen  nature  feeros  to  render 
them  incapable  of  heat  and  motion,  we  icufl.  be. 
torn  from  you. 

Religions  obje^ls,  which  we  are  commanded 
above  all  others  to  love,  will  contribute  to  onr 
3çi>gUifti  in  a  dying  bed,  if  they  have  confined  our 

love. 


in  the  Churth.-  -91 

■love,  and  rendered  us  too  fenfible  to  that  kind 
of  happinefs  which  piety  procures  in  this  world; 
and  if  they  have  prevented  our  fouls  from  rifin^ 
jnto-  a  contemplation  of  that  bleffed  ftate,  in 
"which  there  will  be  no  more  temple,  no  more  fa- 
craments,  no  more  grofs  and  fenHbie  worthip. 
The  man,  who  is  too  much  attached  to  thefc 
things,  is  confounded  at  the  hour  of  death.  The 
land  of  love,  to  which  he  g^oes,  is  an  unknown 
country  to  him  y  and  as  the  borders  of  it,  on 
■which,  he  (lands,  and  on  which  alone  his  eyes  are 
fixed,  prefent  only  precipices  to  his  view,  fsar 
and  trembling  furround  his  every  (lep» 

But  a  believerj  who  loves  Jefus  Ghrift  with 
that  kind  t)f  love,  which  made  St.  Paul  exclaim, 
7 he  love  of  Christ  constrainetb  wj",  ;:2  Gor.  v,  14« 
finds  himfelf  on  the- fummit  of  his  w»(hes  at  the 
approach  of  death.  This-believer,  '■■  living. in  this 
world,  rèfembîes  the  foiiof  a  great  king,  whom 
;4bn)e  fad  event  tore,  from  his  royal  parent  in  his 
cradle;  who  knows  his  parent  only  by  the  fame 
of  his  virtues  ;  who  has  always  a  difficult,  and 
often  an  intercepted  correfpondence  with  his  pa- 
rent ;  whofe  remittances,  and  favours  from  his 
parent,  are  always  dirainiflied  by  the  lian'ds 
through  which  they  come  to  him.  With  what 
tranfport  would  fuch  a  Ton  meet  the  moment  ap- 
pointed  by  his  father  for  his  returu  to  hi»  natural 
ftate  I 

I  belong  to  God,  (thefe  are  thefentimcnts  of 
the  believer,  of  whom  I  am  fpeaking)  I  belong 
to  God,  not  only  by  his  foveneign  dominion  over 
me -as  a  creature  ;  not  only  by  that  right,  whica 
as  a  mafter,  who  hath  redeemed  his  flave,  he  hath 
acquired  over  me  ;  but  I  belong  to  God,  becaufe 
I  love  him,  and  becaufe,  I  knov;,  God  alone  de- 
fcrves  my  higheft  efteem.  The  deep  impreflions, 
that  his  adorable  perfedions  have  made  on  my 
mind,  make  me  impatient  with  every  objed^, 
which  intercept*  vaj  Hght  of  him,     I  could  not 

be 


ig2       The  Sovereignty  of  Jesus  Christ 

be  content  to  abide  any  longer  in  this  world, 
we'-e  lie  not  to  ordain  my  ftay  ;  and  were  I  not 
to  coufider  his  will  as  the  only  law  of  my  con- 
dud.  But  the  law,  that  commands  me  to  live, 
doth  not  forbid  me  to  deiire  to  die.  I  confider 
death  as  the  period  fixed  tor  the  gratifying  of  my 
inoft  ardent  wifli-s,  the  confummation  of  my 
higheft  joy.  ♦*  Whilft  I  am  at  home  in  the 
body,  1  am  abfent  from  the  Lord,"  2  Cor.  v.  6. 
But  it  would  bç  incomparably  more  delightful  to 
be  absent  from  the  body^  and  to  be  present  with 
the  Lord^  ver.  8.  And  what  can  detain  me  on 
earth,  when  God  (hali  condcfcend  to  call  me  to 
Iiimfelf  ? 

Not  ye  criminal  objeds  !  you  I  never  loved  ; 
and  although  I  have  fometimes  fuffered  myfelf 
to  be  fcduced  by  your  deceitful  appearances  of 
pleafure,  yet  I  have  been  fo  feverely  punifhed  by 
the  tears  that  you  have  caufed  me  to  flied,  and 
by  the  remorfe  which  you  have  occafioned  my 
confcience  to  feel,  that  there  is  no  reafon  to  fear 
my  putting  you  into  the  plan  of  my  felicity. 

Nor  (liall  ye  detain  me,  /jw/w/ objeéls  I  How 
flrong  foever  the  attachments,  that  unite  me  to 
you,  may  be,  you  are  only  flreams  of  happinefs, 
and  I  am  going  to  the  fountain  of  felicity.  You 
are  only  emanations  of  happinefs,  and  I  am  going 
to  the  happy  God, 

Neither  fliall  ye,  religious  objeâis  !  detain  me. 
You  are  only  means,  and  death  is  going  to  con- 
duâ:  me  to  the  end  ;  you  are  only  the  road,  to  die 
is  to  arrive  at  home.  True,  I  fiiall  no  more  read 
thofe  excellent  works,  in  which  authors  of  the 
brightcd  genius  have  raifed  the  truth  from 
depths  of  darkuefs  awd  prejudice,  In  which  it  had 
been  buried,  and  placed  it  in  the  moR  lively  point 
of  view.  I  {hall  hear  no  more  of  thofe  fermons, 
in  which  the  preacher,  animated  by  the  holy 
fpirit  of  Go'l,  attempts  to  elevate  me  above  xXvt 
prefent  world.     But  I  fliall  hear  and  contemplate 

eternal 


4n  the  Church,  93 

<ternàî  wifdom,  and  I  (hall  difcover  in  my  co;ti- 
merce  with  it  the  -views,  the  defigns,,  the  plans  of 
my  Creator  ;  and  I  (liall  acquire  more  wifdom  iii 
one  moment  by  this  mean,  tlian  I  (hould  ever  ob- 
tain by  hearing  the  befl  compofed  fermons,  and 
by  reading  the  beft  written  books.  True,  I  Ihail 
no  more  devote  mylclf  to  you,  clofet  exerciies  Î 
holy  meditations  !  afpirings  of  a  foul  in  fearch 
of  its  God  1  crying,  JLord^  I  beseech  thee  s/ieiv 
me  thy  glory  I  Exod.  xxxiii.  18,  Lord,  diHipatc 
the  dark  thick  cloud  that  conceals  thee  ïvtim  my 
light  !  fuffer  me  to  approach  that  light,  whlcli 
hath  hitherto  been  inacceirible  to  me  I  But  death 
is  the  diflipation  of  clouds  and  darknefs  ;  it  is  an 
approach  to  perfedl  light  ;  it  takes  me  from  my 
clofet,  and  prefents  nje  like  a  feraph  at  the  fooc 
of  the  throne  of  God  and  the  Lamb.» 

True,  I  fliall  no  more  partake  of  you,  ye  holy 
■ordinances  of  religion  1  ye  facred  ceremonies  I 
'that  have  conveyed  fo  many  confolations  into  my 
foul  ;  that  have  fo  amply  aiiordcd  foîidity  and 
folace  to  the  ties,  which  united  ir,y  heart  to  my 
God;  that  have  fo  often  procured  me  a  heaveti 
-on  earth  ;  but  I  quit  you  becaufe  I  am  going  to 
receive  immediate  efFulions  of  divine  love,  plcaf- 
\ires  at  God's  right  hand  for  evermore, yz;//7;c:^5  of 
Joy  in  bis  presence^  Pfal.  xvi.  11,  1  quit  you 
becanfe  , 

Alas  !  your  hearts  perhaps  have  efcaped  me, 
iTiy  brethren  !  perhaps  ihefe  emotion?,  frpt-rior 
to  your  piety,  are  no  longer  the  fivbjc^l  of  your 
attention.  I  have,  however,  no  other  direcliou 
to  give  you,  than  that  wîiich  may  (land  for  an 
abridgement  of  this  difcouife,  of  all  my  other 
preaching,  and  of  my  whole  minilby  ;  Love  God  ; 
be  the  Lord's  by  /n<://?jr7/;c7?7,  as  you  are  his  hy 
condition^  and  by  engagement.  Then,  the  mife- 
tics  of  this  life  will  be  tolerable,  and  the  approach 
of  death  delightful,  God  grant  W\s  blflTing  o:i 
the  word]  To  him  be  honour  and  glory  for  ever. 
Amen.  I 


SERMON    IV. 

THE   E®i!ÂLITY  OF  MANKIND. 

Proverbs  xxii.  2. 

The  rich  and  poor  meet  together  :   the  Lord  is 
the  maker  of  them  alL 

XaMONG  the  various  difpenfations  of 
providence,  which  regard  mankind,  one  of  the 
niofl:  advantageous  in  the  original  defign  of  the 
Creator,  and  at  the  fame  time  one  of  the  mofl 
fatal  through  our  abule  of  it,  is  the  diverfity  of 
our  conditions.  How  could  men  have  formed 
one  foclal  body,  if  all  conditions  had  been  equal  ? 
Had  all  poffeffed  the  fame  rank,  the  fame  opu- 
lence, the  fame  power,  how  could  they  have  re- 
lieved one  another  from  the  inconveniences, 
which  would  have  continually  attended  each  of 
them  :  Variety  of  conditions  renders  men  ntc\;r- 
fary  to  each  other.  The  governor  is  neceÛ'ary 
to  the  people,  the  people  are  neceffary  to  the  gov- 
ernor ;  wife  ftatefmen  are  neceffary  to  a  powerful 
foldiery,  a  powerful  foidiery  is  neceffary  to  wife 
Itatefmen.  A  fenfe  of  this  neceiTity  is  the  flrong- 
eft  bond  of  union,  and  this  it  is,  which  inclines 
one  to  aflill  another  in  hopes  of  receiving  affid:- 
ance  in  his  turn. 

But  if  this  diverfity  be  connected  with  the 
highefl  utility  to  mankind  in  the  original  defign 
of  the  Creator,  it  is  become,  we  mufl:  alTow,  pro- 
du6live  of  fatal  evils  through  our  abafe  of  it. 
On  the  one  hand,  they,  whofe  condition  Is  the 
moft  brilliant,  are  dazzled  with  their  own  bright- 
nefs  ;  they  ftudy  the  articles,  which  elevate  them 
above  their  fellow  creatures,  and  they  choofe  to 
be  ignorant  of  every  thing,  that  puts  themfelves 
on  a  level  with  them  ;   they  perfuade  themfelves, 

that 


/ 


q6  The  £  quality  cf  Mankind. 

xh-'.x.  they  are  beings  Incomparnble,  far  more  rio- 
bie  and  exctlltpt  livan  tiiofe  vile  mortals,  oh 
ivhorn  they  pio^ly  trtad,  and  on  whom  they 
iVaTfly  deign  ^^  caîl  a  haugiity  eye.  Hence 
i:rovoking  arrogance,  cruel  referve,  and  hence 
tyranny  and  dcfpotifm.  On  the  other  hand, 
they,  who  are  placed  in  inferior  ftations,  proftratiÉ 
their  imaginations  before  ihefe  beings,  whom 
tbcy  treat  rather  as  g'ods  than  men  ;  them  tliey 
coiiRitute  arbiters  of  right  and  wrong,  true  and 
falie  ;  they  forget,  while  tliey  refj^edl  the  rank 
iv'hich  the  S'-'preme  Governor  of  the  world  hatli 
givfiii  to  their  funeriors,  to  maintain  a  fenfe  of 
their  own  dig-niiy»  Hence  come  foft  complianc- 
es, bafe  fubmiffions  of  reafon  and  confcience, 
ilnvery  the  moft  willing  and  abje(5\,  to  the  high 
ikniands  of  thefe  pliantojns  of  grandeur,  thefe 
imaginary  god?. 

To  redlify  thefe  difl'ereiv',  ideas,  to  humble  the 
ore  clafs,  and  to  exalt  the  other,  it  is  neceffary 
Î0  ihew  men  in  their  true  poirt  of  view  ;  to  con- 
vince them  that  diverfity  of  condition,  which 
God  hath  been  pleafed  to  eilablifh  among  them, 
is  perfeélly  ccnfiftent  with  equality  ;  that  the 
iplendid  condition  of  the  iirR,  includes  nothing^ 
that  favours  their  ideas  of  fclf-preference  ;  and 
that  there  is  nothing  in  the  lew  condition  ef  the 
laR,  which  deprives  them  of  their  real  dignity, 
or  debafes  their  intelligences  formed  in  the  image 
of  God.  I  defign  to  difcufs  this  fubjecl  to-day. 
The  men,  who  compofe  this  audience,  and  among 
%vhom  providt-nce  hath  very  unequally  divided, 
the  blclSngs  of  ttiis  life  ;  princes,  who  command,, 
and  to  whom  God  himfelf  hath  given  authority 
to  command  fubje^s  ;  fubje<Sls,  who  obey,  and 
on  whom  God  hath  impofed  obedience  as  a  duty  ; 
the  rich,  who  nive  alms,  and  the  poor  who  re- 
ceive them  ;  ail,  all  my  hearers,  I  am  going  to 
reduce  to  tlieir  natural  equality,  ard  to  confider 
tills  equality  as   a   fouice  of  piety.     This  is   the 

meaning 


The  Equality  of  Mankind*  97 

meaning  of  the  wife  man  in  the  words  of  the 
text,  "The  rich  and  the  poor  meet  together  : 
the  Lord  is  the  maker  of  them  all." 

Let  us  enter  into  the  matter.  "We  fuppofe 
two  truths,  and  do  not  attempt  to  prove  them» 
Firft,  that,  although  the  wife  man  mentions  here 
only  x.\\o  difFcient  ftates,  yet  he  includes  all. 
Under  the  general  notion  of  rich  and  poor,  we 
think,  he  comprehends  every  thing,  that  makes 
any  feniible  difference  in  the  conditions  of  man- 
kind. Accordingly,  't  is  an  incontel'lible  truth, 
that  what  he  fays  of  the  rich  and  poor  may  be 
faid  of  the  nobleman  and  plebeian,  of  the  mafter 
and  the  fervant.  It  may  be  fit  id,  the  mafler  and 
the  fervant,  the  nobleman  and  the  plebeian,  meet 
together  ;  the  Lord  is  the  maker  of  them  ^all  : 
and  fo  of  the  reft. 

It  is  not  unlikely,  however,  tliat  Solomon, 
when  he  fpoke  of  the  rich  and  poor,  had  a  par- 
ticular deiign  in  choofing  this  kind  of  diveriity 
of  condition  to  illidrate  his  meaning  in  prefer- 
ence to  every  otiier.  Although  I  can  hardly 
conceive,  that  there  ever  was  a  4«-M-iod  of  time, 
in  which  the  love  of  riches  did  fafcinate  the  eyes 
ai  mankind,  as  it  does  in  this  age  ;  yet  it  is  very 
credible,  that  in  Solomon's  time,  as  m  o^irs,  rich- 
es m;ide  the  grand  CiiFcrence  amcr.g  men. 
Si;ri.5lly  Tpealdng,  there  are  now  only  two  condi- 
tions, of  mankind,  that  of  the  rich  and  that  of 
the  poarv  Riches  decide  all,  yea  thofe  qualities, 
which  feem  to  have  no  concern  with  them,  I 
mean,  mental  qual'.licaiion?.  Find  but  ti)e  art 
of  ariaffing  money,  and  you  will  thereby  find 
that  of  unitijig  in  your  own  psrfon  all  the  advan- 
tages  of  which  mankind  have  entertained  the 
highe.l  ideas.  How  mean  foevcr  yuur  birth  may 
have  been,  you-wiii  puirefs  the  art  of  concealing 
it,  and  you  may  form  an  alliance  with  the  moll 
il]u!lriou£  families  ;  how  fmall  foever  your  knowl- 
edge may  be,  you  n>ay  pafs  for  a  fuperior  genius, 
1  2  capable 


^8  The  Ecjiialily  of  Mankind, 

CTipable  of  deciding  queftions  the  moO:  intricate, 
points  the  mod  abiliult;  ;  and,  what  is  Rill  more 
deplorable,  you  may  putchate  with  iîlver  and 
gold  a  kind  of  honour  and  virtue,  while  you  re-- 
jnain  the  moll  abandoned  of  laankind,  at  leafl, 
your  money  will  attracl  that  rcfpcct,  which  is 
due  to  nothing  bf.t  honour  and  virtue. 

The  fccond  truth  which  we  fuppofe,  i*,  that 
tliis  propolUion,  the  Lord  is  the  maker  of  the  at 
all^  is  one  of  thofe  concifc,  I  had  alnJoPi  faid 
one  of  thofe  defedive  propofitions,  which  a  judi- 
cious auditor  ought  to  fill  up,  in  order  to  give  it 
a  proper  meaning^.  The  Ryle  is  very  commofr  in 
our  fcripuires  ;  it  iâ  peculiarly  proper  in  fenten- 
tious  works^  fnch  as  this,  out  of  which  we  have. 
;aken  the  text.  The  deugn  of  Solomon  is  to. 
ttach  us,  that  whatever  divcriaies  of  conditions 
there  may  be  in  fcciety,  the  men,  who  compolb 
it,  are  essentially  equal.  The  reafon  that  he  af- 
f)gns,  is,  the  Lord  is  the  maker  of  tbon  all.  If. 
this  idea  be  not  added,  the  prcporition  proves  , 
jiothing  at  all.  It  does  not  follow,  becaufc  ther 
iame  God  is  the  erealor  of  two  beings,  that  theret 
is  any  refemblance  between  them,  much  lefs  that 
they  are  equal.  Is  not  God  the  creator  of  pure 
vnembodied  intelligences,  who  have  faculties  fu- 
perior  to  thofe  of  mankind?  Is  not  God  the  au- 
thor of  their  exiftence  as  well  as  of  ours  ?  I3e- 
caufe  God  Is  the  creator  of  bothy  does  it  follow 
that  both  ere  cqnal  ?  God  is  no  lefs  the  creator 
of  the  organs  of  an  ant,  than  he  is  the  creator 
©f  the  fubiinie  geniufes  of  a  part  of  mankind». 
Becaufe  God  hath  created  an  ant  and  a  fublime 
genius,  does  it  follow,  that  thefe  two  beings  are 
iqnal  ?  The  meaning  of  the  wordà  of  Solomon 
depends  then  on  what  a  prudent  reader  fupplies. 
"Vv  e  may  judge  what  ought  to  be  fupplied  by  the 
nature  of  the  fubjeû,  and  by  a  parallel  palfage 
in  the  book  of  Job.  *'  Did  not  he,  that  made 
•e  in  the  woiiib,  make  luy  fcrvant  ?   and  did  he 

cot 


The  Equality  of  Mankind*  ^^ 

fiot  fafliion  us  alike*?"  chap.  xxxi.  15.  To  the 
■words  of  our  text,  therefore,  the  Lord  is  tZ-c 
maker  of  tbem  all^  we  mufl:  add,  the  Lord  hath 
fasbiontd  tbem  ail  alike.  Nothing  but  grofs  ig- 
norance, or  wild  treachery,  can  incline  an  ex- 
pofitor  to  abufe  this  libt;rty  of  making  up  the 
fenfe  of  a  paffage,  and  induce  him  to  conclude, 
that  he  r»ay  add  to  a  text  whatever  neay  feem  to 
him  the  moft  proper  to  fupport  a  favourite  opin- 
ion, or  to  cover  an  unworthy  paûion.  When 
We  are  inquilitive  for  truth,  it  is  cafy  to  difcover 
the  paffages  of  holy  fcripture,  in  which  the  au- 
thors have  niadc  ufe  of  thefe  concife  iîuperfeél 
fcntcnces.. 

Of  this  kind  are  all  pauages,  which  excite  no- 
iillindl  ideas,  or  which  exitc  ideas  foreign  from 
the  fcope  of  the  wriicr,  unlefs  the  meaning  be 
fupplied.  Eor  exaiDple,  we  read  thefe  words  in 
the  eleventh  chapter  of  St.  Piiul's  fécond  epiftle 
to  the  Corinthians,  ver.  4,  *' If  he,  that  cometbj 
preacheth  another  Jefus,  -whom  we  have  not 
preached,  or  if  ye  receive  another  fpirit,  which 
ye  have  not  received,  or  another  goipel,  which 
ye  have  not  accepted,  ye  might  well  bear  with 
him."  If  we  attach  fuch  ideas  to  thefe  words, 
as  they  feem  at  firft  to  excite,  we  Dial!  take  therij 
in  a  fenfe  quite  oppofite  to  the  meaning  of  St. 
l:'aul.  The  apoltle  aimed  to  make  the  Gorinthi« 
an?  vefpedl  his  miniftry,  and  to  confidcr  his  apof- 
tlefliip  as  confirmed  of  God  in  a  manner  as  clear 
and  decifive  as  that  of  any  minifter,  wl)o  had 
preached  to  tJiem.  Is  the  propofition,  that  we 
have  read,  any  thing  to  this  purpofe,  unlefs  we 
fupply  what  is  not  eiipreffed  I     But  if  we  fiipply 

what 

♦  This  reading  of  the  French  bible  differs  a  little 
from  our  tranflation  ;  but  a  comparifon  of  ihe  two 
tranflations  with  the  original,  and  with  tlae  fcope  of 
the  place,  will  give  the  preference  to  the  French  read- 
ing. Nunne  disposult  710s  in  uicro  unu3  atquG  idem  ?•  Vidi 
ïoli  S)  uops.  m  loc. 


ICO  The  Equality  of  Mankind, 

•what  is  underftof)cl,  and  add  thefe  words,  but  thi& 
is  incrtdiifie^  or  any  others  equivalent,  we  fliall 
puce  ve  il»c  force  of  his  reafonsng-,  which  is  this: 
if  there  hath  been  among  you'  any  one,  w^iofe 
preaching  have  revealed  a  Redeemer,  better 
adapted  to  your  wants  than  he,  whom  we  have 
preached  to  you,  or  if  you  have  received  more 
excellent  gifts  than  thofe,  which  the  holy  Spirit 
fo  abundantly  d iff  Ted  among  you  by  our  minif- 
try,  you  might  indeed  have  preferred  him  before 
us  ;  bot  it  is  not  credible,  that  you  nave  had 
fuch  teachers  :  you  ought  tiien  to  refpeCt  our 
miniflry. 

We  need  not  make  any  more  remarks  of  this 
kind  ;  our  text,  it  is  eafy  to  fee,  ought  to  be 
clalTcd  with  them,  that  are  impt  rfe€l,  and  mull 
be  fupplied  with  words  to  make  up  the  fenfe. 
The  rich  and  the  poor  meet  together  in  four  arti- 
cles of  equality  ;  becaufe  the  Lord  bath  made 
îbemall  equal  in  nature  or  m  essence^  equal  ia 
privileges^  equal  in  appointment^  rqu.il  in  their 
last  end.  The  Lord  hath  made  them  equal  ia- 
nature  ;  they  have  the  fame  faculties,  and  the 
fame  infirmities  :  Equal  in  privileges  ;  f';r  both 
are  capable  by  the  excellence  nf  their  nature,  and 
more  ftilt  by  that  of  their  religion,  to  form  the 
nobleft  defigns  :  Equal  in  designation  ;  for  al- 
though the  rich  differ  from  the  poor  in  their  con- 
dition, yet  both  are  intended  to  anfwer  the  great 
purpofes  of  God  with  regj^rd  to  human  nature  : 
Finally,  they  are  equal  in  their  last  end  ;  the 
fame  fentence  of  death  is  paffed  on  both,  and 
both  alike  mnfl  fubmit  to  it.  "The  rich  and 
the  poor  meet  together  :  the  Lord  is  the  maker 
of  them  all."  Thus  the  text  affords  us  four 
truths  worthy  of  our  moll  ferious  attention. 

"J'he  firft  article 'of  eqtjality,  in  which  men  meet 
together^  is  an  equality  of  essence  or  oï  nature  ; 
the  Lord  hath  m-ide  them  all  with  the  fame  fac- 
ulties, and  with  the  Tame  infirmities. 

1.  With 


TJu  Equality  of  Manlind,         loi 

1.  With  the  fame /(3ci//f;V5.  What  is  man  ?■ 
He  conhris  of  a  body,  and  of  a  foul  united  to  a 
body.  This  definition,  or  rather,  if  you  will, 
this  defcription,  agrees  to  all  mankind,  to  the 
great  as  well  as  to  the  fmali,  to  the  rich  as  well 
as  to  the  poor.  The  foul  of  the  poor  hath  the 
fame  power  as  that  of  the  rich,  and  to  lay  down 
principles,  to  infer  confequences,  to  diflincfuifti- 
truth  from  falfehood,  to  choofe  good  or  evil,  ojr 
examine  what  is  moft  advantageous  and  mofi:  glo- 
rious to  it;  The  body  of  the  poor,  as  well  as 
that  of  the  rich,  difplays  the  wifdom  of  him,  who 
formed  it  ;  it  hath  a  fymmeiry  in  its  parts,  an 
cxadlnefs  in  its  motions,  and  a  proportion  to  its 
fecret  fprings.  The  laws,  that  unite  the  body  of 
the  poor  to  his  foul,  are  the  fame  as  thofe,  which 
unite  th^fe  two  beings  in  the  rich  ;  there  is  the 
fame  connexion  between  the  two  parts,  that  con- 
ftitute  the  eifence  of  the  man  ;  a  fimilar  motion 
of  the  body  produceth  a  fimilar  thought  in  the 
mind  ;  a  fimilar  idea  of  the  mind,  or  a  fimilar 
emotion  of  the  heart,  produceth  a  fimilar  motion 
of  the  body.  This  is  man.  Thefe  are  the  fac- 
ulties of  men,  Diverfity  of  condition  makes  no 
alteration  in  thefe  faculties. 

2.  The  Lord  hath  viade  them  alt  with  the 
fame  hifirmities.  They  have  the  fame  infi-rmities 
of  body.  The  body  of  the  rich,  as  well  as  that 
of  the  poor,  is  a  common  receptacle,  where  a 
thoufand  impurities  meet  ;  it  is  a  general  ren- 
dezvous of  pains  and  ficknefles  ;  it  is  a  bouse  of- 
clay,  whose  foundation  is  in  the  dust,  and  is 
crushed  before  the  moth,   Job  iv.  19. 

They  have  the  fame  mental  infirmities.  The 
mind  of  the  rich,  like  that  of  the  poor,  is  inca- 
pable of  fatlsfying  itfelf  on  a  thoufand  defirable- 
qoedions.  The  mind  of  the  rich,  as  well  as  that 
of  the  poor,  is  prevented  by  its  natural  ignorance, 
when  it  would  expand  itfelP  in  contempla rion,, 
and  eclaiicife  a  number  of  obvious  phojnonx^na. 

The 


1C2         The  Equality  of  Mankind. 

The  foul  of  the  rich,  like  that  of  the  poor,  is  fab- 
jcdl  to  doubt,  uncertainty,  and  ignorance  ;  and, 
wh-Àt  is  n;ore  nicrtifying-  flill,  the  heart  of  the 
rich,  like  the  poor  man's  heart,  is  fubjetl  to  the 
fame  paflions,  to  envy,  and  to  anger,  and  to  all 
the  diforder  of  fin. 

They  have  the  fame  frailties  in  the  laws,  that 
unite  the  foul  to  the  body.  The  foul  of  the  rich, 
like  the  foul  of  the  poor,  is  united  to  a  body,  or 
rather  enflaved  by  it.  The  foul  of  the  rich,  like 
that  of  tiie  poor,  is  interrupted  in  its  moft  pro- 
found meditations  by  a  fingle  ray  of  light,  by  the 
buzzing  of  a  fly,  or  by  the  touch  of  an  atom  of 
dull.  The  rich  man's  facidtles  of  reafoning  and 
of  felf-determining  are  fulpended,  and  in  fome 
fort  vanifhed  and  abforbed,  like  tliofe  of  the  poor, 
on  the  flighteft  alteration  oi  the  fenfes  ;  and  this 
alteration  of  the  fenfes  happens  to  hini^  as  well 
as  to  the  poor,  at  the  approach  of  certain  objeds. 
David's  reafon  is  fufpended  at  the  fight  of  Bath- 
ilieba  ;  David  no  longer  dilTinguiïlieth  good  from 
evil  ;  David  forgets  the  purity  of  the  laws,  which 
be  himfelf  had  fo  higi.'y  cflebrated  ;  and,  at  the 
fight  of  this  obj'jcl,  his  whole  fydein  of  piety  is 
refuted,  his  whole  edifice  of  religion  finks  and 
difappears. 

The  fécond  point  of  equality,  \n  wh'xch  the  rich 
and  the  poor  meet  iogei/jer,  is  an  equality  of 
privileges.  To  afpire  at  certain  eminences,  when 
providence  hath  placed  us  in  inferior  flatiotis  in 
fociety,  is  egregious  foily.  If  a  man,  who  hath 
only  ordinary  talents,  only  a  coramon  genius, 
pretend  to  acquire  an  immortal  reputation  among 
heroes,  and  to  fill  the  world  with  his  name  and 
exploits,  he  acts  fancifully  and  wildly.  If  he, 
who  was  born  a  fr.bjed\,  raPiily  and  ambitiouCy 
attempt  to  afcend  the  tribunal  of  a  mugi  ft  rate,  or 
the  throne  of  a  king,  and  to  aim  at  governing', 
when  he  is  called  to  obey,  he  is  guilty  of  rebell- 
ion. But  this  law,  which  forbids  inferiors  to  ar- 
rogate 


The  Equality  of  Mankind.         103 

TOgate  to  themfelves  fome  privileges,  doth  not 
prohibit  them  from  afpiriug  at  others,  incompar- 
ably more  great  and  glorious. 

Let  us  difcover,  if  it  be  poflible,  the  moft  mif- 
erable  man  in  this  affembly  ;  let  us  diffipate  the 
darknefs  that  covers  him  ;  let  us  raile  him  from 
that  kind  of  grave,  in  which  his  indigence  and 
meannefs  conceal  him.  This  man,  unknown  to 
the  reft  of  mankind  ;  this  man,  who  feems  hardly- 
formed  by  the  .Creator  into  an  intelligent  exift- 
ence  ;  this  man  hath,  however,  the  greatefl  and 
moil  glorious  privileges.  This  man,  being  recon- 
ciled to  God  by  religion,  hath  a  right  to  afpire 
to  the  mod  noble  and  fublime  objefts  of  it.  He 
hath  a  right  to  elevate  his  foul  to  God  in  ardent 
prayer  ;  and,  without  the  hazard  of  being  taxed 
•with  vanity,  he  may  affnrc  himfclf,  that  God, 
the  Great  God,  encircled  in  glory,  and  furround- 
cd  with  the  praifes  of  the  blelTed,  will  behold 
him,  hear  his  prayer,  and  grant  his  requeft.  This 
man  hath  a  right  to  fay  to  himfelf.  The  atten- 
tion, that  the  Lord  of  nature  gives  to  the  gov- 
ernment of  the  univerfe,  to  the  wants  of  man- 
kind, to  the  innumerable  company  of  angels,  and 
to  his  own  felicity,  doth  not  prevent  this  adora^ 
ble  Being  from  attending  to  me  ;  from  occupy- 
ing himfelf  about  my  perfon,  my  children,  my 
family,  my  houfe,  my  health,  my  fubftance,  my 
falvation,  my  moft  minute  concern,  even  a  fin- 
gle  hair  of  my  beady  Luke  xxi.  18.  This  man 
hath  a  right  of  addrefîing  God  by  names  the  mod 
tender  and  mild,  yea,  if  I  may  venture  to  fpeak 
fo,  by  thofe  moft  familiar  names,  which  equals 
give  each  other  ;  he  may  call  him  his  God,  his 
mafter,  his  father,  his  friend.  Believers  have 
addreiïed  God  by  each  of  thefe  names,  and  God 
hath  not  only  permitted  them  to  do  fo,  he  hath 
even  expreffed  his  approbation  of  their  taking 
thefe  names  in  their  mouths.  This  man  hath  a 
right  of  coming  to  eat  with  God  at  the  Lord's 

table, 


a104         ^^  Equality  of  Mankind, 

-tabic,  and  to  live,  if  I  may  be  allowed  to  fpeak 
fo,  to  live  with  God,  as  a  man  lives  with  his 
friend.  This  man  hath  a  right  to  apply  to  hira- 
felf  whatever  is  mod  great,  nioft  comfortable, 
mofl  extatic  in  the  myfieries  of  redemption,  and 
to  fay  to  himfelf,  For  me  the  divine  Intelligence 
revolved  the  plan  of  rédemption  ;  for  me  the. Son 
of.  God  was  appointed,  before  the  foundation  of 
the  world,  to  be  a  prcpiriatory  iacrlfice  ;  for  ne 
in  the  fulnefs  of  time  he  took  mortal  ,fle(h  ;  for 
me  he  lived  feveral  years  among  men  in  this 
world  ;  for  me  he  pledged  himfelf  to  the  juftice 
of  his  Father,  and  fuifered  fuch  unparalleled  pun- 
ifliment,  as  confounds  reafon   and  lurpaffes  ima- 

■gination  ;  for  me  the  holy  Spirit  shook  the  heav- 
ens and  the  earthy  and  the  sea  and  the  dry  landy 
Hag,  ii.  6.  aiid  eftablUhed  a  miniïlry,  which  he 
coiilirmed  by  healing  the  Tick,  by  raiQng  the  dead, 
by  .cafting  out  devils,  and  by  fubverting  the 
whole  order  of  nature.  This  man  hath  a  right 
to  afpire  to  the  felicity  of  the  immortal  God,  to 
ihe  giery  of  the  immortal  God,  to  the  throne  of 
the  immortal  God.  Arrived  at  the  fatal  hour, 
lying  on  his  dying  bed,  reduced  to  the  light  of 
iifcltls  friends.,  ineffetllual  remedies,  unavailing 
tears,  he  hatha  right  to  triumph  over  death,  and 
to  defy  his  -diQorbing  in  the  ûrallffl:  degree  the 
trar.quil  calm,  that  his  foul  enjoys  ;  he  hath  a 
right  to  fummon  the  gates  of  heaven  to  admit 
his  foul,  and  to  fay  to  liiem,  Lift  up  your  heads, 
O  ye  ^-aies  !   even  lift  them  upy  ye  everlasting 

.  doors.  I 

.Thefc  are  the  inconteflible  privileges  of  ib.c. 
man,  who  appears  to  us  fo  contemptible.  I  aik, 
my  brethren,  have  the  nobles  of  the  earth  ai->y 
privileges  more  than  thefe  ?  Do  the  train  of  at- 
tendants, which  follows  them,  the  horfcs,  that 
draw  them,  the  grandees^  who  furround  them, 
the  fiipetb  titles,  which  command  exterior  honi- 
a^^,  give  them  any  real  fuperiorlty  over  thi-  maUi 

who 


The  Equality  of  Mankind,         105 

"ïwho  enjoys  thofe  privileges,  which  we  have  brief- 
ly enumerated  ?  Ah  Î  iny  brethren,  nothing 
proves  the  litilenefs  of  great  men  more  than  the 
iniprcffijn,  which  the  exLcrior  advantages,  tiiat 
(lifiinguilli  them  from  the  rell  of  niitiikind,  make 
on  their  minds.  Are  you  aware  of  what  you  are 
doing,  when  you  defpife  them  whom  providence 
placeth  for  a  few  years  in  a  Gtuation  inferior  to 
your  own  ?  '  You  are  defpifing  and  degrading 
yourfelves,  you  are  renouncing  your  real  great- 
nefs,  and,  by  .valuing  yourfelves  for  a  kind  of  for- 
eign glory,  you  difcover  a  contempt  for  that, 
■which  conftitutes  the  real  dignity  of  your  nature. 
The  glory  of  man  does  not  conGft  in  his  being  "a 
mafter,  or  a  rich  man,  a  nobleman,  or  a  king  ;  it 
confifts  in  his  being  a  man,  in  his  being  formed 
in  the  image  of  his  Creator,  and  capable  of  all 
the  elevation,  that  we  have  been  defcribing.  If 
you  condemn  your  inferiors  in  Ibciety,  you  plain- 
ly declare,  that  you  are  infenfibie  to  your  real 
dignity  ;  for,  had  you  derived  your  ideas  of  real 
greatncfs  from  their  true  fource,  you  would  have 
refpetled  it  in  perfons,  who  appear  the  nioft  mean 
and  defpicable.  The  rich  and  the  poor  weet  tO" 
gether  ;  the  Lord  hath  endowed  them  all  with 
the  fame  privileges.  They  all  meet  together  on 
the  fame  line  of  equality  in  regard  to  their  claims 
of  privileges.      This  was  the  point  to  be  proved. 

We  add,  in  the  third  place,  the  rich  and  the 
poor  meet  together  in  an  equality  of  destination. 
Rich  and  poor  are  placed  by  providence  in  différ- 
ent ranks,  I  grant  ;  but  their  different  ftaticns 
are  fixed  with  the  fame  defign,  I  mean,  to  ac- 
complifli  the  purpofe=;  of  God  in  regard  to  men. 

What  are  the  defighs  of  God  in  regard  to 
men  ?  What  end  doth  he  propofe  to  effecl  by 
placing  us  on  this  planet,  thirty,  forty,  or  fixfy 
years,  before  he  declares  our  eternal  Rate  ?  We 
have  frequently  anfwcrcd  this  im4?ortsnt  qui  liion. 
God  hath  placed  us  here  in  a  fcate  of  probation  : 
K  he 


io6         The  Equality  of  Mnnkind. 

\e  bath  fet  before  our  eyes  fupreme  felicity  an.ci. 
intolerable  mifeiy  ;  lie  hath  poinied  out  the  vices, 
that  conduit  to  the  I'^ft,  and  the  virtues  neceffary 
to  arrive  at  the  f.rft  ;  and  he  hath  declared,  that 
rur  conduft  (hall  determine  our  future  fate. 
This,  I  think,  is  the  de.f}gn  of  Gcd  in  regard  to 
men.  This  is  the  notion,  that  we  ought  to  forrn, 
cf  the  end  which  God  propofcs  in  fixing  us  a  few 
years  upon  earth,  and  in  placing  us  among  our 
iVllow  creatures  in  fociet.y. 

•On  this  principle,  /which  is  the  tnoft  glor.icus 
condition  ?  It  is  neither  that,  which  elevates  u^s 
liighcfl:  In  fccicty,  nor  that,  which  procureth  m& 
the  greatef^  conveniences  of  life.  If  it  be  not 
sbfolutely  indifferent  to  men,  to  v.'hom  it  is  un- 
certain whether  they  fliall  quit  the  prefent  world 
the  next  moment,  or  contin.i:e  almoft  a  century 
in  it;  J  Tay,  if  it  be  not  abfoltitely  indifferent  to 
them,  whether  they  be  high  or  low,  rich  or  poor, 
it  r/oiild  be  coiurs.ry  to  ail  the  laws  of  prudence, 
:\vere  they  to  determine  their  choice  of  a  toi\di- 
tion  by  confiderations  of  this  kind  alone.  A 
creature  capable  of  eternal  felicity,  ought  to  con- 
fider  that  the  mod  glorious  condition,  which  is 
the  moft  likely  to  procure  him  the  eternal  felicity, 
of  v/hich  he  is  capable.  Were  a  \yife  man  to 
choofe  a  condition,  he  would  certainly  prefer 
that,  in  which  he  could  do  mo(\  good  ;  he  would 
iihvays  coniider  that  as  the  mod  glorious  ftation 
for  himfelf,  in  which  he  could  bell  anfwer  the 
great  end,  for  which  his  Creator  placed  him  in 
this  world.  Jt  is  glorious  to  be  at  the  head  of  a 
-nation  ;  but  if  I  could  do  more  good  in  a  mean 
flation,  than  I  could  ùo  in  an  eminent  poll,  the 
meant-fl  dation  would  be  far  more  glorious  tome 
than  the  moft  eminent  pofl.  Why  ?  becaufe  that 
is  mo.l  glorious  to  me,  which  bcîl  anfwers  thç 
end  thrtt  my  C^reator  propofed  in  placing  me  in 
this  world.  God  placed  me  in  this  world  to  ena- 
lile.we  t«  do  good,   and  prepare  myfeit  by  a  holy 

life 


Th  e  Eq  ;  '.ality  of  Man  kind,         i  c  7 

life  for  a  Iiapjjy  eternity.  To  do  good  at  ths 
Kèad  of  a  iidiion,  certain  talents  are  nectir-iry. 
If  I  have  not  thefe  talents,  not  only  I  OuniU  not 
do  good  in  this  pod,  bût  I  fliould  certainly  à.n 
evil,  I  flibuld  expofc  my  country  to  danger  ;  I 
fhould  fink  its  credit,  oblcure  its  glory,  and  dc?- 
bafe  its  dignity.  It  is,  therefore,  incomparably 
lefs  glorious  for  me  to  be  at  the  head  of  a  ftate, 
than  to  occupy  a  pofl  lefs  eminent.  It  is  glori- 
ous to  fill  the  highefl:  ofnce  in  the  chuich,  to  an- 
noiuice  the  oracles  of  God,  to  develope  the  myf- 
teries  of  tfie  kingdom  of  heaven,  and  to  dirctt 
wandering  fouls  to  the  road  that  leads  to  the 
fovereign  good  ;  but  if  I  be  deflitute  of  gifts  ef-» 
fcntial  to  t'ne  filling  of  this  ofiice,  it  is  incompar- 
ably more  glorious  to  me  to  remain  a  pupil  than 
to  commence  a  tutor,  Wliy  ?  becaufe  that  fla- 
tioh  13  the  mod  eligible  to  me,  ^vhich  bed  empow- 
ers me  to  anfvver  the  cnà  for  which  my  Creator 
placed  me  in  this  world.  "Wiy  Creator  placed  me 
in  this  world,  that  I  might  do  good,  and  ihat  liy 
a-  holy  life  I  might  prepare  for  a  happy  eternity. 
Pn  order  to  do  good  in  the  hip;helt  offices  in  the 
eliurch,  great  talents  are  necefTary,  jf  God  hath 
not  beftowed  great  talents  on  uie,  I  Ihould  not 
only  not  do  good,  but  I  Tnould  do  harm.  Inftead 
of  announcing  the  oracles  of  God,  I  Ihould  preach 
the  traditions  of  men  ;  I  fliould  involve  the  myf- 
terles  of  religion  in  darknefs,  inilead  of  develop- 
ing them  ;  I  fîiould  plunge  poor  mortc-ils  into  an 
abyi's  of  mifery,  indead  of  pointing  out  the  road 
whicli  would  conducl  them  to  a  bleiTed  immortal- 
ity. Bat  by  remaining  in  the  date  of  a  dlfciple, 
1  may  obtain  attention,  docility,  and  a  love  to 
rruth,  which  are  the  virtues  of  my  condition.  I: 
is  ujore  glorious  to  be- a  good  fubjed  than  a  bad 
king  ;  it  is  more  glorious  to  be  a  good  difciple 
than  a  bad  teacher. 

Eat  mod  men  have  falfe  ideas  cf  glory,  and  we 
form  our  notions  of  it  from  the  opinions  oî  thefe 


ic8         The  Equalily  of  Mankinâ, 

wnjuO:  appraifftrs  of  men  and  things.  That,. 
which  elevates  us  in  their  eyts,  feenis  glorious  to 
«•3  ;  and  we  fHeein  th^t  contemptible,  which 
Mbaieth  us  before  them.  We  difcovcr,  1  know 
not  what,  meannefs  in  mechanical  cmploymentSj 
and  the  contempt  that  we  have  for  the  employ- 
ment extends  itfelf  to  him  who  follows  it,  and 
thus  we  habituate  ourfelves  to  defpife  tiiem 
whom  God  honours.  Let  us  undeceive  ourfelves, 
rny  brethren  ;  there  is  no  condition  (hameful, 
except  it  neceffarily  lead  us  to  fome  infradlion  of 
the  laws  of  cur  Supreme  Lawgiver,  who  is  able 
to  save  and  to  destroy,  James  iv.  12.  Strictly 
fpeaking-,  one  condition  of  life  is  no  more  honour- 
able than  another.  There  are,  I  grant,  fome 
dations,  in  which  the  objeds,  that  employ  thofe 
who  fill  them,  are  naturally  more  noble  than 
thofe  of  other  ftations.  The  condition  of  a  ma- 
gij'b-ate,  whofe  employment  is  to  improve  and  to 
«fnforcc  maxims  of  government,  hath  a  nobler 
ubjecl  than  that  of  a  mechanic,  whofe  bufmefs  it 
IS  to  improve  the  îeaft  neceffary  art.  There  is  s, 
nobler  cbjecl  in  the  fiation  of  a  paftor  called  to 
publifii  the  laws  of  religion,  than  in  that  of  «k 
fchooinialter  confined  to  teach  the  letters  of  the 
RÎphabet.  But  God  will  regulate  our  eternai 
itatc  not  accordiug  to  the  objedt  of  our  purfuii, 
but  according  to  the  nianner  in  which  we  fhould 
have  purfued  it.  In  this  point  of  light,  all  ranks 
are  equal,  every  condition  is  the  fame.  Man- 
kind have,  then,  an  tq^rAhy  o^  destinât ior..  The 
rich  and  the  poor  are  placed  in  difTerent  ranks 
with  the  I'ame  view,  both  are  to  anfwer  the  great 
end,  that  God  hnth  propofed  to  anfwer  by  creat- 
ing and  arranging  mankind. 

Hitherto  we  have  had  occafion  for  fome  little 
labour  to  prove  our  thefis,  that  all  men  are  equal, 
notwithftanding  the  various  conditions  in  which 
God  hath  placed  them.  Ana  you,  my  brethren, 
hAve  had,  occafion  for  foir.e  docility  to  feel  th«, 

ioi'ce 


Tic  Equality  of  ManUnd,         109 

iorce  of  our  arguments.  But  in  our  fourth  arti- 
cle, the  truth  wiil  cûablifli  itlcif,  and  its  ïoxa 
\s  \\  be  felt  by  a  recital,  yea  by  a  hint  of  our  ar- 
guments. 

We  faid,  fourthly,  that  men  are  cqnaî  in  their 
last  enJy  tli-it  the  fanie  fentence  ot"  death  is  de- 
nounced on  all,  aiid  that  they  vAV,(i  all  alike  fab- 
niit  to  their  fate.  On  which  lide  can  we  view 
death,  and  not  receive  abundant  evidence  of  this 
truth  r  Gonlidcr  the  certainty  of  deaih,  the 
FiCarnefâ  of  death,  the  harbingers  of  death,  the 
ravages  of  death,  fo  many  Ikies  by  which  death 
hiay  be  contidcied,  \o  many  proofs,  Co  many  dein- 
onflrations,  lb  many  fources  of  demonftrations  of 
the  truth  of  this  fenfe  of  my  text,  the  ricj  and 
^oor  meet  tc^clhcr,  the  Lord  Is  the  vial^cr  of 
t/jcm  all, 

1.  Remark  the  certainty  of  death.  *'  Duft 
thou  art,  and  iinto  duit  (halt  thou  return,"  Gen. 
iii.  19.  "It  io  appointed  unto  liicn  once  to  die,'' 
Heb.  ix.  2T,  The  fenteiice  is  univcrfal,  its  uni- 
verf.ility  involves  all  the  poflerity  of  Adam  ;  ic 
in'cliidts  all  conditions,  all  profeiTioiis,  nil  Actions, 
and  every  ilep-of  life  enfures  the  e>^-Cu'.:on  of  it. 

Whither  art  thou  going,  rich  man  !  ihou,  who 
congraiulateff  thyfelf  becaufe  thy  fields  bring 
Jjjilb  plentifulljij-  and  who  fayell  to  thy  foul, 
Soul  I  ihou  h-ast  much  goods  laid  up  for  rnanj 
jears  ;  take  thine  case,  eat^  drinh,  and  be  mer- 
ry ^  To  death.  Whither  art  tiion  going,  poor' 
man  1  thoa,  \v!.o  art  toiling-  through  a  ianguifh- 
ing  life,  who  brggeft  thy  bread  from  door  to 
door,  who  art  continually  perplexed  in  finding 
out  means  of  procuring  bread  to  cat  aaid  raiment 
to  put  on,  always  an  objedl  of  the  charity  of 
fome,  and  of  the  hardheartednefs  of  others  Î'  To 
de-ath.  Whither  goefV  thou,  nobleman  !  thou, 
who  deckefl  thyfelf  with  borrowed  plumes,  who 
putted  the  renown  of  tline  ancefiors  into  the  \\\\ 
of'thy  vi.sue3,  and  who  thin  eft  thyfelf  foiniidof 
K  2  '       "         a» 


110         The  Equality  of  Mankind. 

an    earth    more    refined    than    that    of  the  refl:  of' 
Dankind  ?       To    death.        W'nither    goefl    thou, 
pcafant  1   thou,   who  derideft   the  folly  of  a  peer, 
and  at  the  fame    time    valued    thyfclf  on    fome- 
thing  equally  abfurd  ?       To  death.       Whither, 
foldier  1    art  thou    marching  ;    tiiou,  who  talked 
of  nothing  but  glory  and  heroifni,  and  who  umld»^ 
many  voices  founding  in  thine  ears,  and  inctilant- 
ly  crying,  Remember  thou  art  y,iortal^  ^rt  dream- 
ing of,    I    know   not    what,    immortality  ?       To 
death.       Whither    art   thou    going,    merchant  \ 
thou,  who  breathefl  nothing  but  the  increafe  of 
thy  fortune,    and  who  judgeil  of  the  haupinefs  or 
ir.ifery  of  thy  days,   not  by  thme  acqniiitiou  of 
knowledge  and  thy  pratlice  of  virtue,  but  by  the 
gain    or    *he    lofs   of   thy    weaich  ?       'Jo   death» 
Whither  are  we  all  going,  try  dear  hearers  ?     To 
death.      Do   1  exceed   the   truth,    my    brethren  I 
poes  death  regard  titles,    dignities,    and  riches  ? 
Where  is  Alexander  ?    Where  is  Cxfar  ?    Where 
are  ail  they,  '.vhofe   names   Mruck  terror  through 
the  whoî-3  world  ?     They  were  :   but  they  are  no 
more.     They  fell  before   the    voice,    that  cried, 
Return^ ye  children  of  vien^  Pfal.  xc.  3.     *'  I  faid, 
Ye  are  gods  ;   but  ye  fhall  die  like   men,"   Pfal. 
l::xxii.  6.     I  said.   Te  are  gods  ;    this,  ye  great 
men  of  the  earth  I  this  is  your  title  ;    this  is  the 
patent,    that  creates  your  dignity,    that  fubje<fls 
UÔ  to  your  conimards,   and   teacheth  us  to  revere 
y-aur  characters  :  but  ye  shall  die  like  men  ;   thi« 
is  the  decree,  that  degrades  you,  and  puts  you  on 
a  level  with  us.      Ye  are  gods  ;   I  will,    then,    re- 
rppct  your  authority,  and  coniider  you  as  images 
cf  him,  by  whom  kings  reign  :    but  ye  shall  die  ; 
1  will  not,  then,  fufter  myfelf  to  be  impoled  on 
by  your  grandeur,  nnd  whatever  homage  I  ma^ 
yield  to  my  king,    I  will  always  remember  that 
he  is  a  man.     The  certainty  of  death  is  the  firft 
fide,  on  which  we  may  coalxder  this  murderer  of 

mankind, 


The  Equality  of  Mankinds         1 1  !■ 

mankind,  and  it  is  the  firfl:  proof  of  our   fourth 
propofition  :   Mankind  aie  equal  in  their  last  end, 

2.  The  proximity  of  death  is  a  fécond  demon- 
flration,  a  iecond  fource  of  deinonftrations.  The 
limits  of  our  lives  are  equal.  The  life  of  the 
rich,  as  well  as  that  of  the  poor,  is  reduced  to  an 
band-àreadth,  Pfal.  xxxix.  5.  Sixty,  eight/,  or 
a  hundred  yearsj  is  ufually  the  date  of  a  long  life. 
The  fceptre  hath  no  more  privilege  in  this  re- 
fpett  than  the  crook  ;  nor  is  the  palace  at  Rny 
greater  diftance  from  the  tomb,  than  the  cottage 
from  the  grave.  Heaps  of  filver  and  gold  may 
intercept  the  rich  man's  fight  of  death  ;  but  they 
can  neither  intercept  death's  fight  of  the  rich 
îran,  nor  prevent  his  forcing  the  feeble  intrench-- 
ments,  in  which  he  may  attempt  to  hide  himfelf» 

u.  The  harbingers  ol  death  are  a  third  demon- 
ftration,  a  third  fource  of  demonllrations.  Thfi 
rich  have  the  fame  forerunners  as  the  poor  ;  both 
have  fimiiar  dying  agonies,  violent  ficknefTes,  dif- 
gufiful  medicines,  intolerable  painsy  and  cruel 
n^ifgivings.  Pais  through  thofe  fuperb  apart- 
ments, in  which  the  rich  man  feems  to  defy  tlie 
cneniy.  who  luvks  and  threatens  to  feize  him  ; 
go  through  the  croud  of  domeftics,  who  furround 
him  ;  cafl:  your  eyes  en  the  bed,  where  nature 
and  art  have  contributed  to  his  eafe.  In  this 
grand  edifice,  amidft  this  affembly  of  courtiers, 
or,  fhall  I  rather  lay  ?  amidli  this  troop  of  vile 
ilaves,  you  will  5nd  a  moO:  njortifying  and  mif- 
erable  obje<Sl.  You  will  fee  a  *vifage  all  pale, 
livid,  difrorted  ;  you  wiil  hear  the  fhrieks  of  a 
■wretch  tormented  with  the  gravel,  or  the  gout  ; 
you  will  fee  a  foul  terrified  with  the  fear  of  thofe 
eternal  books,  which 'arc  about  to  be  opened,  of 
that  formidable  tribunal,  which  is  already  erect- 
ed, of  the  awful  fentence,  that  is  abowt  to  be. 
denounced. 

4.  The  ravages  of  death  make  a  fourth  dem- 
•niiiation  j  they  arc  the  faoie  with  the  rich  ax 

witk 


Xi  2  The  Equality  of  Maiilind. 

%\ith  tloe  poor.  Death  aîike  condcroi^.s  their  ey?c 
to  'unpenetrable  night,  their  tongue  lo  eterndl  i"i- 
îence,  tlieir  whole  fyftem  to  totvil  dc-riruction.  I 
■fee  a  i'uperb  moiuiment.  I  approach  this  Ib-ikmg- 
ûbjeél.  I  iec  magniiicent  infcriptjons.  1  reai 
the  pompous  titles  of  the  most  nobie^  the  most 
puissant^  general^  prirxe^~  monarchy  arbiter  of 
heace,,  arbiter  of  Tjar,  I  long-  to  fee  the  infide 
of  this  elegant  piece  of  woikaianiliip,  and  I  pt-rp 
under  the  Hone,  that  covers  him,  to  whom.aH 
this  pon^^  is  confccrated  ;  there  I  iind,  \vhht 
-----.  a  putrificd  carcafe  devouring  by  worir.a. 
O  vanity  of  human  grandeur  1  "  Vanity  of  van- 
ities, àîl  is  vaiiity  i  Piit  nci:  your  trofl  in  prin- 
ces, nor  in  the  fon  of  mar,  iir  v.hom  is  no  help," 
Eccl.  i.  2.  *'Hi3  brea'hgoeth  fcrcij,  lie  retur:*- 
©th  to  his  earth,  in  that  very  day  his  thougiits 
perifn,"  Pfal.  cx'vi.  3.  4.  "♦  Ab  for  man,  his 
days  are  as  graf^  ;  as  a  fîav/er  of  the  field  fo  he 
fiouriflieth  ;  for  the  wind  palTcth  over  it,  and  it- 
is  gore  :   ar.d  the  place  thereof  ihail  knoNv  it  no  • 

H^oic,"  Ffai.  ciiiv'is,  le; 

5.  Finally,  the  judgment,'  that  follows  deaih, 
turrits  cur  propofuion  to  the  higheft  degree  of 
evidence.  "  It  is  appointed  unto  men  once  to 
die  ;  btit  after  ihis  the  judgment,"  Heb.  ix.  27 o- 
The  rich  and  the  poor  mult  alike  appear  before* 
that  throne,,  which  St.  John  dcfcribes  in  the  rev- 
elation, and'  before  that  venerable  perfonag**,  . 
from  nvhose  face  the  hea'oen  and  the  eai  th  fee 
avjay  ,  chap.  xx.  1  i.  If  there  be  any  difTercnce 
between  the  rich  and  the  poor,  it  is  all,  niethink-, 
in  favour  of  the  latter.  The  fummons,  that  nuift 
be  ore  day  addrtlTed  to  each  of  us,  give  an  ac^ 
count  of  thy  stcnvardsbip^  Luke  xvi.  2.  this  fum- 
mons is  always  terrible.  Ybu  indigent  people  ! 
whom  God  (to  ufe  the  language  of  fcripcurc) 
hath  set  over  a  feiu  things^  an  account  of  thefe 
f-ii>  things  will  bejcc^uired  of  you",   and  yoii  wilt 

be 


The  Equality  of  Mankind.         1 13, 

lie  as  fnrely  punifhed  for  hiding  one  talenty  as  if 
you  had  hidden  more,   Matt.  xxv.  17. 

But  how  terrible  to  me  feems  the  account,  thai. 
iHuft  be  given  of  a  great  number  of  talents  I  I? 
the  rich  man  have  fome  advantages  over  the  poor, 
(and  who  can  doubt  that  he  hath  many  ?)  ho\». 
are  his  advantages  counterpoifcd  by  the  thought 
of  the  confequences  of  death  I  What  a  fummons, 
my  brethren  1  is  this,  for  a  great  man,  Give  avÈ 
account  of  thy  stewardship  !  give  an  account  of 
thy  riches,  Didft  thou  acquire  them  lawfully  ^ 
or  were  they  the  produce  of  unjuft  dealings,  of 
cruel  extortions,  of  repeated  frauds,  of  violated 
promifes,  of  perjuries  and  oaths  ?  Diifl  thou 
diftribute  them  charitably,  con)paiïionately,  lib- 
erally ?  or  didft  thou  referve  them  avariciouflyj 
meanly,  barbaroufly  ?  Didft  thou  employ  them 
to  foun'd  hofpitals,  to  procure  inftru6lion  for  the 
ignorant,  relief  for  the  fick,  confolations  for  ths 
afflidled  ?  or  didft  thou  employ  them  to  cheriflr 
thy  pride,  to  difpiay  thy  vanity,  to  immortalizft 
thine  ambition  and  arrogance  ?  Give  an  account 
of  thy  repuiation.  Didft  thou  employ  it  to  re- 
lieve the  oppreffed,  to  protect  the  widow  and  or- 
phan, to  maintain  juftice,  to  difTufe  truth,  to 
propagate  religion  ?  or,  on  the  contrary,  didft. 
thou  ufe  it  to  degrade  others,  to  deify  thy  paf- 
fions,  to  render  thyfelf  a  fcourge  to  fociety,  a 
plague  to  mankind?  Give  an  account  of  thine 
bonours»  Didft  thou  dire£t  them  to  their  true 
end,  by  contributing  all  in  thy  power  to  thœ 
good  of  fociety,  to  the  defence  of  thy  country, 
to  the  prosperity  of  trade,  to  the  advantage  of 
the  public  ?  or  didft  thou  dire£l  them  only  to 
thine  own  private  intereft,  to  the  eftablifhing  of 
thy  fortune,  to  the  elevation  of  thy  family,  to 
the  infatiable  avidity  of  glory,  which  gnawed 
and  devoured  (;hee  ?  Ah  1  my  brethren  !  if  we 
enter  very  ferioufiy  into  thefe  refledlions,  we 
J&iall  not  be  fo  much  ftruck,  as  we  ufually  arej 

With 


ti-i  The  Equalily  of  Mankind, 

wlih  the  diverfity  of  iDenVi  conditions  in  thi.-,  life;,. 
we  f!i;iil  not  al'pirc  very  tagerly  after  the  hightft 
railles  in  Uùs  worlJ.  The  rich  and  poor  meet  tO'- 
jfetho-y  the  Lord  is  the  ir.aher  of  them  all  ;  that. 
IS  to  lay,  he  haih  made  them  equal  in  tlit^ir  na-- 
tnre,  equal  in  their  pi ivileges,  equal  in  their  cc^- 
tiiiaiicn,  and  equal,  us  we  nuvc  proved,  in  their' 
lafl  end. 

The  inferences,  thn-t  v/e  intend  to  draw  from 
•vvhat  we  have  faid,  are  not  inferences  of  fedilion 
and  anarchy,  "VVe  do  not  mean  to-  ditlurb  the 
Older  of  fccieiy  ;  nor,  by  afBrming  that  all  men 
hsve  an  effential  eqnaiity,  to  rebrobate  that  fjb- 
ordination,  without  v/hich  fox;ieiy  would  be  ~ 
iiocliing*  but  confuiion,  and  the  mtrn,  who  com- 
pufe  it,  Û  lawlefs  banditii.  V/e  affirm,  that  t'ne- 
fubjecl  and  the  prince,  the  maQer  and  the  fer- 
vant,,are  truly  and  propeily  equal  ;;but  far  be  it 
from  us  to  infer,  that  therefore  the  fubjed\  Oioi^ld' 
Ayithdraw  his  fiibmiiliDn  from  his  prince,  or  the 
fcrvant  diminifh  his  cvbedience  to  his  marter.  On 
the  contrary, .  fiibjeds  and...  fervants:  wculd  re- 
nounce all,  that  is  gluiions  in  their  cotUfitions,  it' 
they  entertained  fuch  vviid  idéa5  .in  their  minds. 
That,  which  equals  the;n  to  the  fiiperiors,  whom 
jDrovidencs  hath  fe'tcver  thetn,  is  the  belief  oT 
their  being  capable,- as  well  ?.s  their  fûperiors,  of 
anfwering  the  end  thrit  God  piopofeth  in  creating" 
mankind,  Tîîey-,v;ou;d  coiinterafi  .this  end,  were 
they  to  refiifc  to  difcharge  thole  duties  of  their 
condition,. to  which  providence  cfdls  them. 

Nor  Avould  we  derive  from  the  truths,  which 
we  have  affirmed,  fanatical  inferences.  We  en- 
deavoured b/fore  to  preclude  ail  occaiioîi  for  re- 
proach on  this  article,  yet  perhaps  we  may  not 
efcape  it  ;  for  how  often  does  an  unfriendly  au- 
ditor, in  order  to  enjoy  the  pleafure  of  decrying 
a  difguflful  truth,  a  (Tea:  to  forget  the  corredîive, 
with  wliich  the  pre:Kher  f-.veetens  it  ?  we  repeac 
H,  therefore,  once  more  ;    we  do  not  pret-end  tO' 


The  Equality  of  Mankind.         i  i*g 

-nfîirm,  that  the  conditions  of  all  men  are  abfo- 
îuteîy  equal,  by  alTIiming  that  in  foraie  fenfes  iiU 
mankind  are  on  a  level,  \Vc  do  not  fay,  that 
the  man,  whon)  fociety  agrees  to  contemn,  n  a4 
happy  as  the  man,  whom  iocieiy  unites  to  revere^ 
We  do  not  lay,  that  the  man,  who  hath  no 
•where  to  hide  his  head,  is  as  happy  at  he,  whn 
-ÎS  commodioufly  accommodated.  We  do  not 
lay,  that  a  man,  who  is  dedituts  of  ali  the  necef- 
laries  of  life,  is  as  happy,  as  the  man,  whofe  for- 
tune is  fuSicient  to  procure  him  all  the  conveni- 
ences of  it.  No,  my  brethren  i  we  have  no  ntore 
defign  to  deduce  inferences  of  fanaticifm  from 
the  dcçlriî=)e  of  the  text,  than  we  have  to  infer 
maxims  Qf  anaichy  and  rebellion.  ;But  we  infer 
iud  concluions,  conformable  to  the  precious  gift 
of  reafon,  that  the  Creator  liath  beftowed  on  us, 
..and  to  the  incomparably  more  precious  gift  of 
religion,  with  which  he  hath  enriched  us.  Derive 
then,  my  brethreii,  conclufions  of  thefe  kind?, 
and  let  them  be  the  application  of  this  difcourfc^ 

Derive  from  our  fubjeû  conclnfions  of  mode- 
ration. Labour,  for  it  is  allowable,  and  the  mo- 
rality of  the  gofpcl  doth  not  condemn  it,  labour 
to  render  your  name  iilullrious,  to  augment  your 
.fortune,  to  e(\abii1'-.  your  reputation,  to  contrib- 
ute to  the  p'eafure  of  your  life  ;  but  labour  no 
Hiore  than  becomes  you.  Let  efforts  of  this  kind 
never  make  you  lofe  fight  of  the  great -end  of  life. 
Remember,  as  riches,  grandeur,  and  reputation, 
are  not  the-fupreme  good,  fo  obfcurity.  meannefs, 
and  indigence,  are  not  the  iupreme  evil.  Let 
the  care  of  avoiding  the  fupreme  evil,  and  the 
defire  of  obtaining  the  fupreme  good,  be  always 
the  moft  ardent  of  our  wiihes,  and  let  others  yield 
to. that  of  arriving  at  the  chief  good. 

Derive  from  our  do6lrinc  conclufions  of  acquis 
cscence  in  the  laws  of  providence.  If  it  pleafc 
providence  to  put  an  effential  difference  between 
you  and  the  great  men  of  the  earth,   let  it  be 

your 


%  i6         Tfie  Equality  of  Mankinds, 

your  boly  fimbition  to  excfl  in  it.  You  cairnot 
murmur  without  being  guiity  of  reproaching  God, 
becaule  he  hath  made  you  what  you  are  ;  be- 
cauie  he  formed  you  men,  and  not  angels,  arch- 
angels, i>r  ft:raphims.  Had  he  annexed  eiTcntial 
privileges  to  the  higheO  ranks,  fubmillion  would 
aiw;iys  be  your  lot,  and  you  ought  always  to 
adore,  Rnd  to  fubniit  to  that  intelligence,  which 
gover»s  the  world  ;  but  this  is  not  your  cafe» 
God  gives  to  the  great  men  of  the  earth  an  ex- 
terior, tranfient,  fuperficial  gloVy  ;  but  he  hath 
made  you  (hare  >vith  them  a  glory  real,  folid,  and 
permanent.  What  difficulty  can  a  vv;fe  man  find 
by  acquiefcing  in  this  law  of  providence  ? 

Derive  from  the  truths  you  have  heard  conclu- 
rions of  vigilance.  Inftead  of  ingenio_ufly  flatter^ 
ing  yourfelf  with  the  vain  glory  of  being  elevated 
above  your  neighbour,  or  of  fuffcring  your  mind 
to  link  under  the  puerile  mortification  of  being 
inferior  to  him,  ineeiVanlly  inquire  what  is  the 
virtue  of  your  ftation,  the  duty  (.f  your  rank,  and 
ufe  your  utmoft  indufiry  to  fill  it  worthily.  Yoa 
are  a  magiftrate  :  the  virtue  of  your  Aation,  the 
duty  of  yoirr  rank,  is  to  employ  yourfelf  wholly 
to  ferve  your  fellow  fubjedls  in  inferior  dations, 
to  prefer  tlie  public  good  before  your  own  private 
intcreft,  to  facrifice  yourfeif  for  the  advantage  of 
that  {late,  the  reins  of  which  you  hold.  Practife 
this  virtue,  fuliVl  thefe  engagements,  put  off  felf- 
intereft,  and  devote  yourfelf  whally  to  a  people, 
■who  entrufl  you  with  their  properties,  their  lib- 
erties, and  their  lives.  You  are  a  fubjeé^  :  the 
duty  of  your  rank,  the  virtue  of  your  (hnton,  \% 
fubmifTion,  and  you  fhould  obey  not  oj-.iy  through 
fear  of  punifliment,  but  through  a  wife  regard 
for  order.  Pradife  this  virtue,  fulfil  this  engage- 
ment, make  it  your  glory  to  fubmit,  and  in  ihe 
authority  of  princes  refpe(!i\  the  power  of  God, 
■whofe  minit^ers  and  reprefentalives  they  are. 
You  are  a  rich  nvan  :  the  vir.ue  of  your  Uation» 

the 


The  Equality  of  Mankind,         1 17 

the  duty  of  your  condition,  is  beneficence,  gene- 
rofity,  magnanimity.  Pradlife  thefc  virtues,  dlf- 
-cliarge  thefe  duties.  Let  your  heart  be  always 
moved  with  the  necefTitTcs  of  the  wretched,  and 
your  ears  open  to  their  complaints.  Never  omit 
an  opportunity  of  doing  good,  and  be  in  fociety 
a  general  relburce,  and  univerfal  refuge. 

From  the  truths,  which  you  have  heard,  derive 
motives  of  zeal  and  fervour.  It  is  mortifying,  I 
own,  in  Tome  refpedts,  when  one  feels  certain 
emotions  of  dignity  and  elevation,  to  iiuk  in  fo- 
ciety. It  is  mortifying  to  beg  bread  of  one,  who 
is  a  man  like  ourfelves.  It  is  mortifying  to  be 
trodden  usdcr  foot  by  our  eqiiais,  and,  to  fay  all 
in  a  word,  to  be  in  flations  very  unequal  among 
our  equals.  But  this  economy  will  quickly  van- 
i(h.  Tbe  fashion  of  this  world  will  ^\c'LC\n\y  pass 
CTJaj,  and  we  fliall  foon  enter  that  bleffed  (tate, 
in  which  all  diftinclions  will  be  aboli flied,  and  in 
which  all  that  is  noble  in  immortal  fouls,  will 
Ihine  in  all  its  fplendor.  Let  us,  my  brethren, 
figh  after  this  period,  let  us  make  it  the  objrct 
of  our  aioft  conftant  and  ardent  prayers.  God 
^rant,  we  may  all  bave  a  right  to  pray  for  it  I 
God  grant,  our  text  may  be  one  day  verified  in  a 
new  fenfe.  May  all,  who  compofe  this  affcmbly, 
matters  and  fervants,  rich  and  poor,  may  we  aiJ, 
my  dear  hearers,  having  acknowledged  ourfelves 
equal  in  elTence,  in  privileges,  in  dellination,  in 
lall  end,  may  we  all  alike  participate  tlie  fame 
glory.  God  grant  it,  for  his  mercy's  fake.— . 
Amen, 


SERMON    V. 

THE    WORTH  OF  THE   SOUL. 
Matthew  xvi.  26.       .  "'^ 
What  shall  a  man  g  me  in  ey^ch  ange  for  his  soul  P 

JVAy  brethren,  before  we  enforce  the 
truths,  which  Jefus  Chrift  included  in  the  words 
of  the  text,  wc  will  endeavour  to  fix  the  mean- 
ing of  it.  This  depends  on  the  term  soulf  which 
is  ufed  in  this  paffage,  and  which  is  one  of  the 
moft  equivocal  words  in  fcripture  ;  for  it  is  taken 
in  diflerent,  and  even  in  contrary  fenfes,  fo  that 
fometimes  it  fignifies  a  dead  body.  Lev.  xxi.  !• 
Wc  will  not  divert  your  attention  now,  by  recit- 
ing the  long  lift  of  explications,  that  may  be  giv- 
en to  the  term  ;  but  we  will  content  ourfelves 
vriib  remarking,  that  it  can  be  taken  only  in  t^vo 
fenfes  in  the  text. 

Soal  may  be  taken  fer  life  ;  and  in  this  fenfe 
the  term  is  ufeJ  by  St.  Matthew,  who  fays,  Tbey 
a>'e  dead,  ivho  sought  the  joung  child's  soid^ 
chap.  ii.  20.  Soul  may^  be  taken  for  that  fpintual 
part  of  us,  which  we  call  the  soul  by  excellence  ; 
and  in  this  fenfe  it  is  ufed  by  our  Lord,  who  fays, 
Fear  not  tbem^  nvhich  kill  the  body^  but  are  not 
able  to  kill  the  squl  ;  but  rather  fear  him,  which 
is  able  to  destroy  both  soul  and  body  in  hell^  chap. 
X.  28. 

If  we  take  the  words  in  the  firft  fenfe,  for  ///"<?, 
we  put  into  the  mouth  of  Jefus  Chrift  a  propofi- 
tion  veriiled  by  experience  ;  that  is,  that  mea 
confider  life  as  the  greateft  of  all  temporal  bleff« 
ings,  and  that  tliey  part  with  every  thing  to  pre- 
ferve  it.  This  rule  hath  its  exceptions  ;  but  the 
exceptions  confirm  the  rule.  Somt-times,  indeed, 
a  difguft  with  the  world,    a  principle  of  religion, 

a 


120  The  Worth  of  the  Souf, 

a  point  of  honour,  will  incline  men  to  facrifict' 
their  lives  ;  but  thefe  particular  cafes  cannot 
prc\ent  our  faying  in  the  general,  JVJbat  shall  a 
mi.m  give  in  exchange  for  his  life  ? 

It'  we  take  the  word  for  that  part  of  man, 
-^'hidh  we  call  the  soul  by  excellence,  Jefus  Chrift 
iiiteuded  to  point  out  to  us^  not  whsit  n-,en  ufually 
do,  (for  alas  f  it  happens  too  often,  that  men  fac- 
rifice  their  fouls  to  the  meaiieft  and  moft  fordid 
interefl)  but  what  they  always  ought  to  do.  He 
K^cant  to  teach  us,  that  the  foul  is  the  noblefl: 
part  of  us,  and  that  nothing  is  tec  great  to  be 
given  for  its  ranfom. 

Both  tiiefe  interpretations  are  probable,  and 
♦ach  hath  its  partizans  and  its  proofs.  But,  al- 
though we  weuid  not  cendemn  the  firfl:,  we  prefer 
the  laft,  not  only  becaufe  it  is  the  moft  noble 
Mieaning,  and  opens  the  moft  extenfive  field  of 
meditation  ;  but  becaufe  it  feenis  to  us  the  moft 
conformable  to  our  Saviour's  defign  in  fpcaking 
thr  %vords. 

Judge  by  what  precedes  our  text.  *' What  is 
a  man  profited,  if  he  (hall  gain  the  whole  world, 
and  lofe  his  own  foul?"  J'^'fus  Chrift  fpoke  thus 
to  fortify  his  difciples  againft  the  temptations,  to 
which  their  profeflion  of  the  gofpel  was  about  to 
expofe  them.  If  by  the  word  foul  we  underftand 
the  life^  we  (hall  be  obliged  to  go  a  great  way 
about  to  give  any  rcafonable  fenfe  to  the  words. 
On  the  contrary,  if  we  take  the  word  for  the 
spirit^  the  meaning  of  tlie  whole  is  clear  and 
cafy.  Now  it  feems  to  me  beyond  a  doubt,  that 
Jefus  Chrift,  by  the  manner  in  which  be  hath 
conneded  the  text  with  the  preceding  verfe,  ufcd 
the  term  soul  in  the  latter  fenfe. 

Judge  of  our  comment  alfo  by  what  follows. 
*'  What  fliall  a  man  give  in  exchange  for  his 
foul  V*  For,  adds  our  Lord  immediate'y  after, 
the  Son  of  man  shall  come  in  the  glory  of  his  Fa- 
ther, T^iih  bis  angels  ;   and  then  be  shall  reivard 

everj 


The  IForth  of  the  Soul  121 

evsry  man  according  to  bis  works.  What  con- 
nexion have  theie  words  with  our  text,  if  we 
take  the  word  soul  for  life  ?  Whrit  connexion" 
is  there  between  this  propofition,  Man  batb  neth' 
ing  more  'Valuable  than  life^  and  this,  For  the 
Son  of  man  shall  come  in  the  glory  of  his  Father^ 
TJitb  bits  angels?  Whereas,  if  we  adopt  our 
fenfe  of  the  term,  the  connexion  indantly  appears. 
We  will,  then,  retain  this  explication.  By 
the  soul  we  underftand  here  the  spirit  of  man  ; 
and,  this  word  being  thus  explained,  the  meaning 
of  Jefus  Chrift  in  the  whole  palTage  is  underftood 
in  part,  and  one  remark  will  be  fufficient  to  ex- 
plain it  wholly.  We  mull  attend  to  the  true 
meaning  of  the  phrafe,  lose  bis  soul,  which  im- 
mediately precedes  the  text,  and  which  we  fhall 
often  ufe  to  explain  the  text  itfclf.  To  lose  the 
soul,  does  not  fignify  to  be  deprived  of  this  part 
of  one's  felf  ;  for,  however  great  this  pnnifijment 
might  be,  it  is  the  chief  objedl  of  a  wicked 
man's  wifhes  :  but  to  lose  the  soul,  is  lo  K)fe 
thofe  real  blefling'::,  and  to  fullain  thofe  re--il  evils, 
which  a  ioul  is  capable  of  enjoying  and  of  fuffer- 
Ing.  When,  therefore,  Jefiis  Chnfl  fays  in  the 
words,  that  precede  the  text.  What  ts  a  man 
prof  ted,  if  he  shall  gaiîi  the  nuhole  ivorld,  and 
lose  his  own  soul  ?  and  in  the  text,  What  shall 
a  man  give  in  exchange  for  bis  soul  ?  he  exhib- 
its ()n<i  truth  under  different  faces,  fo  that  our 
refledlions  will' naturally  be  turned  fometimes  to 
the  one,  and  fometimes  to  the  other  of  thefe 
propofitions.  He  points  out,  I  fny,  two  truths, 
which  being  united,  fignify,  that  as  the  conqueft 
of  the  univerfe  would  not  be  an  object  of  value 
fufflcient  to  engage  us  to  facrifice  our  fouls,  fo, 
if  we  had  loft  them,  no  price  could  he  too  great 
to  be  paid  for  the  recovery  of  them.  Let  us 
here  hx  our  attention  ;  and  let  us  examine  what 
conftitutes  the  dignity  of  the  foul.  Let  us  in- 
quire, 

L  2  I.    The 


522 


The  Worth  of  the  Sout 


.1.    The  excellence  of  its  nature  ; 

II.  The  infinity  of  its  duration  ; 

III.  The  price  of  its  redemption  :   Three  ar- 
ticles which  will  divide  this  dilcourfe. 

I.  Noihing  can  be  given  in  exchange  for  our 
iouls.  We  prove  this  propofition  by  the  excel- 
lence of  its  nature.  What  is  the  foul  ?  There 
have  been  great  abfurdiiies,  in  the  anfwers  giv- 
en to  this  queRion.  In  former  ages  of  daikncfs, 
"when  nioft  of  the  ftudies,  that  were  purfued  for 
the  cultivation  of  the  mind,  ferved  to  render  it 
unfruitful  ;  when,  people  thought,  they  had  ar* 
rived  at  the  higheft;  degree  of  knowledge,  if  they 
liad  filled  their  memories  with  pompous  terms 
îind  fuperb  nonfenie  ;  in  thofe  times,  1  fay,  it 
■was  thought,  the  queflion  might  be  fuliy  and 
fatisfadlonly  anfwercd,  and  clear  and  complete 
ideas  given  of  the  nuture  of  the  foul.  But  in, 
later  times,  when,  philolophy  being  cleanfcd 
from  the  impurities  that  infc^ed  ilie  fchools, 
equivocal  terms  were  rejedled,  and  only  cl(  ar- 
and  diflincl  ideas  admitted,  and  tluis  literary  in- 
Tcdigations  reduced  to  real  and  folid  ufe  ;  in 
thefe  days,  I  fay,  philofophers,  and  philofophera 
of  great  name,  have  been  afraid  to  anfwcr  this 
queflion,  and  have  affirmed  tîiat  the  narrow  lim- 
its, which  confine  our  refearches,^  difable  us  from, 
acquiring  any  other  than  obfcure  notions  of  the 
liuman  foul,  and  that  all,  which  we  can  propofe 
to  elucidate  the  nature  of  it,  ferve  rather  to  dif- 
cover  what  it  is  not,  than  what  it  is.  But  if 
the  decif-ons  of  the  former  f.nour  cf  the  prc- 
iuniption,  does  not  the  timid  refervednefs  of  the 
latter  feem  a  blameable  modeRy  ?  If  we  be  in- 
capable of  giving  fuch  fufficient  anfwers  to  the 
qi.iedion  as  would  fully  fatisfy  a  genius  earneft  in 
inquiring,  and  eager  for  demonHration,  may  w« 
not  be  able  to  give  clear  and  high  ideas  of  our 
fouls,  and  fo  to  verify  thefe  fententious  words  of 
the  Saviour  of  the  world,  What  shall  a  7n an  give 
in  txchange  for  bis  squI  ?  Indeed. 


The  Worth  of  the  Soul,  123 

Indeed,  wc  do  clearly  and  diftindly  know  three 
properties  of  the  foul  ;  and  every  one  of  us  knows 
by  his  own  experience,  that  it  is  capable  of  know- 
ing, willing,  and  feeling.  The  ïidX  of  thefe 
properties  is  intelligence,  the  fécond  volition,  the. 
third  fenfation,  or,  more  properly,  the  acutefi:' 
fenfibility.  1  am  connng  now  to  the  defign  of 
iny  text,  and  here  I  hope  to  prove,  at  leall  to  the 
intelligent  part  of  my  hearers,  by  the  nature  of' 
the  foul,  that  the  lofs  of  it  is  the  greatefl  of  alt^ 
lofTes,  and  that  nothing,  is  too  valuable  to  be  giv- 
en for  its  recovery. 

Intelligence  is  the  firR  property  of  the  foul,  andl 
the  flrd  idea,  that  we  ought  to  form  of  it,   know- 
its  nature.     The  perfection  of  this  property  con- 
fids  in   having  clear  and  diftinf^  ideas,  extenfive- 
and  certain  knowledge.      To  lose  the  souly  in  this- 
rcfped»  is  to   fink    into    total    ignorance.      This- 
lofs  is  irreparable,    and   he,    who  fliould  have  loft 
his  foul  in  this  fenfe,  could  give  nothing  too  great" 
for  its  recovery.      Knowledge  and   happinefs  arc 
'  i.nfeparable  in  intelligent  beings,   and,  it  is  clear,, 
a  foul  deprived  of  intelligence  cannot  enjoy  per- 
fect felicity»     Few  men,  I  know,  can  be  perfuad- 
ed  to  admit  this  truth  ;   and  there  are,  I  mufl  al- 
low, great  reflridions  to  be  made  on  this  article, 
v»'hile  we  are  in  the  prefent  Oate. 

1.  In  our  prefent  flate,  eve*iy  degree  ofknoivU 
edgCy  that  the  tnind  acquires^  costs  the  body  mucb„ 
A  man,  who  would  make  a  progrefs  in  fcience, 
niuft  retire,  meditate,  and,  in  feme  fenfe,  involve 
bimfelf  in  himfelf.  Now  meditation  exhaufts  the 
animal  fpirits,  clofc  attention  tires  the  brain  ; 
the  collection  of  the  foul  into  itfelf  often  injures 
the  health,  and  fometimes  puts  a  period  to  life. 

2.  In  our  prefent  (late,  our  knotvledge  is  con» 
f^ned  TJ-ithin  narroiv  bounds,     Queftions  the  mod 

worthy  of  our  curiofity,  and  the  moft  proper  to 
animate  and  inflame  us,  are  unanfwerable  ;  for 
îhc  objedls  lie  beyond  our  reach.     Tiom   all  our 

eft  oris 


124  The  WoY-lh  of  the  SouL 

efforts  to  eclaircife  fuch  queftions,  we  fometiçries 
derive  oniy  mortify ing  rtflcdions  on  the  vveak- 
nels  of  our  capacities,  and  the  narrow  limits  of 
our  knowledge, 

3>  In  this  prefent  Crite,  sciences  are  incapable 
of  demonstratioiiy  and  confift,  in  regard  to  uï,  of 
little  more  than  probabilities  and  appearances. 
A  man,  whofe  genius  is  a  little  exa£\,  's  obiif^t-d 
in  multitudes  of  cafes  to  doubt,.  ar,d  to  fufper-d 
his  judgment  ;  and  his  pleafure  of  invdtigaiing 
a  point  is  almoft  always  interrupted  -by  the  too 
•well-grounded  fear  of  taking  a  fliadov^  for  a  fub- 
ftance,   a  phantom  for  a  reality. 

4*  In  this  woild,  most  of  thofe  sciences^  in 
the  ftudy  of  which  we  fpend  the  befl  part  of  life, 
are  improperly  called  sciences  ;  they  have  indeed 
fome  diftafit  relation  to  our  wants  in  this  prefent 
ilate,  but  they  have  no  reference  at  all  to  our 
real  dignity.  What  relation  to  the  real  dignity 
of  man  hath  the  knowledge  of  languages,  the  ar- 
ranging of  various  arbitrary  and  barbarous  terms 
in  the  mind,  to  enable  one  to  expreis  oiic  thing 
iu  a  hundrtd  different  words  ?  What  relation 
to  the  real  dignity  of  man  hath  the  fludy  of  an- 
tiquity ?  Is  it  worth  while  to  hold  a  thoufand 
conferences,  and  to  toil  ihrough  a  thoufand  vol- 
umes, for  the  frike  of  difcovering  the  leveries  of 
our  anceflors  ? 

5,  In  this  world,  we  often  fee  real  :{nâ  ufeful 
knowledge  deprived  of  its  liistrey  through  the  fu- 
pevcilious  negirct  of  mankind,  and  fcience  falfely 
fo  called  crowned  with  their  applaufe.  One  man, 
>vhole  mind  is  r  kind  of  fcientific  chaos,  full  of 
-vain  fpeculations  and  confufed  ideas,  fliall  be 
preferred  before  another,  whofe  fpecubtions  have 
always  been  direded  to  form  his  judgment,  to 
purify  his  ideas,  and  to  bow  his  heatt  to  truth 
and  virtue.  This  partiality  is  often  feen.  Now, 
although  it  argues  a  narrownefs  of  foul  to  make 
bappinefs  depend  on  the  opinion  of  others,  yet  it 


The  Worth  of  the  Soul.  125 

IS  natural  for  intelligent  beings,  placed  among- 
other  intelligent  beings,  to  wifîi  for  that  appro- 
bation which  is  due  to  real  merit.  Were  the 
prefenl  life  of  any  long  duration,  were  not  the 
proximity  of  all-purfuing  death  a  powerful  con- 
solation againft  all  our  inconveniences,  ihefe  un- 
juft  eftimations  wojld  be  very  mortifying. 

Such  being  the  imperfcftions,  the  defeds,  and 
the  obftacles  of  our  knowledge,  wc  ought  not  to 
be  furprifed,  if  in  general  we  do  not  comprehend 
the  great  influence,  that  the  perfeclion  of  our 
faculty  of  thinking  and  knovfing  hath  over  our 
happinefs.  And  yet  eren  in  this  life,  and  with 
all  thef«  difadvantages,  our  knowledge,  however 
difficult  to  acquire,  however  confined,  uncertain, 
and  partial,  how  little  foever  it  may  be  applaud- 
ed, contributes  to  our  felicity.  Even  in  thi^- 
life,  there  is  an  extreme  difference  between  a 
learned  and  aa  illiterate  laian  ;  between  him, 
whofe  knowledge  of  languages  enables  him  (fo  to 
fpeak)  to  convcrfe  with  people  of  all  nations,  and 
of  all  ages,  and  him,  who  can  only  convcrfe  with 
his  own  contemporary  countrymen  ;  between 
him,  whofe  knowledge  of  hiftory  enables  him  to 
diltinguifli  the  fucccfsful  from  the  hazardous,  and 
to  profit  by  the  vices  and  the  virtues  of  his  pre- 
deceffors,  and  him,  who  falls  every  day  into  mil- 
takes  infeparable  from  the  want  of  experience  ; 
between  him,  whofe  own  underRanding  weighs 
all  in  the  balance  of  truth,  and  him,  who  every 
moment  needs  a  guide  to  condudi  him*  Even  in 
this  life,  a  man  collefted  within  himielf,  fequef-, 
tcred  from  the  refl  of  niankind,  ffparated  from 
an  intercourfc  with  all  the  living,  deprived  of  ail- 
that  conQitutes  the  blifs  of  fociety,  entombed,  if 
the  exprcdion  may  be  allowed,  in  a  foiitary  clof- 
ct,  or  in  a  duQy  library,  fuch  a  man  enjoys  an 
innocent  pleafure,  more  fatislaCiory  arid  refined, 
than  that,  which  places  of  diveiTion  the  mod  \\e« 
quented;j  and  fjglus  the  rooil  fupcrb,  can  «fFord». 

Buts 


126  The  Worth  of  the  Soul. 

But  if,  even  in  this  life,  learning  and  knowl- 
edge have  fo  nluch  influence  over  our  happinefs, 
what  fliall  we  enjoy,  when  our  fouls  fhall  be  freed 
from  their  llavery  to  the  fenfes  ?  What,  when 
we  are  permitted  to  indulge  to  the  utmoft  the 
pleating  drfire  of  knowing?  What  felicity, 
when  God  fliall  unfold  ta  our  contemplation  that 
houndlefs  extent  of  trath  and  knowledge,  which 
his  intelligeuee  revolves  1  What  happinefs  wil! 
accompany  our  certain  knowledge  of  the  nature, 
the  pcrfedions,  and  the  purpofes  of  God  1  What 
pleafure  will  attend  our  diicovery  of  the  profound 
v/ifdom,  the  nerf^ft  equity,  and  the  cxa£l  fitnefs 
of  thofc  events,  which  often  furprifed  and  offend- 
ed us  Î  Above  all,  what  fubhme  delight  muft 
"we  enjoy,  when  we  nnd  our  own  intereft  con- 
nected with  every  truth,  and  all  fcrve  to  demon- 
ftrate  the  reality,  the  dui-atio^^,  the  inadniiiTibility 
of  our  hsppinefs  1  How  think  you,  my  breth. 
ren  ;  is  not  fuch  a  property  beyond  all  valua- 
tion ?  Can  the  world  indemnify  us  for  the  final 
lofs  of  it  ?  If  we  have  had  the  unhappinefs  to 
lofe  it,  ought  any  thing  to  be  accounted  too 
great  to  be  given  for  its-  recovery  ?  And  ir>  not 
\his  expreilion  of  Jefus  Chrifl,  in  this  view  of  it, 
fall  of  meaning  and  truth,  TVhat  shall  a  ma;t 
give  in  exchange  for  his  seul  ? 

What  we  have  afErnied  of  the  firfl  property  of 
our  fouls,  that  it  is  inilnitel/  capable  or  contrib- 
uting to  our  happinefs,  although  we  can  never 
ftiily  comprehend  it  en  earth,  we  affirm  of  the 
other  two  properties,  volition  and  fenubility. 

The  perfe&ion  of  th.e  will  confifts  in  a  perfect 
harmony  between  the  holinefo  and  the  plenituda 
of  our  defires.  Now,  to  what  degree  foever  we 
carry  our  holijfiefs  on  earth,  it  is  always  mixed 
with  imperfeftion.  And,  as  our  holineftj  is  in:- 
perieil,  our  enjoyments  muft  be  fo  too.  More-, 
over,  as  providence  itfelf  feems  often  to  gratify 
an   irregular  will,  we   cannot   well   comprehend 

the 


The  Worth  of  the  Soul  1 27 

the  mifery  of  lofing  the  foul  in  this  refpeâ:.  But 
judge  of  this  lofs,  (and  let  one  refledlion  fufilce 
on  this  article)  judge  of  this  lofs  by  this  cop.fid- 
çration.  In  that  economy,  into  which  our  fouls 
mull  enter,  the  Being,  the  niofl:  elTentially  holy, 
I  mean  God,  is  the  moft  perfedtly  happy  ;  and 
the  mofl:  obftinatcly  wicked  being  is  the  nioft 
completely  miferable. 

In  like  manner,  we  cannot  well  comprehend 
to  what  degree  the  property  of  our  fouls,  that 
renders  us  fufceptible  of  feniations,  can  be  carri- 
ed» How  miferable  foever  the  ftate  of  a  man, 
■  expofed  to  heavy  aiEidlions  on  earth,  may  be,  a 
thoufand  caufes  leffcn  the  weight  of  them.  Some- 
times reafon  aiTifts  the  fuâerer,  and  fometimes 
religion,  fometimes  a  friend  condoles,  and  fome- 
times a  remedy  relieves  ;  aad  this  thought  at  all 
times  remains,  death  will  ftiortly  terminate  all 
my  ills.  The  fame  refieflions  may  be  made  on 
fenfations  of  pieafure,  which  are  always  mixed, 
fufpended,  and  interrupted. 

Neverthelefs,  the  experience  we  have  of  our 
fenfibility  on  earth,  is  fulScient  to  give  us  fomc 
juft  notions  of  the  greatnefs  of  that  lofs,  which 
a  foul  may  fuflain  in  this  refpeé\  ;  nor  is  there 
any  need  to  arouze  our  imaginations  by  images 
of  an  economy,  of  which  we  have  no  idea. 

The  moft  depraved  of  mankind,  they,  who  are 
flaves  to  their  fenfes,  may  comprehend  the  great 
mifery  of  a  ftate,  in  which  the  fenfes  will  be  tor- 
mented, even  better  than  a  believer  can,  who 
ufually  ftudies  to  diminilh  the  authority  of  fenfe, 
and  to  free  his  foul  from  its  lawlef*  fway. 

Judge  ye,  then,  of  the  loff»  of  the  foul,  ye 
fenfual  minds,  by  this  Tingle  confideration,  if  you 
have  been  infeniible  to  all  the  reft..  When  we 
endeavoured  to  convince  you  of  the  greatnefs  of 
this  lofs,  by  urging  the  privation  of  that  knowl- 
edge, which  the  eleft  enjoy  now,  and  which  they 
hope  to  cpjoy  hereafter,  you  were  not  affeûed 

■with 


128  The  H^orfh  of  the  Soul 

witli  this  mifery,  becaufe  you  confidered  the  pleaf- 
ure   of  knowing   as    a   chimera.     When   we  at- 
tempted to  convince  you  of  the  milery  of  lofing 
the  foul,   by  urging  the  privation  of  virtue,   and 
the  flinging  remorfe   that  follows  fin,  you   were 
not  touched  with  this  mifery,  becaufe  virtue  y^u 
confider  as  a  refiraint,    and  remorfe   as  a  folly* 
Bui  as  you   know  no  other  felicity,  nor  any  oth- 
er mifery,  than  what  your  fenft.'s  tranfmit  to  your 
fouls,  judge  6t  the  lofs  of  the  foul  by  conceiving 
a  rtate,   in  which  all  the  fenfes  fliall  be  punifhed, 
I'he  lofs  cf  the  foul,    is  the  lofs  of  thofc  harmo- 
nious founds,   which  huve    fo  often  charined  your 
ears  ;    it  is  the   lofs  of  thofe   exquifite  flavours, 
"that  your  palate  has  fo  often  leliihed  ;    it  is  the 
lofs  of  ail  thofe  objed\s  of  df  fire,  wliich  h;ive  ex- 
cited your  pallions*     The  lofs  of  the   foul   is  an 
ocean  of  pain,    the  b?.re  idea  of  which  hath  ^o 
often  made  you  tTcn'bie,  when  religion  called  you 
to  fail  on  it.     The  lofs  of  the  foul  will  be  in  re- 
gard to  you  the  imprifonment  of  yon  confeffor, 
inclofed  ia  a  dark  and  filthy  dungeon,  a  prey  to 
infection   and   putiefad\ion,    deprived   of  the  air 
and  the  light.     The  lofs  of  the  foul   will  reduce 
you  to  the  condition  of  that  galley  flave,  groan- 
ing under  the   lafhes  of  a  barbarous  officer,   who 
is  loaded  with  a  galimg  chain,  who  finks  under 
the  labour  of  that  oar  which  he  woiks,  or  rather, 
>vith  which   he   himfclf   is    trailing   a1oi»g.     The 
lofs  of  the  foul  will  place  you  in  the  condition  of 
yon  martyr  on  the  wheel,    whofe  living  limbs  are 
disjointed    and    racked,     whofe    lingering    life    is 
loth  to  ceafe,   who  lives  to  glut  the  rage  of  ins 
tormentors,    and    who    expires  only    through    an 
overflowing  acccfs  of  pain,   his  executioners  with 
the  barbarous  Indufiry  being   frugal   of  his  blood 
and  his  ftrengtn,    in  order  to  make   him  fuffer  as 
uiuch  as  he  can  poflihly  fuiT.  r  before  he  dies. 

But,   as  I  fald  before,   all  thcfe  inuges  convey 
bot  very  ipiperfecl  ideaa  of  the  lofs  of  our  fouls. 

Were 


The  Worth  of  the  SouL  129 

Were  we  to  extend  our  fpeculations  as  far  as  the 
fubied  would  allow,  it  vrould  be  eai'y  to  prove, 
that  the  foul  is  capable  of  enjoying  fcnfible 
pleafures  infinitely  more  refined,  and  of  fufferin^- 
pains  infinitely  more  excruciating,  than  all  thofc 
which  are  felt  in  this  world.  Xn  this  vvorld,  fen- 
fations  of  pleafure  and  pain  are  proportioned  to 
the  end,  that  the  Creator  propoled  in  rendering 
us  capable  of  them.  This  end  is  almoft  always 
the  prefervation  and  well-being  of  the  body  dur- 
ing the  Ihort  period  of  mortal  life.  To  anfv.-er 
this  end,  it  is  not  neceffary,  that  pleafure  and 
pain  fiiould  be  fo  exquifue  as  our  fenfes  may  be 
capable  of  enduring.  If  our  fenfes  give  us  no- 
tice of  the  approach  of  things  hurtful  aiîd  bens* 
ficial  to  us,  it  is  fufficient. 

But  in  heaven  fenfible  pleafures  will  be  infi- 
nitely more  exquifite.  There  the  love  of  God 
will  have  its  free  courfé.  There  the  promifes 
of  religion  will  all  be  fulillled.  There  the  la- 
bours of  the  righteous  will  be  rewarded.  There 
we  fliall  difccver  how  fur  the  power  of  God  v/ill 
be  difplayed  in  favour  of  an  elecl  foul.  In  like 
manner,  the  extent  of  divine  power  in  punilhing 
the  wicked  will  appear  in  their  future  flate  of 
mifery.  That  juftice  muft  be  glorified,  which 
nothing  but  the-  blood  of  Jefus  Ghrift  could  ap- 
peafe  in  favour  of  the  ele6\.  There  the  finner 
jnuft  fall  a  vidlim  to  the  wrath  of  Gcd.  There 
he  mufl:  experience  how  fear  Jul  a  ihlng  it  :'s  to 
fall  into  the  hands  of  the  living  God,  Heb.  x.  3  1. 
Hath  a  man,  who  is  threatened  with  thefe  mile- 
ries,  any  thing  too  valuable  to  give  for  his  re- 
demption from  them  ?  Is  not  the  nature  ot  on:- 
fouls,  which  is  known  by  thefe  three  properties, 
underdanding,  volition,  and  fenfibillty,  exprefTive 
oF  its  dignity  ?  Does  not  this  dcmonftrate  this 
propofition  of  our  Saviour,  IVbat  shall  a  man 
^'ive  in  €;-^çban^e  for  his  soul? 

M  IJ.    The 


;i30  The  îVcrih  of  the  Saul, 

II.  The  immorlality  of  a  foul  conflitutes  Its 
(Bignity,  and  its  endîefs  duration  is  a  foiirce  of 
clemonRrations  in  favour  of  the  propofition  in  the 
text.  This  dignity  is  inconteflible.  The  prin- 
ciple of  the  immortality  of  tiie  foul,  from  which 
ive  reafon,  is  undeniable.  Two  fuppofuions  may 
feem,  at  firfl  fight,  to  weaken  the  evidence  of 
the  immortality  of  the  foul.  Firf>,  the  clofe 
union  of  the  foul  to  the  body  feems  unfavourable 
to  the  doi\rine  of  its  immortality,  and  to  predidl; 
its  diffolution  with  the  body.  But  this  fuppofi- 
tion,  inethinks,  vaniOieth,  v/hen  we  confider 
V'hat  a  difproportlon  there  is  between  the  proper- 
ties of  the  foul,  and  thofc  of  the  body.  This  dif- 
proportion  proves,  that  they  are  two  dlftimfl  fub- 
Hances.  The  fcparation  of  two  diflincl  fub- 
fiances,  makes  indeed  fome  change  in  the  manner 
of  their  exifting  ;  but  it  can  make  none  really 
ill  their  exigence. 

But,  whatever  advantages  we  may  derive  from 
this  reafoning,  I  freely  acknowledge,  that  this, 
of  all  philofophical  arguments  for  the  immortali- 
ty of  the  foul,  the  leafl  of  any  afft^£ls  ms.  The 
great  queilion,  on  this  article,  is  not  what  we 
think  of  our  fouls,  when  we  confider  them  in 
ihemfelves,  independently  on  God,  whofe  omnip- 
otence furrounds  and  governs  them.  Could  an 
infidel  dem.onflirate,  againfl  us,  that  the  human 
foul  is  material,  and  that  therefore  it  mufl:  perirti 
■with  the  body  ;  could  we,  on  the  contrary,  dem- 
onflrate,  againft  him,  that  the  foul  is  immaterial, 
and  that  therefore  it  is  not  fubjedt  to  laws  of 
matter,  and  mufi  furvive  the  deflruflion  of  the 
body  ;  neither  fide,  in  my  opinion,  v^ouîd  gain 
any  thing  cooiiderable.  The  principal  queîlion, 
that,  wliich  alone  ought  to  determine  our  notions 
on  this  article,  would  remain  unexamined  ;  that 
is,  whether  God  will  employ  his  power  over  our 
fouls  to  perpetuate  or  to  deftroy  them.  For, 
xould   an   infidel  prove,  that  God  would  employ 

his 


The  mnh  of  the  SouL  131 

his  power  to  annihilate  our  fouls,  in  vain  ihould 
we.  have  demoHibated  that  they  were  naturally 
immortal  ;  for  we  fliould  be  obliged  to  owii, 
tliat  they  are  mortal  in  refped  of  the  will  of  that 
God,  whofe  omnipotence  rules  them.  In  like 
in'^nner,  if  we  could  prove  to  an  unbeliever,  that 
God  would  employ  his  power  to  pr^ferve  them  in 
eternal  exiftence,  in  vain  would  he  have  demon- 
fh-ated,  thax  confidered  in  themfelves  they  are 
riiortal  ;  and  he  would  be  obliged  in  his  turn  lo 
aliov/  that  human  fouls  are  immortal,  in  vn  lue  of 
the  fuprcuie  pOv/er  of  God.  Now,  my  brethicn, 
thé  fLippoiition-,  that  God  will  employ  his  power 
to  annihilate  our  fouls,  will  entirely  difapptai-,  if 
you  attend  to  the  well-known  and  familiar  argu- 
ment of  the  connexion  between  the  immortality 
of  the  foul,  and  that  defire  of  immortality  which 
the  Creator  hath  imparted  to  it.  What  can  we 
reply  to  a  man  \vi)o  rcafons  in  this  mi'-nni.  !  ? 

I  find  luyfelf  in  a  v/orld,  where  all  lîungi  J-'- 
clare  the  perfedions  of  the  Creator.  The  r^)o;^o 
Ixonfider  all  the  parts,  the  mere  I  admire  ti:e 
fitnefs  of  each  to  anfvver  the  end  of  hira  who 
created  them  all.  Among  numberlefs  produc- 
tions, perfectly  correfpondent  to  their  deftination, 

I  find  only  one  being,  whofe  condition  doth  not 
feem  to  agree  with  that  raarvclious  order,  which 
I -have  obferved  in  all  the  red.  This  being  is 
my  own  foul.       And  what  is  this  foul  of  mine  ? 

II  it  fire  ?  Is  it  air  ?  Is  it  ethereal  matter  ? 
Under  whatever  notions  I  confiieV  it,  I  am  at  a 
lofs  to  define  it.-  However,  nctwithflanding  this 
obfcurity,  I  do  perceive  enough  of  its  nature  to 
convince  me  of  a  great  difproportion  between  the 
prefent  date  of  my  foul,  and  that  end  for  which 
its  Creator  fcems  to  have  furwied  it.  This  foul, 
1  know,  I. feel,  (and,  of  all  argunients,  there  are 
none  more  convincing  than  thofe  that  are  taken 
from  fcntiment)  this  foul  is  a  being  eagerly  bent 
Cii  the  enjoyment  of  a   happjiefs   infinite   in    itS' 

duration.  ..^ 


132  The  Worth  of  the  Soul  ^ 

duration.  Should  any  one  offer  me  a  ftatc  of 
f)(jrfe<fl  happinels,  that  would  continue  ten  thou- 
Iwnd  years,  an  affcmblage  of  reputation  and  rich- 
es, {grandeur  and  magnificence,  perhaps,  dazzled 
with  its  glare,  I  might  cede  my  pretenfions  in 
coiiGderation  of  this  enjoyment.  But,  after  all, 
1  fully  perceive,  that  this  felicity,  how  long,  and 
how  perfed.  foever  It  might  be,  would  be  inade- 
quate to  my  wilhes.  Ten  thoufand  years  are  too 
few  to  gratify  ray  defirea  ;  my  defires  leap  the 
bounds  of  all  fixed  periods  of  duration,  and  roll 
along  a  boundlefs  eternity.  "What  is  not  eternal 
is  unequal  to  my  wlflies,  eternity  only  can  fatif- 
fy  them, 

Such  is  my  foul.  But  where  is  it  lodged  ? 
Its  place  is  the  ground  of  my  aflonifliment. 
This  foul,  this  fubje£i  of  fo  many  defires,  inhab- 
its a  world  of  vanity  and  nothingnefs.  Whether 
I  climb  the  highefl  eminences,  or  pry  into  the 
rU.-pf{^  indigence,  I  can  difcovcr  no  objedl  capa- 
'•'r  of  tl'licvi-  niy  c::ipncious  deGres.  I  aicend  the 
ti:rjne3  of  fo%'ereigns,  1  defcend  into  the  beggar's 
dud;  I  walk  the  palaces  of  princes,  I  lodge  in 
the  peafant's  cabin  ;  I  retire  into  the  clofet  to  be 
wife,  I  avoid  recolleclion,  choofe  ignor?ince,  and 
jncreafe  the  crowd  of  idiots  ;  I  live  in  folitude, 
I  rufh  into  the  fociai  m.uhitude  ;  but  every 
where  Ï  find  a  mortifying  void.  In  all  thefe 
places  there  is  nothing  facisfaclory.  In  each  I 
am  more  unhappy,  through  the  tlefue  of  feeing: 
new  objects,  than  fatisfied  with  the  enjoyraent 
of  what  I  pofTefs.  At  moO,  I  experience  noth- 
ing in  all  thcfe  plcafures,  which  my  concupif- 
ctnce  multiplies,  but  a  mean  of  rendering  my 
condition  tolerable,  not  a  mean  of  making  iç 
perfeaiy  happy. 

-xow  can  I  reconcile  the fc  things  ?  How  can 
I  make  the  Creator  agree  with  himfelf  ?     There 

is  one  way  of  doing  this,  ?  ^'''Bf^;!^  ^']\  ^  ^^'; 

^^in  way  ;    ^  way,  that  i'olvç?  all  d;fficpiiies,  an^ 

^       ^  <  covers 


The  Worth  of  the  Soul  133 

covers  infidelity  with  confufion  ;  a  way,  that 
■feacheth  me  what  1  am,  whence  1  came,  and  for 
what  my  Creator  hath  dt-figncd  me.  Although 
God^hath  placed  me  in  this  world,  yet  he  dotb 
Dot  dtilgn  to  limit  my  profpeds  to  it  ;  though" 
lie  faath  mixed  me  with  niere  animais,  yet  he  doth 
not  intend  to  confound  me  with  them  ;  though 
he  hath  lodged  my  foul  in  'a  frali  perifhable  body, 
ye:  he  doth  not  mean  to  involve  it  in  tiie  diffoiu-' 
tion  of  this  frame.  Without  fuppufing  immor- 
tality, that,  which  conRitutes  the  dignity  of 
man,  makes  his  mifery.  Thefe  defires  of  immor- 
tal duration,  this  faculty  of  thinking  and  reflécl-' 
hîg,  of  expanding  and  perpetuating  the  mind  j 
this  fupeviority  of  foul,  that  fcems  to  elevate 
iiiankind  above  beafis,  a6lualiy  place  the  beafk 
above  thé  man,  and  iiil  him  with  tjiefe  bitter  re- 
fleclions  iLjir  of  mortification  and  p.iln.  Ye 
crawling  reptiles  !  ye  beads  of  the  ficid  1  dcfli- 
tute  of  intelligence  and  reafon  '  if  my  foul  be 
not  immortal,  I  "envy  your  condition.  ■  Content 
with  your  own  orgaiis,  pleafed  with  ratiging  the 
fields  and  browfing  the  herbage,  your  defires 
need  no  reflraint  ;  far  all  your  vvifhes  are  fully 
fatisfied.  While  1,  abounding  on  the  one  hand 
with  infatiable  defires,  and  on  the  other  confined 
amidft  vain  and  unfatlsfudlory  objeclo,  1  am  on 
this  account  unhappy  ; 

We  repeat  thefe  philofophlcal  re^fonings,  iny 
brethren,  only  for  the  fike  of  convincing  you, 
that  we  arc  i;-)  poffefFiôn  of  imnienfe  advantages 
over  fceptics  in  this  difpute.  On  the  principles 
of  an  unbeliever,  you  i\e,  vvcre  his  notion  of  rev- 
elation  weli-grounded  ;  were  the  faCred  book,  in 
which  fo  nii-.ny  charaders  of  truth  ihine,  an  hu- 
miii  production  ;  were  a  reafonable  man  obliged 
to  admit  no  other  proportions  than  thofe,  whicli 
have  been  allowed  at  the  tribunal  of  right  rea- 
fon ;  yea,  wejfay  more,  were  cur  fouls  material, 
we  ought,  on  the  fuppofitions  before  mentioned, 
M  2  td 


i34  T^f^^  Worth  of  the  Soul. 

to  ad'Tiit  the  immortality  ot  the  foul  as  mofi:  con- 
formabie  lo  our  bcfl  notions  of  the  will  of  our 
Creator. 

But,  when  we  are  thus  convinced  of  our  im- 
mortality^  need  we  any  new  arguments  to  demon- 
ftrate  the  proportion  included  in  ihe  text,  What 
shall  a  man  give  in  cKchange  for  bis  soul  ? 
Moft  fubjcjfti  may  be  made  to  appear  with  great- 
er or  Jcfs  dignity,  according  to  the  greater  or 
fmalier  degree  of  importance,  in  which  the 
preacher  places  it.  Pompous  expreîïions,  bold, 
figures,  lively  images,  ornaments  of  eloquence, 
may  ofr.en  fupply  a  want  of  dignity  in  thefubjecV 
difcuffed,  or  a  want  of  proper  dirpofitions  in  au- 
ditors, who  attend  the  dii'culnoM  of  it.  But,  is 
my  opinion,  evciy  attempt  to  give  importance  io 
a  motive  taken  from  eternity,  is  more  likely  to 
enfeeble  the  doctrine  than  to  invigorate  it.  Mo- 
tives of  this  kind  are  fe!f-furncient.  Defcriptions 
the  mcil  fimple,  and  the  moft  natural,  that  can 
be  made,  are  alwr.ys,  1  think,  the  moft  pathetic^ 
Hnu  the  moft  terrifying  ;  nor  can  I  find  an  ex- 
prefîion,  en  this  Article,  more  eloquent  and  more 
cniphatical  than  this  of  St.  i'aui,  The  things 
uvhich  are  ssen^  are  temporal  ;  but  the  things 
which  are  not  secn^  arc  eternal^  2  Cor.  iv.  ]£, 
Were  the  poITclhon  of  the  whole  v*orld  the  price 
you  ajk,  in  exchange  for  your  souls  ;  were  the 
whole  world  free  from  thofe  charaders  of  vanity, 
v/hich  open  fnch  a  boundlefs  fitid  to  our  reflt-c- 
lions  ;  would  there  not  always  be  this  difpropor- 
tion  between  a  periihmg  world  and  a  foul  afpir- 
ing  at  felicity,  that  the  world  would  end  and  the 
foul  would  never  die  ? 

Death  puts  an  end  to  the  mo{\  fpecious  titles, 
to  the  moft  dazzling  grandeur,  and  to  the  moft 
delicious  life  ;  and  the  thought  of  this  period  of 
human  glory  reminds  mc  of  the  memo-rable  action 
of  a  prince,  who,  although  he  was  a  heathen, 
■was  wifer  than  many  chriflians  j  I  mean  the  great 

Saludin. 


The  Worth  of  the  SouL  135, 

Saladln.     After  he    had    fubdued  Egypt,   pa^Ted' 
the    Euphrates,    and    conquered    cities    without 
number  ;.  atEer   he   had   recaken   Jerufalem,   and 
performed    exploits    more  than   human,    in   thofc 
wars,  which    fuperftition    had   ftirred  up  for  the 
recovery  of  the  holy  land  ;    he  finiHied  his  life  in 
the  performance  of  an   a£lion,,  that  ought  to  be 
tranlmitted  to  the  mod  diftaiu  pofterity.     A  mo- 
tnent  before  he  uttered  his  lafl:  iigh,  he  caîied  the 
herald,  who  had  carried  his  banner  before  him  in 
all  his  baitles,   he  commanded  him  to  faflen  to 
the  top  of  a  lance,  the   fhroud,   in  which  the  dy- 
ing prince  was  fcon  to  be  buried»      Go,    faid  he, 
tarry  this  lance,    unfurl   this   banner,   and,   while 
yo'j  \\i\.  up  this  ftandard,  proclaim,   This^  this  is 
oll^  thai  remains  to  Saladin  the  great,    the  con- 
queror and  the  king  of  the  empire,  of  all  his  glo- 
ry,*-     Chriftians  !    1  perform  to-day  the  oSlce  of 
this  herald.     I  faften  to  the  top  of  a  fpear,   fen- 
fual    and  intelletiiial    pleafures,    worldly   riches^ 
and  human  honours.     All  thefe  I  reduce  to  the 
piece  of  crape,  in  which  you  will  fliortly  be  buri- 
ed.     This   fîandard  of  death  I   lift    up    in    your 
light,  and  I  cry,  This,  this  is  all,  that  will  re- 
main to  you,  of  tha  polîefîions  for  which  you  ex- 
changed your    fouls.       Are   fuch    poffeflions    toa 
great  to  be  given   in  exchange  for  iuch  a  foul  ? 
<>!an   the  idea    of  their    periQiing    nature    prevail 
over  the  idea  of  the    immortality    of  the   foul  ? 
And  do  you  not  feel  the  truth  of  the  text.   What 
shall  a  man,  a  rational  n*an,  a  man  who  is  capa- 
ble of  comparing  eternity  with   tiaie>   what   Qialî 
i'uch  a  man  give  in  exchange  for  his  soul  ? 

Finally,  we  make  a  reflexion  of  another  kind^ 
to  convince  yoa  of  the  dignity  of  your  fouls,  and 
to  perfuade  you,  that  nothing  can  be  too  valua- 
ble to  be  given  in  exchange  for  them.  This  is 
taken  from  the  afloniQiing  works,  that  God  hatli 

performed 

*  Maimb.  Hifl.  des  Croifades,  lib.  vi.  p.  572.  dc 
I'Edit.  in  4. 


t^6  The  ï'Forth  of  ifit  S(mL_  \- 

performed  in  their  fAVOur.  We  will  confine  Cî?f^ 
"lelves  to  one  arcicle,  to  the  inefliniable  pricey 
that  God-hath  given  for  the  redemption  of  them» 
Hear  thefe  uords  of  the  holy  fcnptures,  2~c  aie 
bought  with  a  pi  ice,  2'c  -were  redeemed  from 
jour  l'oin  conversât ioriy  not  nvitb  cQiruptible 
ib'.ngs,  cs  silver  and  gold  ;  out  wiib  the  precious . 
blood  of  Christy    1  Cor.  vl.  20.    1  Pet.  i.  18. 

Some  of  you,  perhaps,  may  fay,  as  the  limits 
of  a  fermon  will- not  allow  us  to  fpcak  of  more 
than  one  of  the  wondrous  works,  of  God  in  fa- 
vour of  immortal  -  fouls,  we  ought,  at  lead,  to 
choofe  that,  v/bich  is  mofl  likely  to  aff^â.  aa  au- 
dience,  and  not  to  dwell  on  a.  fubjcd,  which, 
having  been  fo  often  repeated,  will  make  oniy 
flight  impreiTions  on  their  mindso  ^  Perhaps,  were 
Ave  to  inform  you,  that,  .in  order  to  fave  your 
fouls,  God  lîad  fubverted  formeri^'  aU  the  laws  oi 
nuiure,  or,  .to  uie  theJanguage  of  a  prophet,  thi.t 
he  had  shaken  the.  hcavcns  and -the  earthy  the  sea 
end.  the  dry  land,  Hig.  ii.  6.  perhaps,  were  wc 
to  tcil  you,  that,,  in  order  to  fave  ypur  fouls, 
Gcd  d&frrrcd  .theend  of  .the  woyld,  jànà  put  off 
the  laft  v^cifTitudes,  that  are  to  put  a  period  lo 
the. duration- of  this  •univerfe  ;  .that,  according  to 
Si,-.Pffrtcr,.  the  Lê^'d  is  •long-suffering.  tQ  us-wardy 
2  Pet^-iii..- 9. .  perhaps,  were  we  to  affirm,  that, 
in  order  to  lave  our  fouls,  he  will  eome  one  day 
on  the  clouds  of  heaven,  fitting  on  a. throne,  fur- 
rounded  with  glorious  angels,  acc-ompanicd  \=?itb 
îiiyriads  of  fliouting  voices,  to  deliver  them  v/ith 
the  greater  pomp,  and  to  fave  tliera  witli  Ujorc 
fplendour  :  p^rhaps,  by  relating  all  tHefe  mighty/ 
%vorks  done  for  our  fouls,  we  might  excite  in  you- 
ideas  of  their  dignity,  more  lively  than  tba:, 
which  we  have  chofen,  and  to  which  we  intend 
to  confine  our  attention.  But,  furmount,  if  you^ 
can,  your  cufiomary  indolence,  and  form  an  ade- 
quate idea  of  the  dignity  of  the  facrifice  of  Jelus 
(Ihrifl,  in  order  the  uctcir  to  judge  of  the  dignity 

of 


The  Worth  of  the  Soul.  137 

of   thofe   fouls,    of   which    his    blood    was    the 
price. 

Go,  learn  it  in  heaven.  Behold  the  .Deity. 
Approach  his  throne.  Obferve  the  thousand 
thousands  ministering  unto  biniy  ten  thousand 
times  ten  thousand  standing  before  him,  Dan,- 
vii.  10.  See  his  eyes  fparkling  with  fire,  and  his 
inajefiy  and  glory  filling  his  fandluary,  and,  by 
the  dignity  of  the  victim  facrificed,  judge  of  the 
value  of  the  facrifice. 

Go,  fiudy  it  in  all  the  economies,  that  preced- 
ed this  facrifice,  Obferve  the  types,  which  pre- 
figured it  ;  the  (hadows,  that  traced  it  out  ;  the 
ceremonies,  which  depidled  it  ;  and,  by  the  pomp 
of  the  preparations,  judge  of  the  dignity  of  the 
fubftance  prepared. 

Go,  learn  it  on  mount  Calvary.  Behold  the 
wrath,  that  fell  on  the  head  of  Jelus  ChriQ.  Be- 
hold his  blood  pouring  out  upon  the  earth,  and 
him,  your  Saviour,  drinking  the  bitter  cup  of 
divine  difpleafure.  See  his  hands  and  his  feet 
wailed  to  the  crofs,  and  his  whole  body  one  great 
wound  ;  obferve  the  unbridled  populace  foaming 
with  rage  around  the  crofs,  and  glutting  their 
favage  fouls  with  his  barbarous  fuS'erings  ;  and, 
by  the  horror  of  the  caufes  that  contributed  to 
feis  death,  judge  of  the  death  itfelf. 

Go  to  the  infidei,  and  let  him  teach  you  the 
dignity  of  the  facrifice  of  Chrift.  Remember,  on 
this  account  he  attacks  chriftianity,  and  he  h^th 
fom-e  fhew  of  reafon  for  doing  fa  ;  for  if  this  re- 
ligion may  be  aitacked  on  any  fide,  with  the  leafl: 
hope  of  fuccefs,  it  is  on  this.  The  truths  of  the 
chriflian  religion  are  inconteflible  ;  but  if  there 
be  any  one  article  of  the  gofpel,  which  requires 
an  entire  docility  of  mind,  an  abfolute  fubmif- 
fion  of  heart,  a  perfed  deference  to  God,  who 
fpeaks,  it  is  the  article  of  the  iacnfi.ee  of  the 
crofs.  Weigh  the  objedlions,  and  by  the  great- 
nefs  of  the  difficulties  judge  of  the  dignity  of  the 
myftery,  Hecolkct, 


138  The  PForih  of  the  Soul 

Recolledl,  chriflian  !  God  thouglit  fit  to  re- 
quire the  blood  of  iiis  Son  for  the  redemption  of* 
cDf  fouls.  TiitTe  fouls  niufl  have  beers  very  pre- 
cious in  the  Tight  of  God,  iince  be  redeemed' 
them  at  a  price  fo  immenle.  The  «vifery  into 
wtiirh  they  were  liable  to  be  plunged,  mufl.  have 
been  extremely  terrible,  fince  God  thought  prop- 
er to  make  fuch  great  efforts  to  fave  them  from 
iti  The  felicity,  of  which  they  are  capable,  and' 
to  which  the  Lord  intends  to  elevate  them,  niufb' 
be  infinitely  valuable,  fincn;  it  eof^  liim  fo  much 
to  bring  them  to  ir.  For  what  in  the  univerfc  is 
of  equal  value  with  the  blood  of  the  Son  of  God  ?  ' 
Difappear,  all  ye  other  miracles,  wrought  i<j  fa- 
vour of  cur  foulp  i  ye  aftonifliing  prodlgier,-  that 
confirmed  the  gofpel  I  thou,  delay  of  the  con- 
fummation  of  all  things  1  ye  great  and  ternble 
figns  of  the  fécond  coming  of  the  Son  of  God  \ 
VaniO)  before  the  miracle  of  the  crcfs  ;  for  the 
rrofs  fhines  you  all  into  darfenefs  and  fliade« 
This  glorious  light  maiies  yoiu  glimmering  van- 
ifli  ;  and  after  my  imaginatrion  is  filled  with  the 
tremendous  dignity  of  this  facrifice,  I  can  fee 
nothing  great  befide.  But,  if  God,  if  this  juft 
appraifer  of  things,  h'ath  cftimated  our  fouls  at 
fuch  a  rate,  Orall  we  fet  a  low  price  on  them  ? 
If  he  hath  given  fo  much  for  them,  do  v.-e  ima- 
gine we  can  give  too  in^jch' for  theni  ?  If,  for 
their  redemption,  he  hath  facrificed  the  moft  val- 
uable perfon  in  heaven,  do  we  imagine  there  is 
any  thing  upon  earth,  too  great  to  give  up  for 
tht'm  ? 

N05  no,  my  brethren  Î  after  what  we  have 
beard,  we  ought  to  believe,  that  there  is  no  flind- 
Gw  of  ejCaggeration  in  this  exclamation  of  Jffus 
Chrift,  JVhat  is  a  man  projited,  if  Jic  shall  gain 
the  ivhole  "tvorld  and  lose  /lis  o-Tun  soul  ?  1  do 
Dot  certainly  know  what  our  Saviour  meant  to 
fay;  whether  he  intended  to  fpeak  of  a  man,, 
whc  fliould  gain  îbc  Hubglc  ivarld,  and  inflantly 

les.e 


The  ivorih  of  the  Soid.  1 3 9 

'Je-se  his  soul  ;  or  of  one,  who  fhould  not  lose  hie 
^om/ till  long-  after  be  had  obtained  the  nuholc 
nuorldy  and  had  reigned  over  it  through  the  courfe 
of  a  long  life.  But  I  do  know,  that  the  words 
are  true,  even  in  the  moO:  exceniive  fenfe.  Sup- 
pole  a  man,  who  fhould  not  only  enjoy  univerfal 
empire  for  one  whole  age,  but  for  a  period  equal 
to  the  duration  of  the  world  itfelf  ;  the  propofi- 
tion,  that  is  implied  in  the  words  of  Jefus  Chrift, 
IS  applicable  to  him.  Such  a  foul  as  we  have 
defcribed,  a  foul  fo  excellent  in  its  nature,  fo  ex- 
tenfive  in  its  duration,  fo  pj-ecious  through  its 
redemption  ;  a  foul  capable  of  acquiring  fo  much 
knowledge,  of  conceiving  fo  many  defircs,  of  ex- 
periencing fo  much  remorfe,  of  feeling  fo  many 
pleafurf^s  and  pains  ;  a  foul,  that  mufl:  fubfift  be- 
yond all  time,  and  perpetuate  itfelf  to  eternity; 
a  foul  redeemed  by  the  blood  of  the  Son  of  God  ; 
a  foul  fo  valuable  ought  t-o  be: preferred  before  all 
things,  and  nothing  is  too  precious  to  be  given 
for  its  exchange.,  '*  What  is  a  man  profited,  it 
he  fliall  gain  the  whole  world,  and  lofe  his  owi\ 
foul  ?  or,  what  fliall  a  man  give  in  exchange  for 
his  foul  ?" 

However,  my  brethren,  we  are  willing  to  ac- 
knowledge, were  we  in  the  cafe  fuppofed  by  Je- 
fus Chriil  ;  were  it  in  our  power  to  gain  the 
whole  world  by  lofing  our  own  fouis  ;  or,  being 
aftually  univerfal  monarchs,  were  we  obliged  to 
facrifice  this  vaQ:  empire  to  recover  our  fouls  al- 
ready lofl  ;  were  we,  being  fmitten  with  the 
fplendid  offer,  or  being  ahrmed  at  the  immcnfe 
price  of  our  purchale,  to  prefer  the  whole  world 
before  our  own  fouls  ;  we  might  then,  if  not  ex- 
culpate our  condudi,  yet  at  lead  give  a  little  col- 
our to  it  ;  if  we  could  not  gain  our  caufe,  we 
might  however  plead  it  with  fome  fhew  of  rea- 
fon.  A  reafon  of  ftate,  a  political  motive,  as 
that  of  governing  a  whole  univerfe,  would  natu- 
rally have  fome  inâusnce  over  us.     The  titles  of 

Sovereign, 


^40  The  wordh  of  the  Soul. 

Sovereign,  Monarch,  Emperor,  would  naturally 
charm  little  iouls,  like  ours.  Sumptuous  palaces, 
foperb  equipages,  a  crowd  of  devoted  courtiers, 
bowing  and  cringing  before  us,  and  all  that  exte- 
rior grandeur  which  environs  the  princes  of  the 
•earth,  would  naturally  fafcinate  fuch  feeble  eyes, 
and  infatuate  iuch  puerile  imaginations  as  ours. 
I  repeat  it  again,  could  we  obtain  the  govern- 
ment of  the  univerfe  by  the  fale  of  our  fouls,  if 
we  could  not  juftify  our  conduce,  we  might  ex- 
tenuate the  guilt  of  it  ;  and  although  we  could 
-not  gain  our  caufe,  we  might  at  leaft  plead  it 
with  fome  fliew  of  reafon. 

But  13  this  our  cafe  ?  Is  it  in  onr  power  to 
gain  the  zvbole  <ivorld  ?  Is  this  the  price,  at 
which  w€  fell  our  fouls  ?  O  (hame  of  human 
nature  1  O  meannefs  of  foul,  more  proper  to 
confound  us,  than  any  thing  elfe,  with  v;hieh  we 
can  be  reproached  1  This  intelligent  foul,  this 
immortal  foul,  this  foul  which  has  been  thought 
"worthy  ©f  redemption  by  the  blood  of  the  Saviour 
of  the  world,  this  foul  we  often  part  with  for 
nothing,  and  for  lefs  than  nothing  1  In  our  con- 
dition, placed  as  moft  of  us  are,  in  a  flate  of  me- 
diocrity ;  when  by  di-lilpation  and  indolence,  by 
injuftlce  and  iniquity,  by  malice  and  oblVinacy, 
■we  fhall  have  procured  from  vice  all  the  rewards 
that  we  can  expcfl,  what  fiiall  we  have  gaified  ? 
"Cities  ?  Provinces  ?  Kingdoms  ?  A  long  and 
profperous  reign  ?  God  hath  iiot  left  thefe  to 
cur  choice.  His  love  would  not  fuffcr  him  to 
cxpofe  us  to  a  temptation  fa  violent.  Accord- 
ingly we  put  up  our  fouls  at  a  lov/er  price.  Sec 
this  old  man,  rather  dead  than  alive,  bowing  un- 
der his  age,  ftoeping  down,  and  Hepping  into  the 
grave  ;  at  what  price  does  he  exchange  his  foul  ? 
at  the  price  of  a  few  days  of  a  dying  life  ;  a  few 
pleafures,  fmothered  under  a  pile  of  years,  if  I 
may  fpeak  fo,  or  buried  under  the  ice  of  old  age. 
That  officer  in    the   army,  who  tliinks  he  alone 

underftands 

\ 


The  Worth  of  iht  Sout  14  i 

Httnderflands  real  grandeur  ;  at  what  rate  does  he 
value  his  foul  ?  He  lofes  it  for  the  fake  of  the 
falfe  glory  of  fwearing  experily,  and  of  uniting 
"bUfphemy  and  politenefs.  What  does  yon  me- 
chanic get  for  his  foul  ?  Ooe  acre  of  land,  a 
cottage  bigger  and  lefs  inconvenient  than  ikat  of 
«is  neighbour. 

Unmanly  wretches  I  If  we  be  bent  on  renounc- 
ing our  dignity,  let  us,  however,  keep  up  foine 
appearance  of  greatnefs.  Sordid  fouls  !  if  we 
will  refign  our  nobled  pretenfions,  let  us  do  it, 
however,  in  favour  of  fomie  other  j^retenfions,  that 
are  real.  *'  Be  aRonifhed,  O  ye  heavens,  at  this  ! 
and  be  ye  horribly  afraid  ;  for  my  people  have 
committed  two  evils  :  they  have  forfaken  me, 
the  fountain  of  living  waters,  and  have  hewed 
them  out  ciRerns,  broken  ciRerns,  that  can  hold 
no  water,"  Jer.  ii.  12.  Do  you  perceive,  my 
brethren,  the  *orce  of  this  complaint,  which  God 
anciently  uttered  over  his  people  the  Jews,  and 
which  he  now  utters  over  us  ?  Neither  genius 
nor  erudition  can  eï^plain  it.  Gould  they,  you 
might  perhaps  underfland  it.  A  certain  eleva- 
tion, a  certain  dignity  of  foul,  fingular  fentt- 
ments  of  heart,  are  the  only  expoiuors  of  thefe 
afied\ing  words.  Therefore,  I  fear,  they  are  un- 
intelligible to  moll  of  you,  **  Be  adoniflied,  O 
ye  heavens,  at  this  !  and  be  ye  horribly  afraid  ; 
for  my  people  have  cominitted  two  evils  :  they 
have  forfaken  me,  tl7%  fountain  of  living  waters, 
and  hewed  ^em  out  ciflerns,  broken  cifterns, 
that  can  hold  no  water."  God  loves  us,  he  de- 
fircs  we  fliould  love  him.  He  has  done  every 
thing  to  conciliate  our  eftecm.  For  us  he  lent 
his  Son  into  the  world.  For  us  he  difanned 
death.  For  us  he  opened  an  eai'y  path  to  a  glo- 
rious eternity.  And  all  this,  to  render  himfelf 
mafler  of  our  hearts,  and  to  engage  us  to  return 
him  love  for  love,  life  for  liFe.  We  re  H  fl  all  thefe 
attractives,  we  prefer  other  objecls  before  him. 
N  No 


t^î  ^he  Worth  of  the  ScuL 

.■No  matter,  he  would  pafs  this  ingratitude,  if  the 
objedls,  which  we  prefer  before  him,  were  capa- 
ble of  making  us  happy  ;  if,  at  leaft,  they  bore 
any  apparent  praportion  to  thofe,  which  he  offer- 
eth  to  our  hopes.  But  what  aroufeth  his  dif- 
pleafure,  what  provokes  his  juft  indignation,  what 
excites  reproaches,  that  would  cleave  our  hearts 
afunder,  were  they  capable  of  feeling,  is  the  van- 
ity of  the  obje£l5,  v/hich  we  prefer  before  him. 
The  foul,  in  exchange  for  which  the  whole  world 
^vould  not  be  a  fufficient  confideration,  this  foul 
■we  often  give  for  the  moft  mean,  the  mod  vile, 
the  mod  contemptible  part  of  the  world.  "  O  ye 
heavens  I  be  afloniflied  at  this,  at  this  be  ye  hor- 
ribly afraid,;  for  my  people  have  committed  two 
evils  :  they  have  forfaken  me,  the  fountain  of  the 
living  waters,  and  hewed  them  out  ciftcrns,  bro- 
ken ciftcrms,  that  can  hold  no  water." 

But  do  we  know,  ungrateful  that  we  are,  do 
we  know,  that  if  the  hardnefs  of  our  hsarts  pre- 
vent our  feeling  in  particular  the  energy  of  this 
reproof,  and  in  general  the  evidence  of  the  reflec- 
tions, that  make  the  fubUance  of  this  difcourie  ; 
do  we  know  that  a  day  will  come,  when  we  fliall 
feel  thcHi  in  all  their  force  ?  "Do  we  know,  that 
there  is  now  a  place,  where  the  truth  of  our  text 
appears  in  a  clear  l>ut  a  terrible  light  ?  Yes,  my 
brethren,  this  reflexion  is  perhnps  cflential  to  our 
difcourfe,  this  perhaps  approaches  nearefl:  to  the 
meaning  of  Jefus  Chrift  ;  perkaps  Jefus  Chrift,  in 
tbefe  words.  What  shall  a  man  give  in  exchange 
for  his  soul  ?  meant  to  inform  us  of  the  difjsefi- 
tion  of  a  man  in  defpair,  who,  immerfed  in  all 
the  miferies  that  can  excruciate  a  foul,  f.urprifed 
at  having  parted  with  fuch  a  foul  at  a  price  fo 
fmall,  ftricken  with  the  enormous  crime  of  lofing 
it,  wiflies,  but  too  late,  to  give  every  thing  to 
recover  it. 

Ideas,  like  thefe,  we  never  propofe  to  you 
without  relu<^ance.      Motives  of  another  kind 

fliould 


The  Worth  of  the  SouL  143. 

ihould  fufEce  for  chriflians.  Learn  the  worth  of 
your  fouls.  Enter  into  the  plan  of  your  Creator, 
who  created  them  capable  of  eternal  felicity  ;  and 
into  that  of  your  Redeemer,  who  died  to  enable 
you  to  arrive  at  it.  Againfi:  alt  the  deceitful 
promifes,  which  the  world,  the  fle(h,and  the  devil, 
life  to  feduce  you,  oppofe  thefe  words  of  Jefus 
Clarifl,  IVhat  is  a  man  profited)  if  be  gciin  the. 
'U'bol-e  ivorldj  and  los-e  bis  »ivn  soul  ?  or^  wbat 
sball  a  man  give  in  exchange  for  his  soul  ?  May 
God  infpire  y  on  with  thefe  noble  fentiments  I 
To  hira  be  honour  asd  glory  for  ever.— Amen=. 


SERMON 


SERMON    VL 

rm   BIRTli    OF  JESUS   CHRIST. 

Isa I AH  ix.  6,  7. 

Unto  us  a  child  is  born<,  unto  us  a  son  is  given  -j 
mnd  the  government  shall  be  upon  his  shoulder  ,• 
and  bis^  nartic  shall  be  called,  iVcnderfuly  Coun- 
sellor^ The  liligbtj  God,  The  Everlasting  Fa- 
ther, The  Prince  of  Peace,  Of  the  increase 
of  his  go%;rnjnent  and  peace  there  ihall  be  no 
end,  upon  the  tbrons  of  David^  and  upon  his 
kingdom,  to  order  it,  and  to  esjabiisb  it,  nvith 
judgment  and  ivitb  justice,  from  henceforth 
even  for  ever, 

I  ANTICIPATE  the  feftlval,  which  the 
goodnefs,  or  rather  the  magriificcnce  of  God,  in^ 
vîtes  you  to  celebrate  on  Wednefday  next.  All 
Mature  feems  to  take  part  in  tfee  mémorable  event,, 
which  on  that  day  we  (hall  commemorate,  I  mean 
the  birth  of  the  Saviour  of  the  world.  Herod 
turns  pale  on  his  thront  ;  the  devils  tremble  in 
hell  ;  the  wife  aien  of  the  eaft  iufpend  all  their 
fpcculàtions,  and  obferve  no  fign  in  the  firma- 
ment, except  that  which  conduces  them  to  the 
place  where  lies  the  incainate  Word,  God  man- 
ifest in  the  flesh,  1  Tim.  iii.  16.  an  angel  from 
heave»  is  the  herald  of  the  aftonilliing  event,  and 
tells  the  Shepherds,.  Behold  I  bring  you  good  tid^. 
ings  of  great  joy <f  which  shall  be  to  all  people,,, 
for  unto  you  is  born  this  day,  in  the  city  of  Da-, 
vid,  a  Saviour,  'ivbich  is  Christ  the  Lord,  Luke 
ii.  10,  11.  the  multitude  of  the  htavenly  hosted- 
gerl^  defcend  to  cengiatulate  men  on  the  Word'?? 
afforaption  of  mortal  fl»-fh,  oh  his  drjelling  among 
men,  in  order  to  enable  them  to  behold  his  glory, 
the  ^hry  of  the  only  begotte.n  of  the  Father,  full 


The  Birth  of  Chrisi.  14$ 

of  grace  and  truths  John  i,  14.  they  make  the 
air  relound  with  theie  acclamations,  Glorj  to  God 
in  the  highest^  and  on  eartb  peace^  good  will  to-- 
nvard  men^  Luke  ii.  14. 

What  think  ye  ?  Does  this  feftival  require  no 
preparation  of  you  ?  Do  you  imagine,  that  you 
ihall  celebrate  it  as  you  ought,  if  you  content 
yourfelves^  with  attending  on  a  few  difcourles, 
durirg  which,  perhaps,  while  you  are  prefent  in 
body,  you  may  be  abfent  in  I'pirit  ;  or  with  laying 
alide  your  temporal  cares,  and  your  mod  turbu- 
lent  pafTions,  at  the  charch-gates,  iaorder  to  take 
them  up  again,  as  foon  as  divine  iervice  ends  ? 
The  king  Mefliah  is  about  to  make  his  triumphant: 
entry  among  you.  Witil  what  pomp  do  îbe  cbiU- 
dren  of  tJiis  tvorldy  who  are  ivise,  and,  we  may- 
add,  magnificent  in  tbeir  generation^  Luke  xvi,  S* 
celebrate  the  entries  of  theip  princes  ï  They 
drew  the  roads  with  ftowers,  they  raife  triumphal 
arches,  they  exprefs  their  joy  in  (bouts  of  viétory, 
and  in  longs  of  praiie.  Gome,  then,  my  breth- 
ren, let  us  to-à-ày  prepare  ike  vjay  of  the  Lord, 
and  make  bis  paths  straight^  Matt.  iii.  3.  let  us 
be  joyful  together  before  the  Lordj  let  us  make  a 
jriyful  noise  before  i/ie-Lord  the  King^  for  he  com- 
c'tb  to  Judge  the  earth.,  Pfal.xcviii.  6,  9.  or,,  to 
i'peak  in  a  more  intelligible,  and  in  a  more  evan- 
gelical manner,  Come,  ye  raiicrable.iinners,  load- 
en  with  the  uniupportable  burden  of  your  fins  ; 
come,  ye  troubled  conicience^,  uneafy  at  the  re- 
membrance of  your  many  idle  words,  m^ny  crim- 
inal thoughts,  many  abominable  adions  ;  come, 
ye  poor  mortals,  tossed,  ivith  tempests  and  not 
comforted,  Ha.  liv.  II.  condemned  fiiil  to  bear- 
the  infirmities  of  nature,  the  caprices  of  iccieiy, 
the  vicilRtudes  of  age,  the  turns  of  fortune,.  a»d 
then  the  horror?  of  death,  and  the  frightful  ni,!',ht 
of  the  tomb  ;  come,  behold  The  Wonderful^  The 
Counsellor  y  The  Mighty  God,  The  E'jerlastirig 
father,  Iks  Prince  of  Peace  i  tai^e  him  into  your 
N  2  arms, 


146  The  Birth  of  Chrisi^ 

arms,  learn  to  dcfirc  nothing  more,  whenybu 
poITefs  him»  May  God  enable  cath  of  you,  in 
tranlportî  of  joy,  to  fay,  I.ord,  novj  lettest  thou, 
tby  servant  depart  iu  peace^  for  mine  eyes  have 
seen  tby  salvation.    Amen. 

You  hiiTe  heard  th#^  prophecy,  on  which  our 
meditations  in  this  dircoMrfe  are  to  turn.  "  Un« 
to  us  a  child  is  born,  unto  lis  a  fon  is  given  ;  and 
the  governoaent  fhall  be  upon  his  niouider  :  and 
his  name  Ihart  be  called,  Wonderful,  CounfcUor, 
The  Miglity  God,  The  Evcrlalling  Father,  The 
Prince  of  Peace.  Of  the  increafe  cf  his  govern- 
menc  and  peace  there  fiiall  \it  no  end,  upon  the" 
throne  of  David,  and  upon  bis  kii>'gdom,  to  order 
it,  and  to  cftablill»  it,  with  judgmrnt  and  with 
juilice,  from  henceforth  even  for  ever."  Thefe 
words  are  more  dazzling  than  ck-ar  :  Itt  us  hx- 
'Jicir  true'  meaning  ;  nnd,  in  order  to  alVcrtai* 
that,  let  us  dividt;  this  difcoir. fe  into  two  parts^ 

.1.      Let  us  explain  the  preditlion. 

ÎÎ.      Let  us  (hew  its  accoiopliihmeot. 

In  tke  fiifl  part,  we  wdi  prove,  that  the  proph- 
•r  bad  the  Meiiiah  in  view  ;.  and,  in  the  fecoiid^ 
that  our  Jefus  h.id  folly  anfwcrcd  the  dt'ign  of 
ihe  prophet,  and  hath  accompliihed,  in  the  moil 
juft  and  fubiime  of  all  fcnfes,  the  whole  predic- 
tion :    Unto  us  a  cbiid  is-  born^   aiid  fo  on. 

1.  Let  us  explain  the  «rophet'o  predidion,  and 
let  us  fix  on  U^e  extraordinary  child,  to  whom  he 
gives  the  maginficent  titles  in  tJie  text.  Indeed, 
the  grandeur  of  the  titles  fufficiently  determines 
the  meaning  of  the  prophet  ;  for  to  whom,  ex- 
cept to  the  Mciïiah,  can  thefc  appellations  be- 
long, Tke  Wonderful^  The  Counsellor,  Tbe  mighty 
liud^  Tbe  Prince  of  Peace,  Tbe  everlasting  Fa- 
ibcr  ?  This  natural  fenfe  of  tbe  text,  is  fup- 
ported  by  the  authority  of  an  infpired  writer,  and 
what  is,  if  not  of  any  great  weight  in  point  of 
argument,  at  leafr,  very  lingular  as  an  hiiloriral 
fa6\,  it  is   fispporud   by  the  authority  of  an   an- 

^el. 


The  Birth  of  ChusU  t^y.? 

gtl.     The  infpired  writer,  whom   we  mean,  is  St» 
5/Iattbew,  who  manifeftly  alludes  to  the  words  oif 
the  text,  by    quotingv  thofe  vrhich    precede  them^ 
which  are   cooneiSled  with    them,    and  which   ha 
appli8»  to  th3   timer-ot'  the  Melliah  :   for,  having' 
related  the  imprifonment  of  John,  and,  in  confe- 
qucnce  of  that,  the  retiring  of  Je  fas  GWi-lft  into- 
Galilee,    he    adds,  that  the  divine    Saviour  cams: 
and  dwelt  in  Capernaum^  nubicb  Is  upon  the  sea- 
coast  J  in  the  ôorders  of  Zadulon  and  Nephthalim  .*-; 
that  it  might    be  fuljilld   which  ivas  spoken  by 
EsaiaS'  the  prophet^  sayings   The  land  of   Zabu^ 
low-^   and  the  Icnd^  of  Nephtbalhn^  by    the  ivay  of: 
the  sea^  beyond  Jordan,  Galilee  of  the  Gentiles  : 
the  people  ivbicb  sat  in  darkness  saw  great  Ughi-  i, 
£nd  to  them  which  sat  in  the  region  and  shadû=uf 
oj  death-,  light  is  sprung  up,  Mint.  iv.  12..     The 
angel,  of  whom  I  fpoke,   isGabriel  ;   who,   wherï; 
he  declared  to  Mary    the  choice  which   God  had 
made  of  her  to  be  the  mother  of  the  Mcffiah,  ap. 
plied  to  her  Son  the  charadlera,    by  which   Ifaiab 
dcfcribes  the  child  in  the  text,  and  paints  him  in 
the    fame  colours  :    Thou    shalt  conceive    in    thy. 
•ivoinby   and  bring  forth  a   son,    and  shalt  call  his- 
name  Jesus.     Ne    shall  be    great,    and  '  shall  àe 
called  the  Son  of  the  Highest  :  and  the  Lord  God 
shall  give  unio  him  the  throne  of  his  father  Da^ 
vid.     And  he  shall  reign  over  the   house    ofja^ 
cob  forever  :  and  of  his  kingdom  there  shall  be  no 
end,  Luke  i.  31,  &c. 

How  conclufive  foever  thefe  proofs  may  appear 
in  favor  of  the  fenfe  we  have  given  of  the  prophe- 
cy, they  do  not  falisfy  this  intraflable  age,  which 
is  always  ready  to  embrace  nny  thing  that  feems 
likely  to  enervate  the  truths  ai  religion.  Sin- 
cerity requires  us  to  acknowledge,  that  although 
our  prophecy  is  clear  of  itfelf,  yet  there  arifeth 
fame  obftuiity  from  the  order  in  which  it  is 
placed,  and  from  its  conne(flion  with  the  fore- 
going and    following   vw^F^.     On  each    wt  will 

endeavor 


148  The  Birth  of  Chrut. 

endeavor  to  throw  iomc  light,  and  for  this  pup- 
pofe,  we  will  go  back,  and  analyle  this,  and  the 
two  preceding  chapters. 

When  Ifaiah  delivered  this  prophecy,  Ahaz 
reigned  over  the  kingdom  ot  Judah,  and  Pckah, 
the  fon  of  Remaliah,  over  that  of  llVael.  You 
cannot  be  ignorant  of  the  mutual  jealoLify  of 
thefe  two  kingdoms.  There  is  often  more  hatred 
between  two  parties,  whofe  religion  is  almoil  the 
fame,  than  between  thofe  whole  doûrine-s  are  in 
diredl  oppofition.  E»ch  confidcrs  ttie  other  as 
near  the  trath  reach  is  jealous  left  the  other 
ihould  obtain  it  :  and,  it  is  mois-likely  that  they, 
%vho  hold  the  eilential  truths  of  religion,  fliould 
furpafs  others  fooner  than  they,  who  raze  the  very- 
foundations  of  it,  the  former  are  greater  objc(^s 
of  envy  than  the  latter.  The  kingdoms  of  Ifrael 
and  Judah  were  often  more  envenomed  againll 
one  another  than  againll  foreigners.  This  was 
the  cafe  in  the  reign  of  Ahaz,  Jving  of  Jpdnh. 
Pekah,  king  of  Ifrael,  to  the  fliame  of  the  tea 
tribes,  difcovcrcd  a  difpcfition  like  that,  which- 
hath  fotnetimes  made  the  chriftian  world  blulh  ; 
I  mean,  that  a  Prince,  who  worfnlpped  thu  true 
God,  in  order  to  deftroy  his  brethren,  made  an  aU 
liance  with  an  idolater.  Ke  allied  himfelf  to 
Rezin,  a  pagan  Prince,  who  reigned  over  that 
part  of  Syria,  which  conftliLired  the  kingdom  of 
Diimafcus.  The  kingdom  of  Judah  had  often 
yielded  to  the  forces  of  thefe  kings,  even  when 
each  had  feparately  made  war  with  it.  Now 
they  were  united  ;  and  intended  joinily  to  fit-ll 
on  th«  Jews,  and  to  overwhelm,  rather  than  10 
befiege  Jtrufaieip.  Accordingly,  the  confterna- 
tion  was  fo  great  in  the  holy  city,  that,  the 
fciipture  fays,  The  heart  of  Ahaz  was  movedy 
and  the  heart  of  his  peo^le^  as  the  trees  oj  the 
nvood  are  moved  iifith  the  wind,  Ifa.  vii.  2. 

Although   the  kingdom  of  Jadah  had  too  well 
defùfved  the   pKnllhinemr,    which  threatened  it  ; 

and 


The  Birth  of  Christ.  14^93 

and  although  a  thoufand  outrages,  with  which  the 
inhabitants  had  infulied  the  Majefty  of  heaven» 
feemed  to  guarantee  their  country  to  the  enemy, 
yet  God  came  to  their  afîîftance.  He  was 
toucked,  if  not  with  the  finccrity  of  their  re- 
pentance, at  lead  with  the  excefs  of  their  miferies* 
He  commanded  Ifaiah  to  encourage  their  hopes. 
He  even  promifec'  them,,  not  only  that  all  the 
dtiigns  of  their  enemies  fliould  be  rendered  abor- 
tive :  bwt  that  the  two  confederate  kingdoms,. 
nvithiii  three  score  and  Jive  j'fors,  ver.  8.  fhould: 
he  entirely  deftroyed.  Moreover,  he  gave  Ahas 
the  choice  of  a  fign  to  convince  himfelf  of  the 
truth  of  the  promife.  Ahaz  was  one  of  the 
luoft  wicked  kings,  that  ever  fat  on  the  throne  of 
Judah  :  fo  that  the  fcripture  could  give  no.  worfe 
character  of  this  prince,  nor  defcribc  his  perfc» 
verance  in  fin  more  fully,  than  by  faying,  that 
ht  was  altvays  Abaz."^  He  ref-ofed  to  choofe  a 
fi"gn,  not  becaufe  he  felt  one  af  thofe  noble  emo- 
tions, which  makes  a  man  fubmit  to  the  teftimo- 
ny  of  God  without  any  naore  proof  of  its  truth 
than  the  tcftimony  itfekf  ;  but  becaufe  he  was 
inclined  to  infidelity  and  ingratitude,  and,  proba- 
cy, becaufe  he  trufted  in  his  ally,  the  king  of 
AlTyria.  Notwithftanding  his  refufal,  God  gave 
him  figns,  and  informed  hint,  that  before  the 
prophet's  two  children,  one  of  whom  was  already 
born,  and  the  other  would  be  born  fhortly,  fhould 
arrive  at  years  of  difcrction,  the  two  confederate 
kings  (hould  retreat  from  Jdidca,  and  Ihoald  bc:- 
entirely  dedroyed. 

Gf  thefiri^  child,  fee  what  the  feventh  chapter 
of  the  Revelations  of  our  prophet  fays.  We  are- 
there  told,  that  this  fon  of  the  prophet  was 
named  Shearjafi^.ub,  that  is,  the  remnant  shall 
return^  ver.  3.  a  name  expreflive  of  the  meaning 

of 

*  2  Chron.  xxviii.  22.  77)13  is  that  king  Abnz.  En^, 
Verfion.  C'ettoit  toujours  le  roi  Acbaz.  Ft.  Idern  erat 
rty.  Acbaz,  Jun.  Tï^rkI. 


r^o  The  Birth  of  Chrisi. 

of  the  fign,  which  declared  that  the  Jews  fliould. 
return  from  their  rebellions,  atubthat  God  would 
return  from  his  anger,  'llie  other  child,  then  un- 
born, is  mentioned  in  the  eighth  chapter,  where 
it  is  laid  t/ic prophetess  bare  a  serif  \tr,  3. 

God  commanded  the  prophet  to  take  the  firrt 
child,  and  to  carry  him  to  that  pool,  or  pince  of 
water,  whicii  was  forined  by  the  waters  of  Siloah, 
which  fnpplied  the  ftream  known  by  the  name  of 
Tbe  fuller's  co7idiiity  Z  Kings  xviii.  1  7.  and  which 
was  at  the  foot  of  the  eaftern  wall  of  Jerufalem* 
The  prophet  was  ordered  to  produce  the  child  ia 
the  prefenee  of  all  the  affrighted  people,  and  to 
^ay  to  them,  Before  this  child  shall  knoiv  to  re- 
fuse the  e'-jily  and  choose  the  good^  tbe  land  that: 
thou-  abborrest^  shall  be  forsaken  of  both  her 
kings.,  Ifa.  vii.  16.  If  this  tranflation  be  retain- 
ed, f^e /ûjzû^  fign  ifies  the  kingdom  of  Ifrael,  and 
that  of  Syria,  from  which  the  enemy  came,  and 
which,  on  account  of  their  coming,  the  Jews  «3- 
Iiorred.  I  fhould  rather  render  the  words,  ibe^ 
land^for  ivhick  thou  art  ajraid^  and  by  tbe  land 
undcrftand  Judea,  which  was  then  in  a  very  dan- 
gerous lUtc.  But  the.  prophecy  began  to  be  ac- 
compliftied  in  both  fenfes  about  a  year  after  it 
•was  uttered.  Tiglath  Pilefer,  king  of  Affyria, 
rot  only  drew  off  the  forces  of  Resin  and  Pekah, 
from  the  fiege-of  Jerufalera,  but  he  drave  them 
aUb  from  their  own  countries.  He  fir (l  attacked 
Damafcus.-  Rezin  quitted  his  intended  conquelb, 
and  returned  to  defendhis  capital^  where  h£  was 
ilain  ;  and  all  his  people  were  carried  into  cap- 
tivity, 2  Kings  xvi.  9*.  Tiglath  Pilefer  then- 
inarched  into  the  kingdom  of  Ifrael,  and  vidlory 
marched  along  with  him  at  the  head  of  his  army, 
1  Chroji.  V.  26.  He  fubdued  the  tribes  of  Reu- 
ben and  Gad,  and  the  half  tribe  of  ManafTeh,  all 
the  inhabitants  of  Galilee,  and  the  tribe  of  Neph- 
thalim,  and  carried  them  captives  beyond  Eu- 
phrates. ;  and  fixty  five  years  after,  that  is,  lixty 

five 


The  Birth  of  ChrisL  15 1 

*'€ve  years  after  the  prediftion  of  the  total  ruin  oi:' 
the  kingdom  of  Ifrael  by  the  prophet  Amos,  tht: 
prophecy  was  fulfilled  by  SalrtianafVar,  chap.  vii. 
11.  according  to  the  language  of  our  prophet, 
within   three  score  and  Jive  years  shall  EpJwaim 

^be  èroAen,  that  it  be  not  a  people^  Ifa.  vii.  8,  Tbas 
was  this  prophecy  accomplifhed,  before  this  child 
shall  knoiv  to  refuse  the  cvilyond  choose  thegoocl^ 

'the  laMdyfor  ivhich'tho-u  art  afraid ^  shallow  for- 
saken of  doth  her  lings, 

God  determined  that  the  prophet's  iecond  child 
{hould  alfo  be  a  fign  of  the  truth  of  the  fame 
promife.  He  afTured  Ifaiah,  that  before  the 
child,  who  fliould  fhortly  be  born,,  could  learn 
to  articulate  the  firft  founds  which  children  were 
taught  to  pronounce.;  <*  before  the  child  fhould 
have  knowledge  to  cry,  My  father,  and  my  moth- 
er, the  riches  of  Damafcus,  ^nd  the  fpoil  of  Sama- 
ria," that  is,  of. the  kir^gdom  of  Ifrael,  "  flaould 
be  taken  away  by  the  king  of  Affyria,"  chap,  viii, 
.4.  This  is  the: fame  promife  confirmed  by  a 
fécond  figo,  God  ufually  giveth  more  thaH  one, 
when  be- con'urmcth  any  very  intereQing  prcdic» 
tion,  aswe  fee  in  the  hiftory  of  Pharaoh,  and  the 
patriarch    Jofeph,  Gen.  xli.  1,  Sec. 

■But,  as  all  the  mercies  that  were  beftowed  on 
the  Jews  from  the  time  of  Abraham,  wer-e  ground. 
-ed  on  the  covenant,  which  God  had  made  with 
'  that  patriarch,  their  commci  father  and  head  ; 
or  rather,  as,  fuice  the  fall,  men  could  expert 
no  favor  of  God  but  in  vii  tue  of  the  mediator  of 
the  c.^  îrch  ;  it  is  generally  to  be  obferved  in  the 
prophecies,  that  when  God  gave  thetn  a  promife, 
he  directed  their  attention  to  this  grand  objetSl. 
Eithifr  the  idea  of  the  covenant,  or  the  idea  of 
the  mediator,  was  a  feal,  which  God  put  to  his 
promifes,  and  a  bar  againft  the  unbelief  and  dif- 
t ruff  of  his  people.  Every  thing  might  be  ex- 
■ped^.ed  from  a  God,  whofç  goodn«fs  was   fo  infi*^ 


Bite 


1152  The  Birth  of  Chri^. 

T>ite,   as   to  prepare   fuch  a  noble  vié\im  far    the 
i'alvation  of   mankind.     He,  who  would    confine 
Satan  in  everlafting  chains,  and  vanquifh  fin  and 
death,    was  fully    able  t»  deliver  his  people  from 
the  incurfions  of  Re^in,  and  Pckah,  the    Ton    of 
Kemaliah.     To   remove  the  prefent  fears    of  the 
Jews,  God   reminds  them  of  the   wonders   of  his 
lore,  which  he  had  promifed    to  difplay    in   favor 
of  his  church,  in   ages  to  come  :   and  commands 
his    prophet   to   fay   to    them,   **    Ye    trembling 
'leaves   of    the    wood,    fliaken   with    every    wind, 
■peace  be  to  you  !      Ye  timorous  Jews,  ceafe  your 
fears  1   let  not  the  greatnefs  of  this  temporal  de- 
liverance, which  Î  now  promife  you,  excite  your 
doubts.'     'God  hath  favors  incomparably  greater 
-in  ftore  for  you,  they  fhall  be  your  guarantees  for 
thôfe,  which  ye  are  afraid  to  expe<5t.     Ye   are  in 
•  convenant  with  God.     Ye  hare  a  right  to  expect 
thofe  difplays  of  his  love  in  ycur  favor  which  are 
'lea ft   credible.       Remember    the     blessed    seed, 
which  he  promifed  to  your  ance^ftora,    Gen.  xxii. 
•18.     "  Behold  I   a  virgin  fhall  conceive  and   bear 
a  fon,  and  ftiall  call  his  name  Immanuel,"  Ifa.  vii, 
14.     The  fpirit  of  propliecy,    that  animates  me, 
enables  me  topenetrate  through  all  the  ages  that 
'feparate  the  prefent    moment  from  that  in  which 
the  promife    (liall  be    fulfilled.     I   fee  the   divine 
child,  my  *'  faith  is  the  fubftance  of  things  hoped 
for,  the  evidence  of  things  not  Ceen,"  Heb.  xi.  !• 
and  grounded    on   "he  word    of    that    God,    w/x? 
cbangeth  nof,  Mai.    iii.  6.  who   "    is  not  a    man, 
that  he  fliould  lie,  neither  the -fon  of  man,  that  he 
(hould  repent,"  Numb.  iii.    19.     1  dare  C^^eak  of 
ÎI  miracle,  which  will  be  wrought   eight   hundred 
years    hence,  as  if  it  had    been  wrought    to-day, 
"Unto  us  a    child    is  born,  unto  us  a  fon  is  giv- 
en, and  the  government  fliall  be  upon  his    flioui- 
der  :   and  his  name  (hall    ke  called,    Wonderful, 
Couiifcllor,  The    mighty   God,   The    everlafting 
Father,  Thé  Prince  of  Peace/' 

Tbis^ 


The  Birth  of  Christ,  153 

This,  my  brethren,  is  the  prophet's  fcope  in  the 
three  chapters  which  we  have  analyzed,  and  par- 
ticularly in  the  text.  Bur,  if  any  one  of  you  re- 
ceive our  expofition  without  any  farther  difcuf- 
flon,  he  will  difcover  more  docility  than  we  re- 
quire, and  he  would  betray  his  credulity  without 
proving  his  conviction.  Hov/  often  doth  a  com- 
mentator fubûitute  his  own  opinions  for  thofe  ot:' 
his  author,  and  by  forging,  if  I  may  be  allowed 
to  fpeak To,  a  new  text,  elude  the  difficulties  of 
that  which  he  ought  to  explain  ?  Let  us  aâ: 
more  ingenqoudy.  There  are  two  difficulties, 
which  attend  our  comment  ;  one  is  a  particular, 
the  other  is  a  general  dlfliculty. 

The  particular  diÔicuUy  is  this.  We  have 
fappofed,  that  the  myllerious  child,  fpoken  of  in 
our  text,  i-s  the  fame,  of  whom  the  prophet  ipeaks, 
when  he  fays,  '<  A  virgin  (hall  conceive  and  bear 
a  fon^  and  fliall  call  his  name  Immanuel  :"  and 
that  this  child  is  difTerent  from  that,  whom  IfaiaU 
gave  tor  a  fign  of  the  prefent  temporal  deliver- 
ance, and  of  whom  it  is  laid,  ^<  before  the  child 
fha.ll  know  to  refufe  the  evil,  and  choofe  the  good, 
the  land,  that  thou  abhorred,  fhall  be  forfaken  of 
both  her  kings."  This  fuppofition  does  not  feem 
to  agree  with  the  text  ;  read  the  following  ver- 
fcs,  which  are  taken  from  the  feventh  chapter. 
"  Behold  !  a  virgin  (hall  conceive,  and  bear  i. 
fon,  and  fliall  call  his  name  ïmmanuel  :  Butter 
and  honey  (liall  he  eat,  that  he  may  know  to  re- 
fnfe  the  evil,  and  choofe  the  good.  But  before 
the  child  fliall  know  to  refafe  the  evil,  and  choofe 
the  good,  the  land,  that  thou  abhorrefl,  fliall  be 
forfaken  of  both  her  kings,"  ver.  14,  15,  16. 
Do  not  the  laft  words,  ^<  before  the  child  fliall 
know  to  refufe  the  evil,  and  ehoofe  the  good," 
feem  to  belong  to  the  words  which  immediately 
precede  them,  "  Behold  1  a  virgin  fliall  conceive, 
and  be-ar  a  fon  ?"  Immanuel^  then,  who  was  t» 
be  born  of  a  virgin,  could  not  be  the  Meiliah  ; 
O  the 


154  '^hc  Birth  (^  Christ, 

the  prophet  mud  mean  the  child,  of  whom  he  faidj 
before  be  knoio  to  refuse  the  evil,  and  choose  the 
goady  Judea  fhall  be  delivered  from  the  two  con- 
lederate  kings. 

How  indilToUible  foever  this  objection  .may 
appear,  it  is  only  an  apparent  difficulty,  and  it 
lies  lefs  in  the  nature  ol:  the  thing,  than  in  the 
p.rrangetnent  of  the  terms.  Reprt-fent  to  yo#r- 
felves  the  prophet  executing  the  order,  which 
God  had  given  him,  as  the  third  verfc  of  the 
feventh  chapter  relates.  "  Go  forth  now  to  meet 
Ahaz,  thou,  and  Shearjafliub  thy  fon,  at  the  end 
of  the  conduit  of  the  uppei  pool."  Imagine 
Ifaiah,  in  the  prefence  of  the  Jews,  holding  h'lc 
fon  Shearjafhub  in  his  arms,  and  addreffing  them 
in  this  manner.  The  toJcen,  that  God  gives  you, 
of  your  prefent  deliverance,  that  he  is  ftill  your 
God,  and  that  ye  are  Ilill'his  covenant  people,  is 
the  renewal  of  the  promife  to  yon,  which  he  made 
to  your  anceftors  concerning  the  Mffliah  :  to 
convince  you  of  the  truth  of  what  I  afferr,  I  dif- 
charge  my  commiffion,  ♦'  Behold!  a  virgin  ;fhall 
conceive,  and  bear  a  (on,  and  ftiall  call  his  name 
Immanuel,"  that  is,  God  tvith  us.  He  fliall  be 
brought  up  like  the  children  of  men,  "  butter-and 
honey  fliall  he  eat,  until  he  know  to  refufe  tlie 
evil,  and  choofe  the  good,"  that  is,  until  he  ar- 
rive at  years  of  maturity.  In  virtue  of  this 
promife,  which  wiU  not  be  ratified  till  fome  ages 
have  expired,  behold  what  I  promife  yau  now  ; 
before  the  cbildy  not  before  the  child,  whom,  I 
faid  jnll  now,  a  virgin  should  bear  :  but  before 
the  child  in  my  arms,  (the  phrafe  may  be  rendered 
before  this  child)  before  Shearj.iihub,  whom  I 
now  lift  up,  "  (hall  know  to  refufe  the  evil,  and 
chosfe  the  good,  the  land,  for  which  ye  are  in 
trouble,  fliall  be  forfaken  of  both  bcr  kings." 
You  fee,  my  brethren,  the  child ^  whom,  the  proph- 
et faid,  a  "virgin  should  conceive,  could  not  be 
Shear] alhub»  who    was   anally    prefent  in    hisL 

father's 


The  Birth  of  Christ*  155 

father's  arms.  The  difEeulty,  therefore,  is  only- 
apparent,  and,  as  I  obfervcd  before,  it  lay  in  the 
arrangement  of  the  terms,  aim  not  in  the  nature 
of  the  thin^.  This  is  our  anfwer  to  what  I  calU 
ed  ^particular  dlfilculty. 

A.  general  objetticn  may  be  made  aga'inR  the 
mmner  in  which  we  have  explained  theie  chap- 
ters, and  in  which,  in  general,  we  explain  other 
prophecies.  Allow  me  to  flute  this  objc(^ion  in 
all  its  force,  and,,  if  1  may  ufe  the  cxprcffion,  in 
all  its  enormity,  in  order  to  fliew  you,  in  the  end^ 
all  its  lenity  and  folly. 

The  odious  objeâiion  is  this.  An  unbeliever 
would  lay,  the  ihree  chapters  of  Ifaiabj  of  which 
you  have  given  an  arbitrary  analyfis,  are  equivo- 
cal and  obicure,  like  the  greateft  part  of  thofe 
compilations,  which  compofc  the  book  of  the 
viiionary  flights  of  this  prophet,  aad  like  all  the 
"Writings,  tli^t  are  zMtà  predict ians^  propheclesy 
revelations»  Obfcurity  is  the  grand  chara<3tei* 
of  them,  even  in  the  opinion  of  thofe  who  have 
given  fublime  and  curious  explanations  of  them, 
'i^ey  are  capable  of  feveral  fenfes.  Who  hath 
received  authority  to  develope  thofe  ambiguous 
writings,  to  determine  the  true  meaning,  among; 
the  many  different  ideas,  which  they  excite  in  the 
reader,  and  to  each  of  which  the  terms  are  alike 
applicable  Î  During  feventaen  centuries,  chriT- 
tians  have  racked  their  invention  to  put  a  fenft; 
on  the  writings-of  the  prophets  advantageous  to 
chriflianity,  and  the  created  geniufea  have  en^ 
d'eavored  to  interpret  them  in  favor  of  the  chrif- 
trkn  religion.  Men,  who  have  been  famous  for 
their  erudition  and  knowledge,  have  taken  the 
rooft  laborious  pains  to  methodize  thefe  writings  '^ 
one  generation  of  great  men  hath  fucceeded  an- 
other in  the  undertaking;  is  it  aftonifliing  that 
iome  degree  of  fuccefs  hath  attended  their  labors, 
and  that  by  dint  of  indefatigable  induftry,  they 
have  rendered  thofe  prophecies  venerable,  which 

would 


xsS  The  Birth  of  ChrisL 

would  hive  been  accounted  dark  and  void  of  de- 
fign,  It'  lefs  pains  had  been  taken  to  adspt  a  de- 
lîgn,  and  lefs  violence  had  been  ufed  in  arranging 
them  in  order  ? 

This  is  the  objedion  in  all  its  force,  and,  as  I 
faid  before,  in  all  its  enormity.  Let  us  inquire 
whether  we  ciin  give  a  foiution  proporilonal  to 
thi?  boaflt^  objeûJon  of  infidelity.  Our  anfwer 
will  be  coinprifed  in  a  chain  of  propofitions,  which 
■will  guard  you  againft  tliofc,  who  find  inyftical 
meanings,  where  there  are  none,  as  -well  as  againft 
thofe,  who  difown  them,  wjiere  they  are.  To 
tbife  purpofc;  atteiid  to  th«  following  proportions. 

1.  They  were  «ot  the  men  of  our  age,  Vfho 
forged  the  book,  in  which  we  imagine,  we  dif- 
cover  foch  profound  knowledge  :  we  know  it  is 
»  book  of  the  iwofl  venerable  antiquity,  and  we 
can  deiMonCtrate  tha*  it  is  the  molt  ancient  book 
in  the  world. 

Q.  This  venerable  antiquity,  fcoweve.r,  is  not 
the  chief  ground  of  our  admiration  :  the  benevo- 
lence of  its  dcfign  ;  the  giandeur  of  its  ideas  ; 
the  fuhllmity  of  its  doftr;ncs  ;  the  holinefs  of  its 
piecepts  ;  are,  according  to  our  notion  cf  things, 
if  not  abfolute  proofe  of  its  divinity,  at  Uafl,  ad- 
Voiuageous  preforBptions  in  its  favor. 

3.  Anjong  divers  truths  which  it  contains,  «nd 
ivhich,  it  may  b?  fuppofed,  fome  fuperior  geniuf- 
e5  might  have  difcovered,  I  meet  with  fome,  the 
attainment  of  which  I  cannot  reafonably  attribute 
to  the  human  mind  :  of  this  kind  arc  fome  pre- 
didions,  obfcurc,  I  grant,  to  thofe  to  whom  they 
were  firfl  delivered,  but  rendered  very  clear  fince 
by  the  events.  Such  are  ihcfc  two  among  many- 
others.  The  people,  who  are  in  covenant  with 
God,  (hsill  be  excluded  ;  and  people,  who  are 
not,  fliall  be  admitted.  1  fee  the  accomplifhment 
of  thefe  prédirions  with  my  own  eyes,  in  the 
rejedion  of  the  Tew.Sj  and  in  the  calling  of  the 
Gentiles. 

4.  The 


The  Birth  cj  Christ.  157 

4.  Tlie  fuperior  cbaraflers,  which  fignalize 
thefe  bocks,  give  them  the  right  of  being  myfteri- 
ous  in  fome  places,  without  expoling  them  to  the 
charge  of  being  equivocal,  or  void  of  meaning  ; 
for  fome  works  have  acquired  this  right.  Whta 
an  author  hath  given  fivll  proof  of  his  capacity  in 
fome  propoiitions,  which  are  clear  and  intelligi- 
ble ;  and  when  he  exprelTeth  himfelf,  in  other 
places,  in  a  manner  obfcure,  and  hard  to  be  under- 
ftbod,  he  is  not  to  be  taxed,  *U  on  a  fudden,  with 
writing  (rrationally.  A  meaning  is  to  be  fought 
in'his  expieflions.  It  is  not  to  be  fuppofed,  that 
geniufes  cf  the  higheft  order  unk  at  once  be- 
neath the  lowed  minds.  Why  db  we  not  enter- 
tain fuch  notions  of  cur  prophets  ?  Why  is  not 
the  fame  juflice  due  to  the  extraordinary  men, 
\vhofe  rsfpc£\ab!e  writings  we  are  pleading  for  ; 
to  our  Ifiiahs,  and  Jeremiahs,  which  is  allowed 
to  Juvenal  and  Virgil  ?r  What  1  (hall  fome 
pretty  thought  of  the  latter,  fliall  fame  ingeni- 
ous (Ir.oke  of  the  former,  conciliate  more  refpedl, 
to  them,  than  the  noble  fentiments  of  God,  the 
fablime  dodlrines,  and  the  virtuous  precepts  of 
the  holy  fcriptures,  tan  obtaip  for  the  writers  of 
;he  bible  ? 

5»  We  do  not  pretend,  however,  to  abufe 
that  refpeft,  which  it  would  be  unjuft  to  with- 
hold from  our  authors.  We  do  not  pretend  to 
fay  that  every  obfcure  paffage  contains  a  myftery, 
or  that,  whenever  a  paflfage  appears  unintelligi- 
ble, we  have  a  right  to  explain  it  in  favor  of 
the  do(Slrine,  which  we  profefs  :  but  \vq  tbink  it 
right  to  confider  nny  pailage  in  thefe  books  pro- 
phetical, when   it  has  the  three  following  marks-. 

'J'he  firfl  is  îbe  imufficiencj  of  the  literal  mean* 
ing,  I  mean,  a  text  muft  be  accounted  pro- 
phetical, when  it  cannot  be  applied,  without  of-, 
fering  violence  to  the  language,  to  any  event, 
that  f^r-ll  out  when  it  was  fpoken,  or  to  any  then 
prefentj  or  paft  obje*^. 

0  2  2.  The 


158  The  Birih  of  Chut. 

2.  The  fécond  chaïaâer  of  a  prophec)',  is  an 
infallible  commentary.  I  mean,  when  an  author 
of  acknowledg-ed  authority,  gives  a  propheticai 
fenfe  to  a  paffagc  under  eonfideration,  we  ought 
to  fubmst  to  his  authority,  and  adopt  his  mean- 
ing.     ^ 

S.  The  laR  chara<?wer  is  a  perfect  covformity 
bei'a^een  the  prediction  and  the  cveni.  I  mean, 
Tvheo  prophecies,  compared  with  events,  appear 
to  have  been  completely  aceompliflied,  f^^veral 
iges  after  they  had  been  promulged,  it  canr.ot 
be  fairly  urged  that  tfce  tonformity  was  a  lucky 
hit  -:  but,  it  ought  to  be  acknowledged,  that  the 
prophecy  proceeded  tfoo:  God,  who,  being  alone 
capable  of  toreferiMg  what  would  happen,  was 
alone  capable  of  foretelling  the  event,  in  a  man- 
ner To  circumiiantial  acd  exaft.  All  thtfc  char- 
aciers  unite  in  favor  of  the  text,  which  we  have 
b-en  explaining,  {»nd  in  favo»  cf  tl>c  three  chap- 
ters, which   we  have,  in  general,  expounded. 

The  ftrft  charafltr,  that  is,  tnc  iufufiiciency  of 
a  literal  fcnfe,  agrees  with  our  replication.  Let 
aay  event,  i»  the  lime  of  Ifaiah,  be  named,  any 
child  born  thes,  or  foon  after,  of  whom  the 
prophet  could  reafonably  affirm  what  he  docs  in 
our  text,  and  in  tfee  other  verf*,  whicli  we  have 
conneded  with  it.  **  A  virgin  fhall  conceive, 
2nd  bear  a  fon,  and  Ojali  call  his  name  Immanu- 
el.  Unto  us  a  child  is  born,  unto  fis  a  fon  is  giv. 
en  ;  and  the  government  fnall  be  upon  his  fhoul- 
^er  :  and  his  narae  fliaH  be  called.  Wonderful, 
Counfcllor,  The  mighty  God,  The  everlafling 
Father,  Tire  Prince  of  Peace." 

The  fécond  diftinguiOiing  mark,  that  is,  an  in- 
fallible commentary,  agrees  with  our  explication. 
Our  evaiigelifts  and  apoftles,  thofe  venerable 
men,  whole  m»ffion  comes  recommended  to  lis  by 
the  mod  glorious  miracles,  by  the  healing  of  the 
IJck,  by  the  expulfion  of  demons,  by  the  raifing 
of  the  d*ad,  by  a  general  fubverfion  of  all  na- 
ture, 


The  Birth  of  Christ,  359 

furcj  our  evangelifts  and  apolllcs  took  thefe  pai'- 
fages  in  the  iarae  leniV,  in  which  we  take  them, 
they  underilood  them  of  the  MciTiah,  as  we  have 
obferved  before. 

The  third  charaiRcr,  that  is,  a  perfed  con- 
formity between  event  and  predidlion,  agrees  al- 
fo  with  our  explication.  We  adually  find  a 
cbiklj  fome  ages  after  the  time  of  Ifaiaio,  who 
exactly  anfwcrs  the  defcription  of  him,  of  whom 
the  prophet  fpoke.  The  features  are  fimilar,  and 
we  own  the  likenefs.  Our  Jefus  was  really  born 
of  a  virgin  /  he  was  truly  Ijnmanuelj  God  vjitb 
us  :  in  him  are  really  united,  all  the  titles,  and 
all  the  perfeiflions,  of  the  <'  Wonderful,  The 
Counfellor,  The  mighty  God,  The  eyerlafting 
Father  ;*'  as  we  will  prefently  prove.  Can  we 
help  giving  a  royfterious"  meaning  to  thefe  paf- 
fages  ?  Can  wcrefufe  to  acknowledge,  that  the 
prophet  intended  to  fpeak  of  the  Mtffiah  ?  Thefe 
are  the  fteps,  and  this  is  the  end  of  our  medita- 
tion in  favor  of  the  myftical  fenfe,  which  we 
b<4ve  afcribed  to  the  words  of  the  text. 

Would  to  God,  the  enemies  of  our  myfteries 
would  open  their  ey«»s  to  thefe  objeds,  and  ex- 
amine the  weight  of  ;hefe  arguments  1  Would 
to  God,  a  love,  I  had  almoft  faid  a  rag«,  for  in- 
dependency, for  a  fyftera  that  indulges,  and  in- 
flames the  paffions,  had  not  put  fome  people  oh 
oppofing  thefe  proofs  Î  Infidelity  and  fcepticifm 
would  have  made  lefs  havoc  among  us,  and 
would  not  have  decoyed  away  fo  many  difciples 
from  truth  and  virtue  !•'  And  would  to  God  alfo, 
ehriftlan  minifters  would  never  attempt  to  attack 
the  fyftcms  of  infidels  and  fceptics  without  the 
armour  of  demonftration  !  Would  to  God,  love 
of  the  marvellous  may  no  more  dazale  the  im- 
aginations of  thofe,  who  ought  to  be  guided  by- 
truth  alone  I  And  would  to  God,  the  fimplici- 
ty  and  the  fuperftition  of  the  people  may  never 
more  contribute  to  fopport  that  authority,  which 

fome 


1 6o  The  Birth  ùf  C/imU 

fome  ra{h  and  dogmatical  genifjf^*  ufurp  1  Trulh- 
fii9uld  not  borrow  the  arms  of  fali\hood  to  de- 
fend itfelf  ;  nor  virtwp  thoie.of  vice.  Advan- 
tages flioold  not  be  given  to  unbelievers  and 
heretics,  under  pretence  of-  cppcfing  licrefy  and 
;3nbclicf.  We  fnould  rewder  to  God  a  rcasona-r 
hîe  service^  Rom.  xii.  1.  we  Ihould  be  all  spirit" 
■ual  mens  judging  &l I  tf.ingSy  I  Cor.  ii.  \5.  accord, 
ing  to  the  exprelVian  of  the  apoflle.  But  I  add 
BO  more  on  tbis  article. 

Hitiierto  we  have  Ipoken,  if  I  may  fay  fo,  to 
reafon  only,  it  is  ti.pie  now  to  fpeak  to  confcience. 
We  have  been  preaching  by  arguments  and  fyl- 
logifms  to  the  undcrfianding,  it  is  tJn>e  now  to 
preach  by  fentiments  to  the  heart.  Religion  is 
not  made  for  ^the  mind  alone,  it  is  particularly 
addifc2id  to  the  heart,  and  to  the  heart  I  would 
prove,  thiit  our  Jefus  hath  accompliflied,  in  the 
moft  fnbliroe  of  all  fenies,  this  prophecy  in  the  • 
text  :  Unto  lis  a  child  is  boni^  unto  us  a  son  is 
given,   and  fo  G^n.      This  is  our  iecond   part. 

II.  The  terms  throne,  kingdom,  governmeniy . 
are  metaphorical,  when  they  are  appbed  to  God, 
to  bis  MtiTiAh,  to  the  end,  wliich  religion  pro- 
pole  th,  and  to  the  felicity,  which  it  procures. 
They,  are  very  impeif*:dl,  and,  if  I  mdy  venture 
to  fay  fo,  very  low  and  mean,  when  thfy  are  ufcd 
to  rcprefent  objeOs  of  fuch  infinite  grandeur. 
No,  there  is  nothing  fofRciently  noble  in  the 
charaâ.erâ  of  the  greateft  kings,  nothing  wife 
enough  in  their  maxi;fj»,  nothing  gentle  enough 
in  their  governoaent,  nothing  pompous  enough 
in  their  courts,  nothing  fufHciently  glorious  in 
their  exploite,  to  reprefent  fully  the  grandeur  and 
glory  of  our  Mefiîah. 

V/ho  is  -a  king  ?  What  is  a  throne  I  Why 
have  we  maHers  ?  Why  is  fovereign  power 
lodged  in  a  few  hands  ?  and  what  determines 
njaukind  to  lay  afide  theip  independence,  and  to 
iofe -4heir  belo%ed  liberty  ?     The  whcîe  i»iplies, 

'  my 


The  Birth  of  ChrisU-  i^i.-^ 

my  brctbren,  fomc  mortifying  troths.  We  have 
not  knowledge  fufficlent  to  guide  onrfelves,  and 
we  need  minds  wifer  thin  our  own  to  infpe^  and. 
to  direft  our  conduce.  We  are  indigent,  and' 
fuperior  beings  mnfl  fupply  our  wants.  We 
have  eneinies,  and  we  muii  have  guardians  to  proT 
te<a  us. 

Miferable  men  I  how   have  you  been  deceivcSt* 
in  your   cxpedlations    ?      Wkat   diforders    could 
anarchy  have  produced,  greater  than  thofe,  which 
have    fometimes    proceeded    from    fovereign  au^ 
thority  ?     You  fought  guides  to  direct  you  :  but 
you  have  fometimes   fallen    under  the   tuition  of 
men,  who,    far  from    being    able   to  conduct  a. 
vhole  people,  knew  not  how  to  guide  themfelves*. 
You  fought  nurfing  fathers,  to    fuccour  you    in. 
your  indigence  ;  but  you  have  fallen   fometirae*-^ 
into  the  hands  of  men,  who   had  no  other  defigna 
than  to  impoverifb  their  people,  to   enrich  them- 
felves   with  the   fubftancc,  and.  to  fatten   them* 
felyes  with   the    blood    of  their    fubjç6l&i     You 
fought  guardians  to  prote<fl   you  from  your  ene- 
mies :  but  you  hare  fometimes  found  execution^» 
ers,  who  have   ufed  yau  with  greater  barbarity,, 
than, your  moft  bloody  enemies  would  have  done. 

But,  all  thefe  melancholy  truths  apart,  fuppofe 
t»he  fine  notions,  which  we  form  .of  kings  and  of 
royalty,  of  fovereign  power,  and  of  the  hands 
that  hold  it,  were  realized  :  how  incapable  are 
king»,  and  how  inadequate  is  their  government, 
to  the  relief  of  the  innumerable  wants  of  an  im- 
mortal foul  Î  Suppofc  kings  of  the  moft  tender 
fentiments,  formidable  in  their  armies,  and  abund- 
ant in  their  trcafuries  ;  could  they  heal  the  maU- 
adies,  that  afflidl  us  here,  or  could  they  quench- 
cur  painful  third  for  felicity  hereafter  ?  Ye. 
Caifars  1  Ye  Alexanders  1  Ye  Trajans  1  Ye,, 
who  were,  fome  of  you,  like  Titus,  the  parents  of 
your  people,  and  the  delights  of  mankind,  ye 
thunderbolts  of  war  I     Ye  idols  of   the   world  I 

What 


1Ô2  'The  Birth  of  Chrhti. 

What  (loth  all  your  pomp  avail  me  ?  Of  what 
ni'?  to  me  are  all  your  peri'oiial  qualifications, 
^and  ail  your  regal  magnrf.cetîce  ?  Can  you,  Can 
they,  dilfipate  the  darknefs,  that  envelopes  me; 
calm  the  confcicnce,  that  accules  and  torments 
me;  reconcile  rue  to  God  ;  free  me  from  the 
çontroul  of  my  commanding  avid  tyrannical  paf- 
fions  ;  deliver  me  from  death;  and  difcover  ira- 
wortal  happinels  to  me  ?  Ye  earthly  gods  1  ig- 
norant and  wretched  like  me  ;  objeAs  like  me  of 
the  difpleafure  of  God  ;  like  mc,  expofed  to  the 
miferies  of  life  ;  flaves  to  ycnir  pafilons  like  me  ; 
condemned  like  me  to  that  frightful  night  in 
ivhich  death  involveth  all  mankind  ;  ye  can  re- 
lieve neither  your  ownmiferies  nor  mine  I 

Shevr  me  a  government,  that  fupplies  tlielc 
irants  î  that  is  the  empire  I  feek.  Shew  me  a 
iing,  who  will  condudl  me  to  the  felicity,  to 
■which  I  afpire  :  fuch  a  king  I  Vcng  to  obey.  My 
bret.hren,  this  empire  we  are  preaching  to  you  : 
Such  a  king  is  the  king  Mefliah.  Unto  us  a 
child  is  borr.y  unto  us  a  son  is  given^  the  govern^ 
ment  shall  be  vpon  his  shoulder  ;  and  his-name 
shall  be  called^  wonderful,  becaufe  he  is  the 
fubftance  and  the  centre  of  all  the  wandroua 
works  of  God». 

But  purify  your  imaginations,  and  do  not  al- 
ways judge  of  man  as  if  he  were  a  being  defti- 
tute  of  reafdn  and  intelligence. .  V/Iien  we  fpe^ik 
of  man,  do  not  conceiveof  a  being  of  this  prefent 
world  only  ;.  a  creature  placed  for  n  few  days  in 
human  focitry,  wanting  nothing  but  food  and 
raiment,  and  the  comforts  of  a  temporal  life  :  but 
attend  to  your  own  hearts.  In  the  fad  circuiT;- 
ftances,  into  which  fin  hath  brought  you,  whfft 
are  your  moft  important  w^nis  ?  We  have  al- 
ready infinuated  them.  .  Yotj  need  knowledge-  ; 
you  need"  reconciliation  with  Gdd  ;  you  want 
fupport  through  all  the  mifencs  of  life  ;  and  you 
ntcd     confol'Rti.-'n    againiT:     tl^e    fe^r     of  death. 

WeH  I 


Thc'Birih  of  Christ.  163 

'Well  Î  all  thefe  wants  the  king  Meffiah  fupplieso 
'I  am  going  to  prove  it,  but  I  conjure  you,  at  the 
fame  time,  not  only  to  believe,  but  to  ae>..  I 
would,  by  publifhing  the  dellgn  of  the  Saviour's  ' 
iflcaraation,  engage  you  to  concur  in  it.  By  ck- 
plaining  to  you  the  nature  of  his  empire,  I  would 
fain  teach  you  the  duties  of  his  fubjedls.  By 
celebrating  the  glcry  of  the  king  Meff.ah,  I  long;^ 
to  fee  itdlfplayed  among  you  in  all  its  fplendi-d. 
magnificence. 

You  want  Artow/ec^g-e.  You  will  find  it  in  the 
king  Melîiah.  He  is  the  Coursellor.  He  is 
the  true  light,  ivhicb  lightetb  every  man  that 
cometb  into  the  ivorld,  John  i.  9.  In  bim  are 
hid.  all  the  treasures  of  vjisdom. and  kiioiu ledge, 
Gal*  ii.Sé  T/ic  Spirit  of  tbe  Lord  God  is  upon 
bim^  the  Lord  hatb  appointed  bim  to  preach  good 
tidings  unto  tbe  »î£?e.A,  lia*  Ixi.  1.  The  Spirit 
of  the  Lord  refis  upon  him,  the  spirit  of  ivisdom 
and  understanding,  tbe  spirit  of  counsel  end 
might,  the  spirit  of  knowledge,  and  of  tbe  fear  of 
the  Lorci,  chap,  xi. -2.  He  hath  the  tongue  of  the 
learned,  ch3ip,  1,  4.  and  the  wifdoiu  of  the  wife. 
A  fie  him  to  explain  to  you  the  grand  appearances 
of  nature,  which  exercife  the  fpeculations  of  the 
mof>.  tranfcendent  geniufes,  and  abforb  their  de- 
feâ-ive  reaibn,  and  all  his  anfwers  will  difcover 
the  mofl:  profound  and  perfeft  knowledge  of  them. 
Inquire  of  him  whence  all  the  vifible  creation 
came,  the  luminaries  of  iieaven,  ajid  the  magnifi- 
cent treafures  of  the  earth.  Aik  him  to  reveal 
to  you  the  Gad,  luho  bideth  himself  Ifa.  xlv.  15. 
Alk  him  the  caufe  of  thofe  endlefs  diforders, 
which  mix  with  that  profafion  of  wifdom,  which 
appear»  in  the  world.  Afk  him  whence  the 
bleiîings  come,  which  we  enjoy,  and  whence  the- 
calamities,  that  aiflia  us.  Afk  hira  what  is  the 
origin,  the  nature,  the  defliny,  the  end  of  man. 
Of  all  thefe  articles  the  GouNSfiLLOR  will  tell 
yaa  more^  than  PUto,  aii4  SocrRtea,  and  all  the 

phVlofophcrs, 


.j^4  ^^^^  ^^^'^  ^f  G^^ii^' 

-|Shilorophers,  who  only  felt  after   the  truth,  Afts 
xvii.  27.  who    themfelves  dilcovered,   and  taught 
•  others  to  fee,  only  a  few  rays  of  light  darkened 
with  prejudices  and  errors. 

This  IS  the  ■  firfl  idea  of  the  king  Meffiah  ; 
'  this  is  the  firfl:  four  ce  of  the  duties  of  his  fi>bje£\s, 
and  of  the  difpofitions,  with  which  they  ought 
to  celebrate  his  nativity,  and  with  which  alone 
they  can  celebrate  it  in  a  proper  manner.  To 
celebrate  properly  .the  feflival  of  his  nativity, 
trutli  mufl  be  edeemed  ;  we  mull  be  detirous  of 
attaining  knowledge  ;  we  muft  come  from  the 
ends  of  the  earth,  like  the  wifeiwen  of  the  eafl:, 
to  contemplate  the  miracles,  which  the  Mefliah 
difplays  in  the  new  world  ;  like  Mary,  we  muft 
be  all  attention  to  receive  the  do6lrine,  that  pro- 
ceeds from  his  facred  mouth  ;  like  the  multi- 
tude, we  muft  follow  him  into  deferts  and  moun- 
tains, to  hear  his  admirable  fermons.  This  is 
the  firftduty,  which  the  feftival,  that  you  are  to 
celebrate  next  Wednefday,  demands.  Prepare 
yourffelves  to  keep  it  in  this  manner. 

You  want  reconciliation  with  God,  and  this  is 
the  grand  work  of  the  king  MelTiah.  He  is  the 
Prince  of  Peace.  He  terminates  tlie  fatal 
war,  which  fm  hath  kindled  between  God  and 
youj  by  obtaining  the  pardon  of  your  paft  fins, 
and  by  enabling  you  to  avoid  the  commiiïion  of 
fin  for  the  future.  He  obtains  the  pardon  of 
pad  Tm^  for  you.  How  caa  a  merciful  God  re- 
fifl  the  ardent  prayers,  which  the  Rcdeeincr  of 
mankind  addrelTeth  to  him  in  behalf  of  thofe  poor 
finners,  for  whom  he  facrificed  hi'mfelf  ?  How 
can  a  merciful  God  refift  the  plea  of  the  blood 
of  his  Son,  which  cries  for  mercy  for  the  roifera- 
ble  pofterity  of  Adam?  As  the  king  Méfliah 
reconciles  you  to  God,  by  obtaining  the  pardon 
of  your  paft  fin,  fo  he  reconciles  you,  by  procur- 
ing ftrength  to  enable  you  to  avoid  it  for  time 
tD  comce     Having  calmed  thofe  pafllons  which 

prcve4ited 


The  Birth  of  Chmt,  1 65 

prevented  your  knowing"  whit  was  right,  and  your 
loving  what  was  lovely,  he  gave  you  laws  oï 
equity  and  love.  How  can  you  refi ft,  after  you 
have  known  him,  the  motives,  on  which  his  law* 
are  founded  ?  Every  difficulty  difappearsi^  when 
examples  fo  alluring  are  leen,  and  when  you  are 
permitted,  under  your  moft  difcouraging  wcak- 
neffes,  to  approach  the  treafures  of  grace,  whic^ 
he  hath  opened  to  you,  and  to  derive  prurity  fro^ 
its  fource.  Doth  gratitude  know  any  difHcuI- 
ties  ?  Is  not  every  aé\  of  obedience  eafy  to  a 
mind  animated  by  a  love  as  vehement  as  that, 
yhicli  cannot  but  be  felt  for  a  Saviour,  who  in 
tiVe  tendered  mariner  hath  loved  iis  ? 

This  is  the  fécond,  idea  of  the  king  Meiïiàh, 
this  is  the  fécond  fource  of  the  duties  of  his  fub- 
je6\s,  and  of  the  difpo^tions  effential  to  a  worthy 
-celebration  of  the  feàfl  of  his  nativity.  Come- 
next  Wednefday  deeply  fenfible  of  the  danger  of 
haying  that  God  for  your. enemy,  who  holds  your 
deftiny  in  his  mighty  hands,  and  v/hofe  commands 
all  creatures  obey.  Come  with  an  eager  defire 
<3f  reconciliation  to  him'.  Come  and  hear  the 
vo'^e  of  the  Prince  of  Peace^  who  publifheth 
peace  ;  peace  to  him  that  is  near^  and  to  him  tba^ 
is  Jar  off^  Ifa.  Ivii.  19.  While  Mofes  rwediat^ 
ai  covenant  between  Go^  and  the  Ifraelites,  ori 
the  top  of  the  "holy  mountain,"  let  hot  Ifrael  vio- 
late the  capital  article  at  the  fooY  of  ,'it.  '  While 
Jefus  Chrilt  i^  defcending  to  recrtncile  you  xS 
(^od,  do  not* declare  war  againfl  God  ;  infult  him 
not  by  voluhtary  rebellions,  after  he  hath  volun- 
tarily delivered:  ^ou  from  the  flavery  of  fin,  un- 
der which  you  groaned^  Return  not  again  to 
thofe  fins,  which  separattâbclivecnyoûandjQur 
God)  Ifa.  lix.  2.  aud  which  would  do  it  again,' 
though  Jefus  fliould  become  incarnate  again, 
and  fhould  offer  himfëlf  every  day  to  expiate  them^. 

You  need  siippof-i  under  the    calamities  of  this 
-/(/<;,  and  thfs  alio  you  wilTfind  m  the  king    Mef-' 
P  fiah. 


â€e  The  ^irik  ^of  £hrhU 

fiab.  He  is  the  migh.ty  God,  and  he  will  teli 
yop,  while  you  are  fuffering  the  hcavitft  temporal 
pffliûions,  akhough  "  the  mountains  fliall  depart, 
and  the  hilia  be  removed, jet  my  kindncfs  /hall 
not  depart  from  you,  neither  fh-all  the  covenant 
pf  ray  peace, be  removed,"  chap.  liv..  10»  Under 
yourjevereft  tribulaiions,  he  -will  afTure  you,  that 

dU  things  work  .t^g&ther  for  good  to  tbem  that 
Ip've  Godyliçm,  viii.  2B.  He  will  teach  you  to 
fliout  viiSiory    under  an   apparent    defeat,  and  to 

^ng  this  triumphant  fong,  "  Thanks  be  onto 
God,  who  always  caufeth  us  to  triumph  in  Chrift,'* 
,2  Cor.  ii.  14.  *'  In,  all , thefe  things  we  are 
more  than  conquerors,  through,  bjov  that  lovei 
ij,s,"%Roin.  viii.  37. 

tThis  is  the  third  idea  of  the  king  Mefllah,  and 
this  is    the  .third  fourcc  of  the   duties  of  his  fub- 

-jedlsyand  of  the  difpodtions  which  are  neceffary 
to  the  worthily  celebrating  of  the  feflival  of  his 
nitivity.  Fall  in,  chriQian"  foul  1  with  the  de* 
fign  of  thy  Saviour,  who,  by  elevating  thy  .•^- 
lires  above  the,  world,  .would  elevate  thee  above 
all  the  cataftrophes  of  it.  Come,'  behold.  MeiTiah, 
the  king,  lodging  in  a  ftable,MandJying  in  a  man- 
ger: he«r  him  faying  to  his  difciples,  "  The 
foxes  have  holejs,and  the  birdsofthe  air  have  Beds  ; 
but  the  fon  of  man  hath  not  where  to  lay  his 
head,"  Matt.  viii.;20.  Learn  from  this  example 
rot  to  place    thy   happinefs  in    the    poITelTion  o"f 

earthly  good.  Die  to  the  world,  die  to  its  pleaf- 
ures,  .die  to  its  pomps.  Afpire  after  other  ends, 
and  nobler  joys,  than  thofe  of  the  children  of 
this  world,  and  then  worldly  vicifTitudes  cannot 
(liske  thy  blils. 

Finally,  .You  have  need  of  one  to- comfort  you 
under  the  fears  of  deaths  by  opening  the  gates 
of  eternal  felicity  to  you,  and  by  fatiating  your 
avidity  of  exifterce  and  elevation.  This  confo- 
lation  the  king  Mefliah  affords.  He  is  the  ever- 
fasting  Jet  her  f  the    Father   of  eternitt, 


The  Birth  of  Christl  16 f 

his  throne  shall  Be  built  up  for  all  generations, 
'?h\,  Ixxxix.  4.  he  hath  received  ''  domfnion  and 
glory  and  a  krngdom,  that  airpeoplcy  nationt,  and 
languages,  Htould  ferve  him  ;  his  dominia»  is  an 
cverlafting  dominion^  whick  (liall  not  pafsaway-^ 
and  his  kingdom  that  which  (hall  not  be  dcflroy- 
cd,"  Dan.  vir.  14.  and  his  fabjexSls  muflr  reign 
eternally  withhim.  When  thou,  chriltian  Î  art 
confined  to  thy  dyrng  bed,  he  will- approach  thee' 
•^'ith  all  the  attradivc  charms  of  his  power  ani 
grace  :  he  will  fay  to  thee,  Fear  notf  thou  wvnn 
Jdcob^  lia.  xli.  14.  he  will  whifper  thefe  com- 
Idrtable  words  in  thine  ear,  "  "When  thou  pafftd 
through  the  waters,  I  will  be'  with  thee  :  and 
when  through  the  rivers,  they  fhall  not  overflow 
thee  :  when  thou  walkeft  through  the  fire,  thou 
ih'alt  nor  be  bUrmcd  ;  neither  fhall  the  ftatne 
kindlt  upon  thee,*' chapi  xliii.  2.  He  will- open 
heaven  to  thee,  as  he  opened  it  to  Su  Stephen  ; 
and  he  will  fay  to  thee,  as  he  faid  to  the  convert- 
ed thief,  "  To-day  fhalt  thoa  be  with- nic  in  p»r- 
kdife,"  Uuke  xxiii.  43. 

This  is  the  fourth  idea  of  the  king  Mtfiiah, 
and  this  is  the  fourth  fource  of  the  duti:  s  of  his 
fcrbjfdls.  How  glorious  is  the  feftival  of  hrs 
nativity  i  What  gr^ndf  noble,  and  fublime  fenti- 
fiTcnis  doth  it  require  of  us  1  The  fubje6\s  of  the 
l.ingMefiiah,  the  children  of  the  everlasting  Fa- 
ther^ fliould  confider  the-  economy  of  time  in  its 
true  point  of  view,  they  fi-iûuld-compare  *'  things 
which  are  feen,  which  are  temporal,  luitb  tbuigs 
w-hieh  are  not  feen,  which  are  eternal,"  2  Cor, 
iv.  18.  They  fliould  fix  their  attention  upon 
the  eternity,  fill  their  imaginations  with  the  glo- 
ryj  of  the  world  to  come,  and  learn,  by  juft  no- 
tions of  immortality,  to  eftimate  the  prefent  life  ; 
the  <*  declining  fliadow  ;  the  withering  grafs  ; 
the  fading  flower  ;  .the  dream,  that  flyeth  away  ; 
t'je  vapour,  that  vaniflieth,"  and  is  irrecoverably 
loR,  Pfal.  cii.  11.'  Ifa,  xL  7.  Job  xx.  8.  and 
James  iv.  14;  Thefe, 


i68  Tht  Birth  of  Christ. 

Thefe,  my  brethren,  are  the  chara<\ers  of  yonr 
king  Meiïiah,  thefe  ate  the  charatlers  of  the  di- 
vine child,  whofe  birth  you  are  to  celebrate  next 
Wednefday,  and  in  thefe  ways  only  can  you 
celebrate  it  as  it  deferves.  We  conjure  yoi)  by 
that  adorable  goodnefs,  which  we  arc  going  to 
îeftify  to  you  again  ;  we  conjure  you  by  that 
tbronç  of  grace,  which  God  is  about  to  afctnd 
again  ;  we  conjare  you  by  thofe  ineffable  mer- 
cies, which  our  imagination?  cannot  fully  com- 
prehend, which  our  noinds  cannot  fumcicntly  ad- 
mire, nor  all  the  emotions  of  our  hearts  fuffi- 
«lentiy  efteero  ;  we  conjure  you  to  look  at,  and, 
if  you  will  pardon  the  expreiïioB,  to  lofe  your- 
felves  in  thefe  grand  objedl»  ;  we  conjure  you 
not  to  turn  cur  folemn  fellivah,  and  cur  devotiou- 
a}  days,  into  fcafons  of  gaming,  irréligion,  and 
difliparion.  Let  us  fubmit  ourfelves  to  the  king 
Meffiah  ;  let  us  engage  ourfelves  to  his  govern- 
f»ent  J  let  his  dominion  be  the  ground  of  all  cur 

joy- 

"  O  moû  mighty  I  thou  art  fairer  than  the 
ciiild^en' 0Î  men.  "Grace  is  poured  into  thy  lips, 
therefore  God  hath  b'.cffed  thee  for  ever  I"  Pfal. 
xlv.  0.  3.  *'  The  Lord  Oîall  fend  the  rod  of  tUy 
ftrcDgth  out  of  Zlon,"  faying,  "  ilule  thou  in  the 
iîîidft  of  thine  enemies  !  Thy  people  frail  be 
willing  in  the  day,  when  thou  {halt  «ffemblé  thy 
hofl  in  holy  pomp  i"*  Yea,  reign  over  thine  eno 

Dîies, 

*  We  retain  the  reading  of  the  French  Bible  here  ; 
bedaufe  our  atrthbrparan^fafes  the  pafla^e  after  that 
verHon.  7oni  péàplê  fera  ■  Un  peuple  plein  de  Jtnnc 
vouloir  au  jaur  qu;:tu  asiembleraa'  ton  armce  en  sa  eainte 
pompe.  Tby  people  Ct\-2^\  be  <uilling  in  the  day  (.iftbypcv- 
er,  m  the  beauties  of  ho/incss,  &c.  The  paflTage  ieems 
to  be  a  prophetical  aUulion  toone  of  thofe  folemn  fefti- 
vals,  in  which  conquerors,  and  their  arraies,  on  their 
return  frombattle,  offered  a  part  of  their  fpoil,  which 
they  had  taken  from,  their  enemies,  to  God,  from 
whom  the  vidory  came.  Thefe ^<re-nu/7/ offerings  were 
carried  ia  grand  proceiSon.     They  wer«  hoij,  becauCc 


The  Birth  of  Christ.  i6g 

ml€s,  great  lying  1  bow  their  rebellious  wills  ; 
prevent  their  fatal  counfels  ;  defeat  all  their 
bloody  dcfigns  I  Reign  alio  over  thy  friends, 
reign  over  us  !  Make  us  a  luilling  people  !  Af- 
femble  all  this  congregation,  when  thou  ftiaît 
come  with  tby  host  in  holy  pomp  I  Let  not  the 
flying  of  the  clouds,  which  will  ferve  thee  for  a 
triumphal  chariot  ;  let  not  the  pomp  of  the  holy 
ang-els  in  thy  train,  when  thou  fivalt  come  Xo  Judge '^ 
the  ivorld  in  righteousness.^  A£*s  >;vii.  31.  let  not 
ihefe  objeds  affright  and  terrify  our  fouls  :  let 
ihem  charm  and  tranfport  us  ;  and,  inflead  ot' 
dreading  thine  approach,  let  us  h^tflen  it  by  oor 
prayers  and  fighs  1  Come^  Lord  JesuSy  coma. 
çuickly^  Amen.  To  God  be  honor  and  glûry, 
for  ever  and  ever. — Amen.  . 

agreeable  to  the  econom>~,  i:nder  which  the  Jews  lived, 
and  they  were  beautifully  \ïo\y ,  becaiife  ihey  were  not 
exaéled,  but  proceeded  from  xh.&  voluntary  ^xdi.xXxw(ift  of 
the  armyu  In  Jarge  -conquefts,  the  troop»  and  the  of- 
ferings were  out  o£  number,  like  the  drops  of  luch  a 
fii'owerof  Jew,  as  \.\\t  niorning  brov^kt Jortb  in  thayoutb^ 
or  spring  o£  iht  )car.  See  2  Ciiron.  xiv.  13,  14,  1  «7. 
and  XV.  10,  11,  i2j  13,  14;,' 15.  We  have  ventured 
this  hint  on  a  p;iflage,  which  fccms  not  ve:  .v  tl.'ai  irv 
cur  verfion.. 


SLRMON 


SERMON    VIL 

THE  RESURRECTION  OF  JESUS  CHRIST. 

PsALM  cxviii.   15,  16. 

TJ^e  voice  of  rejoicing  and  salvation  is  in  the 
tabernacles  of  the  righteous  ;  the  right  hand 
of  the  Lord  doth  valiantly.  The  rigfit  hand 
of  the  Lord  is  exalted  :  the  rigiit  hand  of  the 
Lord  doth  valiantly» 

l^.OMAN  !  why  nveepest  thou  ?  John 
»x.  13,  15e  was  the  languagt  of  two  angels  and 
of  Jefus  Chrift  to  Mary.  The  Lord  h^d  been 
erucifiedt  The  infant  church  was  in  mourning. 
The  enemies  of  chriftip»nity  were  triumphing, 
The  faith  of  the  difciples  was  tottering.  Mary- 
bad  fet  out  before  dawn  of  daj^,  to  give  vent  to 
her  grief,  to  bathe  the,  tgnil).  of  her  Mailer  w\ih 
tears,  and  to  render  iVineral  honors  to  him.  In 
ihefe  fad  circumftahce»,  tèie  heavena  opened,  two 
angels  clothed  In  white  garments  defcended,  and 
placed  themfelves  on  the  tomb,  that  inclofed  the 
«Jear  depofitum  of  the  love  of  God  to  the  church. 
At  the  fixed  moment,  they  rolled  away  the  ftone, 
and  Jefus  Chrift  arefe  from  the  grave  loaden  with 
the  fpoils  of  death.  Hither  Mary  comes  to  fee 
the  dead  body,  the  poor  remain  of  him,  who  should 
have  redeemed  Israel^  Luke  xxiv.  31.  and  find- 
ing the  tomb  empty,  abandons  her  whole  foul  to 
grief,  and  burfti;  into  floods  of  tears.  The  heav- 
enly mtfTengers  dire^Jy  addrefs  thtfe  comfortable 
"words  to  her,  Woman  !  Why  iveepest  thou  ? 
Scarcely  had  ûic  told  them  the  cauie  of  her  griek',^^ 
before  Jefus  puts  the  fame  queftion  to  her, 
Woman  !  Wry  nveepest  thou  ?  And  to  this  lan- 
guage, which  infinuatfth  into  htr  heart,  and  ex- 
cite ih, 


The  Résurrection  of  Jesus  Chrisi,     171 

clteth,  if  I  may  venture  to  fpeak  fo,  from  the 
bottom  of  her  foul  every  emotion  of  tender- 
nefs  and  love,  of  whi;;h  fhe  is  capable,  he  adds, 
Mary  ! 

This  is  the  raagnificent,  this  is  the  affcAing 
objeft,  on  which  the  eyes  of  all  the  church  are 
this  day  fixed.  This  is  the  comfortable  language 
which  heaven  to-day  proclaims.  For  feveral 
weeks  paft  you  have  been  in  tears.  Your  churches 
have  been  in  mowrning.  Your  eyes  have  beheld 
only  fad  and  melancholy  obje<5ls.  On  the  one 
band,  you  have  been  examining  your  conlciencts, 
and  your  minds  have  been  overwhelmed  with  the 
Ibrrowful  remembrance  of  broken  refolutions, 
violated  vows,  and  fruitlefs  communions.  On 
the  other,  you  have  feen  Jefus,  betrayed  by  one 
difciple,  denied  by  another,  fo)faken  by  all  ;  Je- 
fus, delivered  by  priefls  to  fecular  powers,  and 
condemned  by  his  judges  to  die  ;  Jefos,  sweat" 
ing^  as  it  were,  great  drops  of  blood,  Luke  xxii. 
44.  praying  in  Gethfemanc  :  0  my  Father  /  if 
it  be  possible,  let  this  cup  pass  from  me.  Matt, 
xxvi.  39,  and  crying  on  Mount  Lalyary,  My 
God  !  My  God  !  Why  bast  thou  forsaken  me  ? 
chap,  xxvii.  46.  Jefus,  lying  in  the  grave  :  thcfe 
have  been  the  meurnful  objeds  of  your  late  con- 
templation. At  the  hearing  of  this  tragical  hif- 
tory,  confcience  trembles  ;  and  the  whole  church, 
on  feeing  the  Saviour  intorabed,  weeps  as  if  fal- 
vation  were  burled  with  him.  But  take  courage, 
thou  tremulous  confcience  Î  Dry  up  thy  tears, 
thou  church  of  Jefus  Chrift  1  "  Loofe  thyfelf 
from  the  bands  of  thy  reck,  O  captivc^daughter 
of  SionJ."  Ifa.  Hi.  2.  Come,  my  brethren,  ap- 
proach the  tomb  of  your  Redeemer,  no  more  to 
lament  his  death,  no  more  to  embalm  his  facred 
body,  which  hath  not  been  suffered  to  see  cor^ 
ruption,  A<Sis  ii.  2.7.  but  to  fliout  for  joy  at  his 
rcfurre<^ion.  To  this  the  prophet  invitetb  us  in 
the  text  :  J<  The    toicc  of  rejoicing  and    faU 

vation 


i72     The  Résurrection  of  Jesus  Ckrht. 

vation  is  in  the  tabernacles  cf  the  righteous  : 
the  right  hand  of  the  Lord  is  ex;'.ltcd  ;  the  right 
hand  of  the  Lord  doth  valiainly." 

1  have  not  qucftioned,  whether  the  pfalin  io 
general,  and  the  text  in  particular,  regard  the 
Melïîah.  The  ancient  Jewj  underftoud  the 
pCaln»  of  him  ;  and  therefore  made  ufe  of  it 
formerly  araon^  their  prayers  for  his  advent. 
We  agree  with  the  Jc-ws, .  and  on  this,  article, 
■we  think  they  are  fafer  guides  than  many,  chrif. 
tians.  The  whole  pfalin  agrees  with  Jefus 
Chrift,  and  is  applicable  to  him  as  well  as  to  Da- 
vid, particularly  the  famous  words  that  follow. 
the  text  :  *'  Tiie  (lone  which  the  builders  refui- 
cd,  is  become  the  bead-idone  of  the  corner.  This 
i?  the  L,ord',sdoingj  i:.is  niarvelIoiis4D  our  eyes/' 
Thefe  words  are  fo  unanimouây  appUexi  .to  th€ 
exaltation,  and  particularly  to  the  rerurrcftion,  of- 
Jefus  Chrift,  in  the  book?  of  the  New  Teftamcnt, 
m  the  gofpel  of  St.  Matthew,  in  tbat  of  St, 
ÎJark,  in  that  of  St.  Luke,  in  the  book  of  Ac\s, 
in  the  epiftle  to  the  Romans,  and  in. that  to  the 
Ephcfians,  that  it,  feeros  needle fe,  met hinky,  .o 
attempt,  to  prove  a  mactcrfo  fully  decided. 

The  prefent  folemnity  demands  rtiicdlions  of 
another  kindj  and  we  will  endeavour  to  fncw 
ycu, 

L  The  truth  of  the  event  of  which  the  text 
fpeakô  ;  The  right  hand  of  ibe  Lord  is  exalted  »v 
the  right  band  of  th^e  Lord  doth  'i^aliantlj, 
.  II,  We  will  juflify  the  joyful  acclamations, 
which  are  occnGoned  by  it  ;  Tht'<  •voice  of  rejaic^ 
/rtf  and  sahation  is  in  the  tabernacles  cf  the 
righteous» 

I.  Let  us  examine  the  evidences  of  the  truth 
of  the  refurreûion  of  Jefus  Chrift.  Infidelity 
denies  it,  and  what  perhaps  may  be  no  lefs  in- 
jurious to  chriftianity,  fuperftition  pretends  to 
cftablifh  it  on  ialfehootl  and  abfuidity.  A  cer- 
tain 


The  Resurrection  of  Jesus  Chrht.     175 

lain  traveller*  pretends,  that  the  inhabitants  of 
the  holy  land  ftill  fliew  travellers  the  stone  ivbicb 
the  builders  refused^  and  which  became  the  head- 
stone of  the  corner.  In  order  to  guard  you  againll 
infidelity,  we  will  urge  the  arguments,  which 
prove  the  truth  of  the  refurreftion  of  Jefus 
Chrift  :  but  in  order  to  prevent  fuperftition,  we 
will  attribute  to  each  argument  no  mere  evi- 
dence than  what  actually  belongs  to  it. 

In  proof  of  t4ie  refarredion  of  Jefus  Chrrft,- 
we  have,  1.  Prei'umption.  2.  Proofs.  3.  Dem- 
oilflrations.  The  circumllances  of  his  burial  af- 
ford fonie  prefumptions  ;  the  teftimonies  of  the 
apoflles  furnifti  us  with  fome  arguments  ;  and 
the  defcent  of  the  holy  Spirit  on  the  church  fur- 
nifhcth  us  with  demonQrations. 

1.  From  the  circumftances  of  the  burial  of 
Jefus  Chrtft,  I  derive  îomc  presumptions  in  favor 
of  the  doôrine  of  the  refurreclion.  Jefos  Chrifl: 
died.  This  is  an  inconteftible  principle.  Gur 
enemies,  far  from  pretending  to  queftion  thjis, 
charge  it  on  chriftianity  as  a  reproach. 

The  tomb  of  Jefus  Chrift  was  found  empty  a 
few  days  after  his  death.  This  is  another  incon- 
teftible  principle.  For  if  the  enemies  of  chrif- 
tianity had  retained  his  body  in  their  poffeiTion, 
they  would  certainly  have  produced  it  for  the 
ruin  of  the  report  of  his  refurredion.  Hence 
arifeth  a  prefumption  that  Jefus  Chrift  rofe  f"roci 
the  dead. 

If  the  body  of  Jefus  Chrift  were  not  raifed 
from  the  dead,  it  muft  have  been  ftolen  away. 
But  this  theft  is  incredible.  Who  committed  it  ? 
The  enemiespf  Jefus  Chtift  ?  Would  they  have. 
contributed  to  bis  glory,  by  countenancing  a  re- 
port of  his  refurredion  ?     Would   his   difciples  ? 

It 

*  Peter  Belon.  Obferv.  lib.  ii.  cap.  83.  Belon  was 
a  countryman  of  our  author's,  a  phyfician  of  Le  Mans, 
who  travelled  from  1546  to  1549.  His  travels  were 
publiHied  1555. 


174     T^^^  Resurrection  of  J  jf^sui  Cfhriif^ 

ît  is  probable,  they  woold'  not  :   and,  it  is  next" 
to  certain,    they    coiUd    not.  .    How   could    they^-^^ 
Kave    undertaken    to   remove  the    body  ?     Frair' 
and  timoroos  creattires,  people,  who  fled  as  foon  ' 
s  s  they  fa  w  him  taken  into  cuftody  ;  even  Fetcr, 
the  mofl  courageou-s,  trembled  at  the  voice    of  a 
fervant  girl,  and  three  trmes  denied  that  hé  khew 
him  ;   people  of. this  cirarafter,  -wduîd  they    hâve 
dared  to   refifl    the    authority  of  the  governor  ?' 
Would  they  have  undertaken  tooppcfe  the    de- 
termination of  the  Sanhedrim,  to  force  a   guard ^ 
and. to  elude,  ok  to  overcorre,  foldiers  armed  and 
aware  of  danger  r  '    If  Jefds  Gbrift.wcre  not  rifen 
again,  (I  fpeak  tha   Ianguag.e  of  unbelievers)  he 
had  deceived  his  difciples   with  vain  hopes  of  his 
xefurred^ion.     How   came    tht    difciples   not  to 
difcover  the  impofture  ?  Would  they  have  hazard-, 
ed  themfelves,  by.  undertaking  an   eniérprize  fo  • 
jierilous,  in  favor  of   a  man,  who  had  fo.  cruelly 
impofed  on  their  credulity  ? 

But  were  we.  to -grant  that  they  formed^ the 
ccfign  of  removing  the  body,  how  could  they 
have  executed  it  ?  How  could  foliiers,  armed,  . 
and  on  guard,  fufifôr  then)fe{ves  to  be  ovcr- 
reachedby  a  few  timorous  people  ?  "Either," 
fays  Sr.  Augudine,*-  <'  they  were  afleep,  6r 
awake  :  îf  they  were  awake,  why  (hould  ihey 
ntffer  the  body  to  be  taken  away  ?  If  alleep, 
bow  could  they  know  that  the  difciplec  tookù 
away  ?  How  dare  they  then  depofe  that  it  was 
flclen  ?"  All  thefe,  however,  are  only  pre fump-. 
tions. . 

The  teQimony  of  the  apoftles  furnifheth  us  . 
•with  arguments^  and  there  are  eiglx-  coniiders»- 
tions,  which  gi^-e  their  evidence  fiiflicient  weight, 
Kemark  the  nature^  and  ihe  number^  oï  the  wif- 
relTes  :  The  fact  they  avow,  and  the  agree- 
nent  of  their  evidence  :  I'hf  iribunals^  before 
which  tbsy   flood,  and   xht'iime^  in  which    they 

wade 
*  ScrWc.  ii.  ju  Pul.  xxxvi. 


TÂe  ^Rcmrrectkn  of  Jesus  Chrkt,     ^.f.g 

t  made  their  Jepofitions  :  The  plâcCr  where  they 
affirmed  the  refurredion,  and  'xhc'ir  motives  for 
doing  fo, 

.1.  Confider  the  nature  of  t  be  se  witnesses,, 
Had. 'they  been  men  of  opulence  .  and  credit  in 
the  world,  we  might  have  thought,  that  their 
reputation  gave  a  run  to  the  fable.  'Kid  they 
been  learned    arid  eloquent  men,    we  might  have 

•  imagined,  that  the  ftyle,  in  which  they  told  the 
tale,  had  foothed   theToah  of  the- people  into  a 

•  belief  of  it.  '  But,  for  my  part,  when  I  confider 
that   the   apoHlea -were   the    lowell  of  mankind, 

<without  reputation  to  impofe  on  people,  without 
authority  to  compel, -iind  without  riches  to  re- 
ward: when  "I  confider,  that  they  were  mean, 
Towgh,  unlearned  men,  and  confequently  very 
tinequal  to  the  tafk  of  putting  a  cheat  upon 
others  ;  I  cannot  conceive,  thai  people  of  this 
charailer  could  fucceed  in  deceiving  the  whoie 
church. 
.2.  Confider  the  numl>er  of  these  witnesses*'  St, 

'Paul  enumerates  them,  and  tells  ivs,  that  Jefus 
Ghrift  was  seen  of  Cephas^  1  Cor.  xv.  5,  Sec. 
This  appearance  is  related  by  St.  Luke,  who 
faith,  fÂ^  Lore?  is  risen  indeed^  and  bath  appeared 
to  Simonf  chap.  xxiv.  S4,  The  apofile  adds, 
tben  he  was  feen  of  tbe  twelve.  :  This  is  related 
by  St  Mark,  who  faith,  be  appeared  unto  tbe 
eleven^  chap.  xvi.  I4.'lt  was  the  fameappearance, 
for  the  apoftles  retained  the  appellation  twelve^ 
although,  after  Judas  had  been  guilty  of  fuicide, 
they  were  reduced  to  eleven.  St.  Paul  adds  fur- 
ther, after  tbat,  be  was   seen  of  above  five  hun- 

.  dredbretbren  at  once  :  Jf  fus  Chrift  promifed  this 
appearance  to  the  Women,  "  Go  into  Galilee,  artd 
tell  my  brethren,  that  tkey  (hall  fee  me  there," 
Matt,  xxviii.  10.  St.  Luke  telh  us  in  the  firft 
chapter  of  Aé\s,  that  the  church  confifted  of 
about  an  hundred  and  twenty  members.;   this  was 

^tfee  church  at  Terufakm  :  but   the  greatcfl  part 

of 


■^jS     The  Resurrection  of  jfesus  Christ, 

of  the  Jive  hundred^  of  whom  St.  Paul  fpealcs, 
were  of  Galilee,  where  Jefus  Chrill  had  preae+?.d 
his  goipel,  and  where  thefe  converts  abode  after 
his  refurre<^ion.  The  apoftle  fubjoins,  after  that 
he  was  seen  of  Jfames  ;  this  appearance  is  not  re- 
lated by  the  evangelifts  :  but  St.  Paul  knew  it 
by  tradition.*  St.  Jerom  writes,  that  in  a  He- 
brew gofpcl,  attributed  to  St.  Matthew,  called 
The  Gospel  of  the  Nazarénes^  it  was  faid,  Jesus 
Christ  appeared  to  St,  James  ;  that,  this  apoflle 
having  made  a  vow.  neither  to  eat  nor  drink  till 
Jefus  ihould  rifè  from  the  dead,  the  divine  Saviour 
took  bread  and  broke  it,  took  wine  and  poured  it 
out,  and  faid  to  him,  £ûf  and  drink,  for  the  son 
of  man  ii   risen  fram  the  dead,i     St.  Paul  yet 

adds 

^  Two  oF  our  Lord's  apoftles  were  named  yamts. 
The  elder  of  the  two,  brother  of  John,  was  put  to  death. 
by  Herod,  Ails  xii.  2.  The  other,  who  was  firft. 
coufin  to  Jefus  Chrift,  was  called  the  kss,  the  younger 
probably,  and  lived  many  years  after.  It  is  not  cer- 
tain which  of  the  two  St.  Paul  means.  If  he  mean 
x\\& first,  he  had  the  account  of  the  appearing  of  the 
Lord  to  him,  probably,  as  Mr.  Saurln  fays,  by  tradi' 
tion  .•  If  the  last,  it  is  likely,  he  had  it  from  James 
himfelf  ;  forhim  he  ;r«Tj  at  Jerufalem,  Gal.  i.  19.  and 
he  was  living  in  the  year  57,  when  St.  Paul  wrote  this 
firllepiftk  to  the  CorinthiariS. 

t  The  gofpel,  of  which  Mr.  Saurin,  after  St.  Jerom, 
fpeaks,  is  now  loft.  It  was  probably  one  of  thofe 
mangled,  interpolated  copies  of  the  true  gofpel  of  St. 
Matthew,  which,  through  the  avidity  of  the  lower 
■f(^rt  of  people  to  knov/  thehiftory  of  Jefus  Chrift,  had 
been  tranfcnbed,  and  debafed,  and  was  handed  about 
the  world.  I  call  it  mangled  ;  becaufe  fome  parts  of 
the  true  gofpel  were  omitted.  I  call  \\.  interpolated  i 
becaufe  some  thi«gs  were  addvdfrotn  other  gospels,  as, 
the  hilloryof  the  woman  caught  in  adultery,  from  Sç. 
John  :  Eqfeb.  Eccl.  hill.  lib.  iii  cap.  39.  and  Others 
from  report,  as  the  above  paltage  relative  to  Jamea,  &c. 
This  book  was  written  in  Syriac,  with  Hebrew  char- 
acters, $t, -Jerom  tranllated  it  into  Greek,  and  t^tin, 
end  «fivers  of  the  fathers  quote  it,  as  HegefipJDUs, 
£uféb.  E.  H.  lib,  iv,  22.  Jgaatius  Ep.  and  8myrnenfe«j 


The  Reswrreciion  of  Jesus  Christ.     177 

adds  further,  "  Then  he  was  TeeTi  of  all  the 
"apoflîes  ;  and,  laft  of  all,  of  me  alfo,  as  of  one 
born  out  of  due  time."  So  numerous  were  the 
witnefles  of  the  refurre£lion  of  Jefus  Clirift  t 
from  this  fad\  we  derive  a  fécond  argument  ;  for, 
had  the  witneiTes  been  few,  it  might  have  been 
faid,  that  the  bafe  defign  of  deceiving  the  whole 
church  was  formed  by  one,  and  propag-ated  by  a 
tew  more  ;  or  that  feme  one  had  fancied  he  faw 
JcfusChriCl  ;  but  w-hen  St.  Puil,  v/hen  the  reft 
of  the  apoftles,  when  Jive  hundred  brethren  attcQ: 
the  truth  cf  the  fa£l^  wh*t  room  remains  for 
fufpicion  and  doubt  ? 

3.  Obferve  the  facts  themselves^  tijhich  they 
avoiVy  Had  they  «been  metaphyfjcal  reiifonings, 
depending  on  a  cbjin  of  principles  and  confe^ 
quences  ;  had  they  been  periods  of  chronology, 
depending  on  long-  and  difEcult  calculations  ;  had 
they  been  diftant  events,  which  could  only  hî*ve 
been  known  by  the  relations  of  others  ;  their 
reafonings  might  have  been  fufpecled  :  But 
they  are  fa<5ls,  which  are  m  qucflion,  fads,  which, 
the  witnefTes  declared,  they  had  fecn  with  their 
own  eyes  at  divers  places,  and  at  feveral  times. 
Had  they  fecn  Jefus  Chrifl  ;  Had  they  touched 
him  ?  Had  they  futen  at  table,  and  eaten  with 
him  ?  Had  they  converfed  with  him  ?  All 
thefe  are  queflions  of  fad  :  it  was  impoffibJe 
they  could  be  deceived  in  them. 

4.  Remark  the  agreement  of  their  evidence. 
They  all  unanimoufly  depofed,  that  Jefus  Chrifl 
Tofe  from  the  dead.  It  is  very  extraordinary, 
that  d  gang  of  five  hundred  impoflors,  (I  fpeak 
the  language  of  infideis)  a    company,  in    whicli 

Q^  there 

Edit.  Uferii,  p.  \\i.  Clement  of  Alexandria,  Stro- 
niat.Hb.  ii.  p.  278,  Edit.  Lugdun.  16x6.  Origen,  St. 
Jerom,  &c.  It  went  by  the  names  of  the  gofpel  ac- 
cording to  St.  Matthew,  the  gofpel  ciccordia^-  to  the 
Hebrews,  the  gofpel  of  the  twelve  apO!itleSf  the  gofpel 
of  the  Nazarenes.     See  Lukei.  1,2. 


1 7B     The  Resurrtction  of  Jesus  phrisio 

there  muft  needs  be  people  of  different  capaci. 
tie»  a«d  tempers,  the  witty  and  the  dull,  the 
timid  and  the  bo!d  ;  it  is  very  (Irangc,  that  fuch 
il  numerous  bady  as  this  Oiould  maintain  an  uni- 
ty of  evidence.  This,  however,  is  tJie  cafe  of 
our  witneiTcs.  What  chriHian  ever  contradi£l- 
€d  himfelf  ?  What  ehriftian  ever  impeached 
Iiis  .ac.cvjmplices  ?  What  chriflian  ever  difcover- 
ed  this  pretended  împoflurc  ? 

5.  Obferve  the  tribunals^  before  ncbicb  thejv 
j^ave  êt'Idence,  and  the  innumerable  multitude  of 
people  by  whom  their  teRJmony  was  examined, 
by  Jews  and  Heathens,  by  philofophers  and  Rab- 
bies;  a:iû  by  .a^i  infinite  number  of  people,  who 
werJt  aniiuijly  to  Jerufalem  :  .For,  my  brethren, 
Providence  fo  ordfred  thefe  circumflances,  tha:; 
the  teflin.iony  of  the  apoQles  might  be  imfufpect- 
cd.  Providence  continued  Jerufalem  forty  years 
îfcçr  the  refurredian  of  our  Lord,  tliat  all  the 
Jews  in  the  world  might  examine  the  evidence 
coacerntHg  it,  and  obtain  authentic  proof  of  the 
truth  of  chriflianity.  I  repeat  it  again,  thv^n, 
the  apoftles  ir:aii?tained  the  refurreâ:ion  of  Jefus 
(«hrift  before  Jews,  before  Pagans,  before  philofo- 
•^hers,  before  Kabbies,  before  courtiers,  before 
lawyers,  before  people  expert  in  examining,  and 
in  çrofs-examining  witneffes,  in  order  to  lead 
them  into  felf-contradidtion.  Had  the  apoflles 
borne  their  teflimony  in  confequence  of  a  pre- 
concerted plot  between  themfelves,  is  it  not  mor- 
ally certain,  that,  as  they  were  examined  before 
fuch  different. and  capable  men,  fomc  one  would 
have.difcovered  the  pretended  fraud  ? 

.6.  Confider  tee  place^  in  ivkich  the  cpostles 
bore  tkeir  testimony.  Had  they  publiflied  the 
refurreilion  of  the  Saviour  of  the  world  in  diftant 
countries,  beyond  mountains  and  feas,  it  might 
have  been  fuppofed,  that  diftance  cf  place,  ren- 
dering it  extremely  difficult  for  their  hearers  to 
obtain  exad  information,  had  facilitated  the  ef- 

tabliftiment 


The  Resurrection  of  Jesus  Christ*     179 

tablidiment  of  the  error  ;  But  the  npolUt  5 
preached  in  Jeruialem,  in  the  fynagoguco,  in  the 
pretorium  ;  ihey  unfolded  and  diiplay'ed  the  ban- 
ners of  their  mailer's  crofs,  and  fet  up  tokens  oi' 
his  vidlory,  on  the  very  ipot,  on  whith  the  in- 
famous inftrument  of  his  fufTcrings  had  heca 
let  up. 

7.  Obferve  tJiS  lime  of  this  testimonj.  ÎI»(l 
the  apoRIes  ErR  publilhed  this  refurredion  fever.it 
years  after  the  cpocha,  which  they  aiTtgned  for  ii  ; 
unbelief  might  have  availed  iifelf  of  the  àcluy  . 
but  three  days  after  the  death  of  Jeûvs  Chriil, 
they  faid,  he  was  rifen  again,  and  they  I'^-echoia 
their  teftimony  in  a  fingular  manner  at  FenifCoIl, 
when  Jerufalcm  expedtcd  the  fpread  of  the  rt -• 
port,  and  endeavored  to  prevent  it  ;  ^vhile  iT.'-. 
eyes  of  their  enemies  were  yet  fpmkhng  whh 
rage  and  madntf?  ;  and  while  Culvaiy  Avas  y;:^ 
dyed  with  the  blood  they  had  fpilt  there.  D>> 
irapoftors  take  fuch  meafu res  ?  Would  not  they 
have  waited  till  the  fury  of  the  Jews  had  been 
appeafed,  till  judges,  aod  public  officers,  had 
been  changed,  and  till  pecJple  had  been  lefs  at- 
tentive to  their  depofition-i  Î 

8',  Confidcr,  laQly,  ibe  motives^  which  induced 
the  apostles  to  publish  the  resurrection  of  Jesus 
Christ,  Survey  the  face  of  the  world,  examine 
sH  the  impoftures,  that  are  pradtifed  in  fociety. 
Falfehood,  impofition,  treachery,  perjury,  abound 
in  fociety.  To  every  different  trade  and  profcf- 
iion  fome  peculiar  deceptions  belong.  How- 
ever, all  mankind  ha^-e  one  defign  in  deceiving, 
they  all  deceive  for  their  own  interefl.  Their 
interefls  are  infinitely  diverfified  ;  but  it  is  inter- 
cffi  however,  that  always  animates  all  deceivers. 
There  is  one  intereft  of  pride,  another  of  plinf*. 
are,  a  third  of  profit.  In  the  cafe  before  us  thti 
nature  of  things  is  fubverted,  and  all  our  no. 
tions  of  the  human  heart  contradided.  It  n-uft 
be  pre-fuppofed,  that,  vrhereas  other  men  gener- 


1 8o     The  Resurrection  of  Jesus  ChrisL 

ally  facrlSce  the  intereft  of  their  falvation  to  their 
temporal  intereft,  the  apoûîes,  on  the  contrary, 
faerlnced  their  temporal  intereft  without  any  in- 
ducement from  the  in'.erefl  of  falvation  itfelf. 
Suppofe,  they  had  been  craftily  led,  during  the 
life  of  Jefus  Ghrill,  into  the  expectation  of  fome 
temporal  advantages,  how  came  it  to  pafs,  that, 
after  they  faw  their  hopes  bi^fted,  and  themfelves 
threatened  with  the  nioft  rigorous  puniOiments, 
they  did  not  redeem  their  lives  by  confeffing  the 
impoflore  ?  In  general,  the  more  wicked  a  trai- 
ter is,  the  more  he  trenibles,  alters,  and  con- 
feiïes,  at  the  approach  of  death.  Having  be- 
trayed, for  his  own  intereH,  the  laws  of  his  coun- 
try, the  inteiefts  of  fociety,  the  confidence  of  his 
prince,  and  the  credit  of  religi^on,  he  betrays  the 
companions  of  his  impofture,  the  accomplices  of 
hi's  crimes.  Here,  on  the  contrary,  the  apoftles" 
riPrrifV  in  their  tcHlmnnv  llll  à;? af  h.  and.  USXÏI  thc 
truths  they  have  publilhed  with  the  laft  drops  of 
their  blood.     Thefe  are  our  arguments. 

We  proceed  now  to  our  demonstrations,  that 
is,  to  the  rairacles,  wiih  which  the  apoQles  fealed 
the  truth  of  their  teflimony.  Imagine  thefe  ven- 
erable men  addrefling  their  adverfaries  en  the 
day  of  the  chriftian  pentecoft  in  this  language. 
"  You  refufe  to  believe  us  on  our  dtpcfitions  ; 
ive  hundred^  of  u=i,  yoa  think,  are  enthufiafts, 
nil  inff<f\ed  with  the  fame  malady,  who  have  car- 
ried our  abfurdity  fo  far  as  to  imagine  that  we 
haye  feen  a  man,  whom  we  have  not  feen  ;  eat- 
•rn  with  a  man,  with  whom  we  have  not  eaten  ; 
.çonverfed  with  a  man,  with  whom  we  have  not 
«onverfcd  :  or  perhaps  you  think  ivs  impoftors,  or 
take  us  for  mad  men,  who  intend  to  fuiler  our- 
ieives  to  be  imprifoned,  and  tortured,  and  crucifi- 
rd^  for  the  fake  of  enjoying  the  pleafure  of  de- 
ceiving mankind,  by  prevailing  upon  them  to  be- 
lieve i  fanciful  refurre£lion  :  you  think  we  are 
fo  Ilupid  as  10  aft  a   part    fo   extravagant.     Bu< 

bring 


The  Resurrection  of  Jesus  Christ,     i^v 

bring  out  your  fick  ;  prefent  your  deRioniacs  j 
fetch  hither  your  dead.  Confront  us  with 
Medes,  Parthians,  and  Eluniites  ;  let  Cappado- 
cia>  Pontus,.  AG"^,  Egypt,  Phrygia,  Pamphylia.j 
let  all  nations  and  people  fend  us  forae  of  their 
inhabitants,  we  will  rcftorc  liCAring  to  the  deaf, 
and  tight  to  the  blind,  we  will  noake  the  lame- 
walk,  we  will  caft  out  devils,  and  raife  the  dead. 
We,  we  publicfins,  wc  illiterate  nien,  We  tent: 
makers,  we  fiUiermen/  we  will  difcourle  with  all 
the  people  of  the  world  in  their  own  languages. 
We  will  explain  prophecies^  clucidatl;.  ths  molt 
obfcure  predi6lron5,  develope  the  nioft  fiihlin.c: 
iDyflcrics,  teach  you  notions  of  God,  precepts  foi" 
the  condu<f\"  of  life,  plans  of  morality  and  re- 
ligion, nwre  extenfive,  tnore  fublime,  and  more 
advantageous,  than  thofe  of  your  pritfts  and  phi- 
îofophers,  yea  than  thofe  of  Mofcs  himfelf.  We 
'^\\\  do  more  ftill.  We  wilt  communicate  thele 
gifts  to  you,  theiirordofvjisdom^  tbj  word  of 
knowledge^  fait  fL,  live  gifts  of  bealing,  ib^i  ivorà- 
trig  of  miracles^  prophecy^  discerning  of  spirits^ 
divers  kinds  of  tongues,  interpretation  of  tongue  i^ 
1  Cor,  xil.  8v  Sec-»  all  thefc  (liall  be  coniraunicat- 
ed  to  you  by  your-niinifrry*'*^ 

All  thefe  thisgs  th«- apoflîés  profeffed  ;  all 
thcfe  proofs  they  give  of  the  refurreclion  of  jeiua 
Ghrifl  ;  **  this  Jèfus  hath  God  raifed  up  ;  and 
he  hath  Qied  forth  this,  which  ye  iïow  fee  and 
hear,"  Aé\s  ii.  32,  33.  This  coniideratron  fur- 
îiiOieth  us  with  an  anfwer  to  the  greatcif  objec- 
tion, that  was  ever  made  to  the  lefurrettioi»  of 
Jffus  Chrift,  and,  in  general,  to  his  wliole  econu- 
my.  "How  is  it,"  fay  unbelievers  fomeiinjcs, 
*'  that  your  Jefus  expofed  all  the  circuinftancts 
of  his  abafement-to  the  public  eye,  and  «oncealcd 
thole  of  his  elevation  ?  If  he  were  transfigured- 
en  the  mount,-  it  was  only  before  Peter,  James, 
and  John.  IF  his  afcendej  to  heaven,  none  bu: 
his  difciples  fawhis  afcent.  If  he  rofcaa-ain  from 
v^2  "      thi? 


i82     The  Resurrection  of  Jesus  Christ. 

the  dead,  and  appeared,  he  appeared  only  to  thofe, 
«vho  were  interclled  in  his  tame.  Why  did  he 
not  fhew  himfelf  to  the  fynagogue  ?  Why  did 
he  not  appear  to  Pilate  ?  Why  did  he  not  fhew 
himfclf  alive  in  the  flreets,  and  public  affemblics» 
of  Jeruialem  ?  Had  he  done  fo,  infidelity  would 
have  been  eradicated,  and  every  one  wovild  have 
btlieved  his  own  eyes  :  but  the  fecrecy  of  all 
tbf  fe  events  expoftth  them  to  very  juft  fuipicions, 
and  giveth  pîaufiblc  pretexts  to  errsrs,  if  errors 
they  be," 

We  omit  maiyy  folid  anfwers  to  thi»  objec- 
tion ;  perhaps  we  may  urge  them  on  future  or- 
cafion?,  and  at  prefcnt  we  content  ourie'ves  with 
ohferving,  that  the  apcflles^  who  attcfled  the- 
Ttfurreftion  of  Jdus  Chrifîj  wrought  miracles  in 
the  prefence  of  all  thofe,  before  whom,  you  fiiy, 
Jefus  Chrift  ought  to  have  produced  himfelf  after 
bis  rtfurrecflion.  The  apofiles  wrought  ntira- 
cles  ;  behold  Jefus  Chrift  !  fee  his  Spirit  1  behold 
his  refurretftion  !  "  God  hath  raifed  up  J'efus 
Ciirifl:,  and  he  haih  (bed  forth  what  ye  now  fee 
and  hear."  This  way  of  proving  the  refurrec- 
tion  of  Ghrift  was  as  convincing  as  the  fnewing 
of  himfelf  to  each  of  his  enemies  would  have 
been  ;  as  the  expofure  of  his  wounds  before 
îhcm,  or  the  permitting  of  them  to  thruft  their 
Lands  into  his  fide,  would  have  been.  Yea,  this 
was  a  more  convincing  way,  than  that  would 
have  been,  for  which  you  plead.  Had  Jefus 
Chrift  (hewn  himfelf,  they  might  have  thought 
him  a  phantom,  or  a  counterfeit  ;  they  might 
have  fuppofed,  that  a  referablancc  of  features  had 
occafioncd  an  illufion  :  but  what  could  an  un- 
believer oppofe  againft  the  healing  of  the  fick, 
the  raifing.  of  the  dead,  the  expulfion  of  devils, 
the  altération  and  fubverfion  of  all  nature  ? 

It  may  be  faid,  perhaps,  all  thefe  proofs,  if  in- 
deed they  ever  exilled,  were  conclufive  to  them, 
trho,  it   is   pretended,  faw   the   miracles    of  the 

jipoftles  ; 


TKe  Résurrection  of  Jesus  Christ,     1 83 

apoftles  ;  but  they  can  have  no  weight  with  U3, 
"W'ho  live  feventeen  centuries  after  them.  We 
reply,  The  miracles  of  the  npoftles  cannot  be 
doubted  without  giving  intd  an  univerfal  fcepti- 
clfm  ;  without  eftabhfhing  this  unwarrantable 
principle,  that  we  ought  to  believe  nothing  but 
what  we  fee  ;  and  without  taxing  three  forts  ot 
people,  equally  unfufpeâred,  with  extravagance 
on  this  occafion. 

1.  They,  who  call  themfeîvçs//ii?  operators  of 
these  miracles^  would  be  tliargeable  with  ex- 
travagaj^ce.  If  they  wrought  none,  they  were 
impoflors,  who  endeavored  to  deceive  mankind. 
If  they  were  impcftors  of  the  leaf\  degree  ofconi- 
j-non  fenfe,  they  would  have  ufed  fome  precau- 
tions to  conceal  their  impofture.  But  fee  how 
they  relate  the  facts,  of  the  truth  of  which  we 
pretend  no  doubt.  They  fpecify  times,  places, 
and  circumflances.  They  fay,  fuch  and  fi^ch 
faAs  palled  in  fuch  cities,  fnch  public  places, 
fuch  aifembT'es,  in  fight  of  fuch  and  fuch  people. 
Thus  St.  Paul  writes  to  the  Corinthians.  He 
dire(ns  to  a  fociety  of  chriftians  in  the  city  of 
Corinth.  He  tells  them,  that  they  had  received 
miraculous  gifts,  and  cenfures  them  for  making 
a  parade  of  them.  He  reproves  them  for  ftriv- 
ing  to  difplay,  each  his  own  gifts  in  their  pub- 
lic alTemblies.  He  gives  them  fome  rules  for 
the  regulation  of  their  conduct  in  this  cafe.  "  If 
any  man  fpeak  in  an  unknown  tongue,  let  it  be 
by  two,  or  at  the  moft  by  three,  and  that  by 
courfe,  and  let  one  interpret.  If  there  be  no  in- 
terpreter, let  him  keep  filence  in  the  church. 
Let  the  prophets  fpeak,  two,  or  three.  If  any 
thing  be  revealed  to  another  that  fittoth  by,  let 
the  firft  hold  his  peace,"  1  Cor.  xiv.  27,  28,  8cc. 
I  afk,  with  what  face  could  St.  Paul  have  writ- 
ten in  this  rnanncr  to  the  Corinthians,  if  all  thefc 
fa<5ts  had  been  falfe  ?  If  the  Corinthians  had 
received    neither  ^)6t?  gifts  of  prophecy^  nor  the 

discerning 


184     ^^^^  Rcsurrcciion  of  Jems  Christ 

discerning  oj  spirit  s  f  nor  divers  kinds  .of  tongues , 
What  a  tVont  had  he,  who  wrote  ai  ihii.  aiau- 
iier  ? 

2.  Tjbe  enemies  of-  Christ ian-iry-niuh  be  taxed 
with  extravaganc-e.  Since  ehrillians  gloried  in 
ihe  lliirnuig  rwirac-les,  that  their  preaclicrs 
wrought  ;  and  fince  their  preacher:»  j^luiied  in- 
peribrming  them  before  whole  iiTcuibli^s,  it 
would  have  been  very  eafy  to  difcD\er  thcii  in;- 
polture,  had  they  been  impiJllois.-  Suppoie  a 
inoderr^  impoRor,  preaching,  a  new  religion,  aad 
pretcndi»g  tuthe  glory  of  coutraiing  li  by  uolu- 
ble  njiracles,  wrought  in  this  place  :  What 
Bitthod  thould  we  take  to  refute  him  i  bhoiid 
we  affirm  that  miracles  do  not  prove  the  truth  of 
a  dodrine  ?  Should  w«  have  recourf<f  10  irina- 
cias  wrought  by  others  ?  Skould.  we  not  ex- 
claim againfl  the  fraud  ?  Shoald.we  not  appeal 
to  our  own  eyes  f  Should  vvc  want  ^ny  ihi:ig 
more  than  the  diffcmbler's  own  profcllijon»  to  con- 
vicl  him  of  impollure  ?  Why  did  not.the  avow- 
ed enemies  of  chriftianity,  who  CDdcavoicd  by 
their  publications  to  refute  it,  take  ihefe  meth- 
ods ?  How  was  it,  that  Ctrlfus,  Porphyry,  Jjù- 
Tunus,  Julian  the  apoftat?,  and  Ilieiocks,  the 
greateQ  antagonifls,  that  chriftianity  ever  had,, 
?.nd  whoie  writings  are  in  our  hands,  never  deni- 
cd  the  fa6t^  :  bur,  allowing  the  principle,  turned 
all  the  points  ef  their  arguments  againll  ihe  con- 
fequenccs,  that  chriflians  inferred  from  them  ? 
By  foppcfing  the  falfehood  of  the  miracles  of  the 
apofilcs,  do  we  Mot  tax  the  tiiemîei  cf-  chui- 
tianity  with  abfurdity  ? 

In  fine,  This  fuppcfition  chargeth  ihe  ivhaîe 
multitiide  of  thristianSy  wJbo  embraced  the  gospel^ 
with  extravagance.  The  examination  of  the 
truth  of  religion,  now,  depends  on  a  chain  of 
principles  and  confequences,  which  rt<]uire  a  pro- 
found attention  :  and,  therefore,  the  nu-mber  cf 
thofe,  who   profcfi  fech  cr  iuch  a    religion,  can- 

nct 


The  Resurrection  of  Jesus  Christ,     i  85 

not  demonllrate  the  truth  of  their  religion.  But 
in  the  days  of  the  apoflles  the  whole  depended 
on  a  few  plain  faifis.  Hath  Jefus  Chrift  commu- 
nicated his  Spirit  to  his  apoDles  T  Do  the  apof- 
ties  work  miracles  ?  Have  they  the  power  of 
imparting  miraculous  gifts  to  thofe,  >yho  embrace 
their  doctrine  ?  And  yet  this  religion,  the  dif- 
culHon  of  whrch  was  io  plain  and  eafy,  fpread 
itfelffarand  wide.  If  the  apoftles  did  not  work 
miracles,  one  of  thefe  two  fuppofitions  mud  be 
made  :  either  thefe  profelytes  did  not  deign  to 
open  their  eyes,  but  facrificed  their  prejudices, 
paillons,  educations,  eafe,- fortunes,  lives,  and 
confciences,  without  condefcending  to  fpend  one 
moment  on  the  examination  of  this  queftion  : 
Do  the  apoflles  work  miracles  ?  or  that,  on  fup- 
pofition  they  did  open  their  eyes,  and  did  find  the 
falfehood  of  thefe  pretended  miracles,  they  yet 
facrificed  their  prejudices,  and  their  palfions,  thçii'" 
educations,  their  eafe,  and  their  honor,  their 
properties,  their  confciences,  and  their  lives,  to  a 
religion,  which  wholly  turned  on  this  falfe  prin» 
ciple,  that  its  miracles  were  true. 

Colled  all  thefe  proofs  together,  my  brethrepj. 
confider  them  in  one  point  of  view,  and  fee  how 
many  extravagant  fuppofitions  muft  be  advanced,, 
if  therefurre^ion  of  our  Saviour  be  denied.  It 
muft  be  fuppofed,  that  guards,  who  had  been  par-, 
ticularly  cautioned  by  their  officers,  fat  down  ta 
deep,  and  that,  however  they  deferved  credit  when 
they  faid  the  body  of  Jefus  Chrifl  was  ftolen  : 
it  muft  be  fuppofed,  that  men  who  had  been  ii^v 
pofed  on  in  the  mnfl  odious  and  cruel  manner  in 
the  world,  hazarded  their  dearefl  enjoyments  for 
the  glory  of  an  impoflor.  It  muft  be  fuppofed, 
that  ignorant  and  illiterate  men,  who  had  nei- 
ther reputation,  fortune,  nor  eloquence,  potTcffed 
the  art  of  fafcinat'ing  the  eyes  of  all  the  church. 
It  muft  be  fuppofed,  either  that  five  hundred  per- 
foQS  were  all  deprived  of  their  feufes  at  a  time  ; 

or 


i  86     The  Resurrection  of  Jesus  ChrhL 

ov  that  they  wtre  all  deaeived  in  the  phnncft  mat" 
ters  cftadt;  or  thut  this  multitude  of  talfe  wit- 
«eiTes  had  found  out  the  lecret  of  never  contra- 
<3i(î\ing  tfiemrelvfs,  or  or.e  another^  and  of  being 
always- uRÎtbrfti  in  their  teîlimany.  It  moft  be 
fuppofed,  tliat  the  mbfl  expert  courts  of  judica- 
ture could  not  find  out  a  lliadbw  of  contradidion 
.  in  a  palpable  impolliire.  It  muft  be'  fuppoied, 
that  the  apofl!c3,  fcnfibie  mert  in  other  cafes, 
chofe  precifely  thoi'é  places,  and  thofe  time-^; 
which  were  the  nioft  unfavorable  to  their  views. 
It  niul>  be  fuppoftd,  that  williona  madly  fuOered 
inbprilonmei.ts,  toituves,  and  cruciSxions,  to 
fpread  an  illuiion.  It  iDufl  be Tuppofed,  that  tea 
thoufand  miracles  were  wrought  in  favor  of  falfe- 
bbod  ;  or  all  tbefe  faâs  mufl  be  denied,  and  then 
it  mufl  be  fuppofcd,  that  t lie  apoftles  were  idiots, 
that  the  enemies  of  chriftianity  were  idiots^  and 
that  all  the  primilive  chVifiians  were  idiots. 

The  arguments  that  perfuade  us  of  the  truth 
of  the  refurref^ion  of  Jefus  Chrifb,  are  fo  cle^r 
and  fo  conciufive,  that  if  any  difficulty  remain, 
if  arifeth  from  the  brightnefs  of  the  evidence  it- 
felf.  Yes,  I  declare,  if  any  thing  has  fhaketi- 
my  confidence  in  it,  it  hath  arifen  from  tMs. 
confideration'.  Icould^not  concisive  how  a  truth, 
attefled  by  fo  many  irieproacha'blc  witneiTcs,  and 
confirmed  by  fo  many,  ncrorro js  miraclesj  fhcuH 
not  make  more  profelytes  ;  how  it  could  pofhbly 
be,  that  all  the  Jews,  and  all  the  heathens,  did 
not  yield  to  this  evidence.  But  this  diftVculty 
«ught  not  to  weaken  our  faith.  In  the  folly  of 
raankind  its  folution  lies.  Men  are  capable  cf 
any  thing  to  gratify  their  paffions,  and  to  de- 
fend  their  prejudices.  The  unbelief  of'  the  Jew3 
and  heathens  is  not  more  wonderful  th^;n  a  hun- 
dred other  phenomena,  which,  were  we  not" to  be-- 
hold  them  every  day,  would  equally  alarm  us. 
Tt  is  not  more  furpriiîng  than  the  fuperfli'tious- 
veneratioTi,    in  which;-  for   many   ager>j  the  chrif- 

tiaa 


^hc: Resurrection  of  Jesus  Christ,     1 8.7 

^ian  world  held  that  dark,   confufed,    pagan    ge- 
nius, Ariflotle  ;   a  veneration,  which  was  carried 
10  far,  that  when  metaphyfical  queflions  were  dif- 
puted  in    the  fchools,    qurftions  on    which  every 
one  ought    alv.'ays  to   \\n\^   Whe^y^y   t-ô  fpeak   his 
opinion.;  when    they    were   examining   Wjhçthcr 
there  were  a  void  in    nature,  whether  nature  ab- 
horred a  vacuum,  whether  matter    were  divlfible, 
whether    there    were    atoms,  pro^îerly  fo  called,; 
•when  it  could  be  preved^  in  difputes  of  this   kind, 
that  Ariflotle  was    of  fucji    orfuchan    opinion, 
-♦lis  infallibility  was  allowed,  aird    the  difpute  was 
at  end.     The  unbelief  of  the  accier.ts  is,  not  more 
.  furpriling    than    the   credulity  .of  tlie    moderns  s 
We  fee   kings,    and  princes,  and  a  great  part' of 
chriftendom,  fubmit  tea  pope,  yea  to  an   inferior 
prie:ft,  often  to  one  who  is    vaid  of  both  fenfe  and 
•î;-race.     It  is  not  more    aHoniniing  than    the  im- 
plicit faith  of  chriftians:,  wIjo   believe,  in    an  en- 
lightened age,  in- the  days  of  Defcartes,  Pafchal, 
and  Malbranche,;   v/hat^ixi  I  faying  ?   Defcartes, 
Pafchal,  and  Melbranche  themfelves  believe,  that 
a  piece  of  bread,  which   they    reduce  to   a.  pulp 
>vith  their  teetU,  which  they    tade,  fwallow,  and 
digcft,  isthe^bojiy  of  their  Redeemer,     The  an- 
cient unbelief  is  not  more  wonderful    than  yours, 
proteftants  I     You    profefs  to  believe    there  is  a 
judgment,   and  a  hell,   and  to  know  tiiat  mifers, 
adulterers,. and  dronkards,   m4j{l  fufFer  everlafling 
punifhments   there,  ^nd   although  you  cannot  be 
ignorant  of  your  being  in  this  fatal  lift,  yet  yon 
are  as   eafy   about   futurity,  as    if  you  had  read 
your  names  in  the   book  of  life,   and  had  no  rea- 
fon  to   entertain  the    lead  doubt  of  your   falya- 
tion. 

II.  We  have  urged  the  arguments,  tbat  prove 
the  refurredion  of  Jefus  Ghrift  :  I  (liall  detain 
you  only  a  few  moments  longer  in  juftifying  the 
joyful  acclamations  which  it  produced,  *'  The 
volceof rejoicing  and   falvation,  is  in   the  taber-. 


i88     The  Resurrection  of  yesiis  Christ. 

nacles  of  the  righteous  :  the  right  hand  of  the 
Lord  doth  valiantly.  The  right  hand  of  tbe 
Lord  is  exalted  -:  the  right  hand  of  the  Lord 
doth  valiantly." 

The  three  melancholy  days  that  paffed  between 
the  death  of  Jefus  Chrifl:  and  his  refurredlion, 
revere  days  of  triumph  for  the  enemies  of  the 
church.  Jefus  Chrid  rifeth  again  ;  and  the 
church  triumphs  in  its  turn  :  "  The  voice  of  re- 
joicing and  falvation,  is  in  the  tabernacles  of  the 
righteous.  The  right  hand  of  the  Lord  doth 
valiantly." 

I.  In  thofe  melancholy  dtsys,  hercsj  triumphed 
over  truth.  The  greateft  obje6tion  that  was 
made  againil  the  faticfaiSlion  of  Jefus  Chrifl,  was 
taken  from  his  innocence,  which  is  the  founda- 
tion of  it.  For  if  Jefus  Chrifl  were  innocent, 
where  was  divine  ju0.ice  when  he  was  overwlielm- 
ed  with  fufferingSj  and  put  to  death  ?  Where 
■was  it,  when  he  was  expofcd  to  the  unbridled 
Y-^gt  of  the  populace  ?  This  difficulty  feems  at 
■firll  indidQiubie.  Yea,  rather  let  all  the  guilty 
perifh  ;  rather  let  all  the  pofterity  of  Adam  be 
plunged  into  hell  ;  rather  let  divine  juQice  deflroy 
every  creature  that  divine  goodnefs  hath  made, 
than  leave  fa  many  virtues,  fo  much  benevolence, 
and  fo  much  fervour,  humility  fo  profound,  and 
zeul  fo  great,  without  indemnity  and  reward. 
But  when  we  fee  that  Jefus  Chrift,  by  fuffering 
death,  difarmed  it,  by  lying  in  the  tomb  took 
away  its  iling,  by  his  crucifixion  afcended  to  a 
throne,  the  difficulty  is  diminifhed,  ycz,  it  van- 
ifheth  away  :  "  The  voice  of  rejoicing  and  fal- 
vation, is  111  the  tabernacles  of  the  righteous^ 
The  right  hand  of  the  Lord  is  exalted  :  the  right 
hand  of  the  Lord  doth  valiantly."  God  and 
man  are  reconciled  ;  divine  juftice  is  fatisfied  ; 
Jienceforth  we  may  go  "  boldly  to  the  throne  of 
grace.  There  is  now  no  condemnation  to  them 
which  are  in  Chrifl  Jefus.     Who  fhall   lay  any 

thing 


The  Resurrection  of  Jems  Christ,     1 89 

thing  to  the  charge  of  God's  eleft  ?  Who  is 
he  that  condemneth  ?  It  is  Ghrift  that  died, 
yea,  rather,  that  is  rifen  again,"  Heb.  iv.  16, 
Rom.  viii.*l,  32,  34. 

2.  In  thofe  mournful  days  inJideUty  triumphed 
ever  faith.  At  the  fight  of  a  deceafed  Jefus 
the  infidel  difplayed  his  fyftem  by  infulting  him,, 
who  facrificed  his  pafiions  to  his  doty,  and  by 
faying,  See,  fee,  that  pale  motionlefs  carcafe  :» 
Bless  God  and  die  .'*  All  events  come  alike  to 
ally  there  is  one  event  to  the  righteous  and  to  tTie 
luicked  ;  to  the  clean  and  to  the  unclean  ;  to  him 
R  that 

*  So  the  French  bibles  render  the  words,  Bless 
God  and  die  !  our  tranllation  hath  it,  gurse  God  and 
die.  Job,  who  beft  knew  his  wife,  calls  this  a  foolîsk 
faying  ;  that  is,  a  faying  void  of  humanity  and  re- 
'  iigion  :  for  fo  the  word  foolifh  fijnifies  in  fcripture. 
It  was  a  cruel  popular  farcafm,  frequently  caft  by  fcep- 
tics  on  thofe  who  perPifted  in  the  belief  of  a  Gcd,  and 
of  the  perfefiion  and  excellence  of  his  providence, 
even  while  he  fuffered  them  to  fmk  under  the  moft 
terrible  calamities.  «•  Your  God  is  the  God  of  uni- 
verfal  nature  !  He  regards  the  allions  of  men  !  He 
rewards  virtue  !  He  puniflies  Vice  !  On  thefe  erro- 
neous principles  your  adoration  of  him  has  been  built. 
This  was  a  pardonable  folly  in  the  time  of  your  prof- 
perity  ;  but  what  an  abfurdity  to  perlîll  in  it  now  ! 
If  your  preient  fufferings  do  not  undeceive  you,  no  fu- 
ture means  can.  Your  mind  is  paft  information.  Per-. 
fevere  !  Go  oninyour  adorationtill yon  die^ 

It   may  feem  llrange    at   firft,   that   the  fame    term 
ihould  {land  for  two  fuch  oppofite  ideas  as  ùlasing  and- 
cursing  :  but  a  very   plain   and  natural  reafon  may  be* 
afligned  for  it.     Tlie  Hebrew  word  originally  iignified 
to   bless,    {bemdicere)  :  and    when    applied   to.  God,   it  • 
meant    to   bless,  that  is,    to  praise  God  by    \\:nrsbrpping* 
him.     The  Talmudiils  fay,  that    the    religious  honors  * 
which  were  paid  to  God,   were   of   four  forts.     The' 
proftration  of  the  whole  body  was  one  :     The    bowing- 
of  the  head  another  :     The  bending  of  the   upper  part 
of  the  body  towards  the  knees  a  third  ;  TixxiX  gcniificxion 
the  fourth.     Megillx   fol.  22.  2.  apud   Suxtorft.   Lex.  ' 
In  thefe  ways  was  God  praised,  ^.-jors hipped,  or  blesse '^ 
and  the  Hebrew  word  for  blelung  was  naturally  put* 


190     The  Resurrection  of  Jesus  Christ. 

that  sacrijicetb  and  to  bim  that  sacrificeth  not-; 
as  is  the  good.,  so  is  the  sinner^  and  be  that  s'u^ear- 
eth  as  he  that  feareth   an  oat h^    Eccles.    ix.  2. 

Jefus 

i or  geni^exion,  \\\t  expression  oî  bléfSng, -or  praifing  ;; 
thus  it  is  renderud  Plalm  xcv-.'ô.  let  us  ;^n«^e/ before  the 
X-ord  :  2  Chron.  vi.  13.  Solomon  hieeled  dowi\  unon 
his  knees.  The  bending  of  the  Icnpe  being  a  ui'nal 
token  vf  respect,  which  people  paid  P7  one  another,  when 
tliey  met,  the  word  was  transferred  to  this  alio,  and 
J  s  properly  ffa/«fe  .•  2  Kings  »v.  19.  If  thou  meet  any 
man  salute  him  not.  The  fame  token  of  rei'peA  being 
jiarting,  tlie  word  was  alfo-applied  to  that  :  The/ 
blessed .  Rebekah,  that  is,  t-key  ka-.is  berja'^e'j^dl^  accom- 
panying their  good  wifhes  with  semiflexion.  From 
this  known  meaning  of  the  word,  it  was  applied  to  a 
bending  of  the  knee  where  no  blefilng  ct)vild  be  intend- 
ed ;  he  made  his  camels  hr.eel  dcnvn.  Gen.  x.\iv.  tx. 
It  was  put  fometimes  for  the  refpeft,  that  was  paid  to 
a  magillrate.-Gen.xli.  43.  and  fometimcs  for  the  re- 
jpe<ft,  which  idolaters  paid  to  faife  gods.  But  to  ùokv 
t/be  hiee  to  an  idol  was  to  der.y  the  existence  of  God,  to 
renoAince  Jiis  ^uorsbip,  or,  *m  the  fcripture  ft)Ie,  to  curse 
Cod,  to  blaspheme  God,  &c.  Jf  I  beheld  the  sun,  or  the 
moon,  and  my  mouth  hath  kissed  my  band,  I  should  ba'-ce 
denied  the  Cod,  that  is  above.  Job  xxxi.  26,  27,  28.  On- 
ly the  fcope  of  the  place,  therefore,  can  détermina  the 
precife  meaning  of  the  v.-ord.  The  word  muft  be 
rendered  curse,  deny,  God,  or  renounce  bis  ivorship,  Job 
i.  5,  II.  and  it  mult  be  rendered  bless,  acknovilecige ,  or 
•u^ursbip  him,  in  ver,  21.  The  Septuagint,  after  a  long 
iarcaftic  paraphrafe,  fuppofed  to  have  been  fpoken  by 
Job's  wife,  renders  the  phrafe  eipon  tt  rema  pros  Knrion 
kal  teleuta.  To  bring  our  meaning  into  a  narrow 
compafs.  If  an  ancient  Jew  had  leen  a  dumb  man 
bend  his  knee  in  the  tabernacle,  or  in  the  temple,  hs 
Would  have. f aid  he  blessed  the  Lord.  l{a<l  he  fcen 
him,  bend  his  knee  at  court,  in  tlie  prefence  of  Solo- 
mon, he  would  iiave  faid  he  blessed,  that  ip,  he  saluted 
the  King.  And  had  he  feen  him  bend  liis  knee  in  a 
house  cfBr.a I,  or  in  Vin  idolatrous  ^ro^e,  he  would  have 
faid,  he  blessed  an  1  dol  ;  or,  as  the  embracing  of  idola- 
try was  the  renouncing  of  the  worfliip  of  the  true  God, 
hcwouldhavo  faid,  he  cursed  Jehovau.  We  liave 
ventured  this  conje<flure  to  prevent  any  prejudices 
egainll  the  Englilh  bible,  that  may  arife  from  the  feem- 
ingly  uncertain  meaning  of  fome  Hebrew  \^rords. 


The  Resurrection  of  jt sus  Christ,     19-1 

Je  fus  Ghrift  riféth  from  the  dead  ♦.  "  The  voice 
of  rejoicing-  and  falvation,  is  in  the  tabernacle^ 
of  the  righteous."  The  fyikm  of.  the  intidcl 
Gnks  :  "  he  errs,  not  knowing  the  fcriptures, 
nor  the  power  of  Gad,'*  Matt,  xxii.^9. 

3-  In  iliofeàifmal  days,  tyramiy  triumph  s  d  ever 
the  perseverance  of  niartys»  Innocence  was  ai)- 
pTtffed,  and  the  rewnrds  of  virtue  feem-^J  to  ht 
buried  in  the  tomb  of  him,  who,  above  aii  other  , 
had  devoted  himfelf  to  \t»  Jefas  Chrifh  rlfeth 
again  :  "  The  voice  of  rejoicing-  and  falvat'roTK 
is  in  the  tabernacles  of  the  righteous/*  The  de^ 
figiis  of4l)e  enemies  of  iRnocence  arc  all  fruRrài* 
ed,  and-their  attempts  to  difgrscc  pjurlty  fervx 
only  to  exalt  its  ^lory,  and  to  perpetuate  its 
memory.  Let  the  tyrants  of  the  church,  tlven^ 
rage  againft'.iis  ;  let  tbe  gates  cfksll^  Matt.  xv)« 
18>confult  to  dçfttoy  us  ;  Itt  tbe  kings  of  ihe 
earthy  more  furious  oftener  than  hell  itfflf,  ^ct 
themselves  against  the  Lord  and  against  his 
anointed^  Pfalr  ii.  2.  let  them  fei  up  gibbets,  lei 
them  equip  galleys,  let  them  kindU  fire»  to  burn. 
us,  and  prepars  racks  to  torture  us  ;  tlwy  th^?m<. 
felves,  and  all  their  cruel  inventions,  fliaîl  ferve 
the  purpofes  of  the  almighty  God  :  The  As-* 
Syrian  is  on]y  the  rod  of  bis  anger,  Ifa.  x*  5. 
"  Herod  and  Pilate  do  only  what  his  hand  and 
his  counfel  determined  before  to  be  done,"  Adi 
'\r,  28.  God  knowetb  how  to  reflrain  their  fury, 
and  to  fay  to  them,  as  he  faith  to  the  ocean, 
"  Hitherto  fhalt  thon  come,  but  no  further  : 
and  here  (ball  thy  proud  waves  be  flayed,"  Job 
xxxviii.  2. 

4,  Finally,  in  thofe  fatal  days,  death  triumphed- 
over:  all  human  hope  of  immortal  glory»  The 
deftiny  of  all  believers  is  united  to  that  of  Jefus 
Chrift.  He  had  faid  to  his  difciples,  because  /. 
live^  ye  shall  live  aîso,  John  xiv.  19.  In  like 
manner,  on  the  fame  principle,  we  may  fay.  If  • 
h^   be.  de  adj..  we  are  dead  alfo.     Apd  how  could. 


19^     The  Resurrection  of  jfcsus  Christ. 

we  have  hoped  to  live,  if  he  who  is  our  life,  had 
not  freed  himfelf  from  the  fiate  of  the  dead  ? 
Jcfus  Ghrift  rife'h  from  the  dead,  *'  The  voice 
OÏ  rejoicing  is  in  the  tabernacles  of  the  righte- 
ous." Nature  is  re-inftated  in  its  primœvaï  dig- 
nity ;  death  is  snvalhwed  up  in  victory,  1  Cor» 
5CV.  34.  the  grave  is  difarnied  of  its  fting.  Let 
iny  ryc-fight  decay  i  let  my  body  bow  under  the 
weight  of  ojd  age  ;  let  the  organs  of  my  body 
ceafe  to  peiform  their  wonted  operations  ;  let 
all  my  fenCes  fail  ;  let  death  fweep  away  the 
dear  relatives  of  my  bosonii  ^nd  my  friends,  who 
are  as  mine  oiifti  soul,  Deut.  xiii.  6.  let  thefe 
eyes,  guftiing  with  tears,  attended  with  fobs,  and 
forrows,  and  groans,  behold  her  expire,  who  was 
my  company  in  foUtude,  my  counfcl  in  difficulty, 
ny  comfort,  in  difgracc  ;  let  me  follow  to  the 
grave  the  bones,  the  carcafe,  the  precious  remains 
of  thi»  dear  part  of  myfelf  ;  my  converfe  is  fuf- 
pended,  but  is  not  deûroyed  ;  **  Lazsrus,  my 
friend,  lleepèth,  but  if  I  believe,  I  fhall  fee  the 
glory  of  God."  Je  fus  Ghrift  is  /Z'^  resurrection 
and  the  life,  John  xi.  2,  40,  25.  Ke  is  rifeo 
from  the  dead,  we  therefore  fhall  one  day  rife» 
yTftis  Ohrtft  is  not  a  private  perfon,  he  is  a  pub- 
I  c  rt-prefentative,  he  is  the  furety  of  the  church, 
"  thefirf^  fruits  of  them  that  deep.  If  the  fpirit 
of  him  that  r^ifed  up  Jtfus  from  the  dead,  dwell 
in  you  ;  he  that  raifcd  up  Chrifl  fron>  the  dead, 
l'hall  alfo  quicken  your  mortal  bodies,  by  his 
Spirit  that  dv/elleth  in  you,"  1  Cor.  xv.  CO, 
Rom.  viii.  2» 

Was  ever  joy  more  rational  ^  Was  trtumph 
ever  more  glorious  ?  The  triumphant  entries 
of  conquerors,  the  fongs  that  rend  the  air  in  praife 
of  their  vi£\ories,  the  pyramids  on  which  their 
exploits  are  traufmitted  to  pofterity,  when  they 
have  fubdued  a  general,  routed  an  army,  hum-, 
bled  the  pride,  and  repreffed  fhe  rage  of  a  foe  ;^ 
ought  not  all  thtfe  to  yield  to.  the  joys  that  are- 

occafioned 


Tht  Resurrection  of  Jam  Christ.     193^ 

occaiioned  by  the  event  which  we  celebrate  to 
lUy  ?  Oiight  not  ell  thefe  to  yield  to  the  vi<^o- 
nf  s  of  our  incomparable  Lord,  and  to  his  peo- 
ple's expreilions  of  praife  ?  One  part  of  the 
gratitude,  which  ii  due  to  beneficial  events,  i<5 
to  know  their  vaiuc,  and  to  be  affeded  with  the. 
brnefits  Y'hic;^  they  procure. 

Let  ijs  celebrate  the  praiie  of  the  author  o£ 
our  redemption,  my  brethren  ;  let  us  call  heavea 
and /earth  to  witEeis  our  gratitude.  Let  an,  in-.' 
cre«Te  of  zeal  accompany  this  part  of  our  en- 
gagcwcnts.  Let  a  double  portion  of  fire  frotn 
heaven  kindle  our  facrifice  \  and  with  a  hear.t 
penetrated  with -the  livciieli  gratitude,  and  witU. 
ttie  mo(t'arde:it  love,  let  each- chrifrian  exclaim^ 
''  Bleffed  be  the  God,  and  Father  of  my  Lord 
Jefus  Chrift,.wbo,  according  to  his  abiindai.c 
mercy,  hath  begotten  m*^  again  to  a  lively  hope». 
by  the  refurreî^wion  of  Jeiu^  Chrrfl  from  the  dead,'* 
1  Pet.  i.  3.  Let  iiini  j,oin  his  voice  to  that  ot 
angel?,  nnd,  In  concert  with  the  celeflial  intelli<. 
gences,  let  hiin.ung,  **  Holy,,  holy»  holy,  is  the 
Lord  of  hoHi  ;  tbe  whole  earth  is  full  of  his 
glory,"  Ifa.  vi,  .3.-  Let  the-  iahe macks  of  the 
righteous  refound  with  the  text,  the  right  h.7nd 
of  the-  Lord.^dotli'oaiiaiitly  :  the  rii^-ht  hand  of 
ib£  Lord  do:h  valiantly,  . 

But  what  mHanc holy  thought:  ire  theiV, 
which  interrupt  tlicpleaiures  of  this  day.?  Whole 
tabeniacies  are  thefe  ?  The  tabernacles  of  the 
righteous  ?  Ah  I  my  hreihre«  I  v/o  be  to  you, 
if,  under  pretence  that  the  righteous  ought  to 
rr^joice  to-day,,  you  vejoite  by  adding  iin  to  fm  \ 
The  refurreftion  of  the  Savjour  of  the  world, 
•pe»iei!lly  aliorts  with  the  other  parts  of  his  econ- 
Oujy.  It.  is  a  fpring  flowing  witji  motives  ot 
holinef?;.  God  has  left  nothing  undone  in  the 
v/ork  of  your  falvntion.  The  .  great  work  is 
iinilhed.  .  Jefus  Ghrifl  completed  it,  when  he  rofs 
irom  the  tomb.  The  Son  hath  paid,  the  ran. 
11  2  fuvîî. 


ig4     The  Resurrection  of  Jesus  Christ, 

iotUr  Th.*  Farlier  hath  accepted  it.  The  holy 
Spirit  hath  publiflied  it,  and  by  innumerable 
prodigies  hath  confirmed  it.  None  but  your- 
felves  can  condemn  you.  Nothing  can  deprive 
you  of  this  grace,  but  your  own  contempt  of  it. 

But  the  nK)Te  precious  this  grace  is,  tbe  more 
criminal,  and  the  more  affronting  to  God,  will 
your  contempt  of  it  be.  The  more  joy,  with 
which  the  glor}'  of  a  riJen  Jcfus  ought  to  infpire 
yon,  if  you  believe  in  him,  the  more  terror  ought 
yon  to  feel,  if  you  attempt  to  difobey  him.  He, 
•who  "declared  him  the  fon  of  God,  with  power 
by  the  refiirredtion  from  the  dead,  put  a  fceptre 
of  iron  into  his  hand,  that  he  might  break  his 
enemies,  and  dafh  them  in  pieces  like  a  potter's 
vciTel,"  Rom.  i.  4.  Pfal.  ii.  9.  Doft  thou  enter* 
into  thefe  refiet'tions  ?  Deft  thou  approach  the 
table  of  Jefus  Chrill  with  determinations  to  live' 
a  new  life  ?  1  believe  fo.  But  the  grand  fault- 
of  our  communions,  and  folemn  feftivali,  doth 
not  lie  in  the  precife  time  of  our  communions 
and  folemnities.  The  reprefentation  of  Jefus 
Chrrft  in  the  Lord's  fupper  ;  certain  reflections 
that  move  ccufcience  ;  an  extraordinary  atten- 
tion to  th-î  nobleft  ob]e(5\  in  religion  ;  the  fo- 
lemnities that  belong  to  bur  public  feftivals  ;  in- 
fpire us  with  a  kind  of  devotion:  but  how  often 
does  this  devotion  vanifh  with  the'  objedVs  that 
produced  it  ?  Thefe  auguft  fymbols  ftioiild  fol- 
low thee  into  thy  warfare  in  the  world.  A  voicr 
fliould  found  in  thine  ears  amidfV  the  tumult  of 
the  world  ;  amidft  the  diffipating  fcenes  that  be- 
fiege  thy  mind  ;  amidfl  the  pleafures  that  fafci- 
natc  thine  eyes  ;  amidft  the  grandeur  and  glory 
which  thou  caufeft  to  blaze  around  thee,  and 
viih  which  thou  thyfelt,  although,  alas  1  always 
mortal,  always  a  worm  of  the  earth,  always  duft 
and  alhes,  art  the  firft  to  be  dazzled  ;  a  voice 
ihould  found  in  thine  ear?,  Remember  thy  vows, 
remember  thine  oaths,  remember  thy  joys. 

My 


The  Remrreetion  of^  Jesus  Christ,     ig^^ 

My  brethreBj  if  you  be  not  to-morrow,  and 
till  the  next  Lord's  fupper-day,  what  you  are  to- 
day, we  recall  all  the  congratulations,  all  the 
benedidions,  and  all  t^e  declarations  of  joy, 
which  we  have  addrefFcd  to  you.  Inftead  of 
congratulating  you  on  your  happinefs  in  being, 
permitttd  to  approach  God  in  your  devotionS| 
we  will  deplore  your  wickednefs  in  adding  perfi* 
dy  and  perjury  to  all  your  other  crimes.  Inftead 
of  benediiiions  and  vows,  we  will  cry,  "  Anath- 
ema, Maranatha  ;  if  any  m^n  love  not  the  Lord 
Jefus  Chrift,  let  him  be  Anathema,"  1  Cor,  xvi, 
22.  If  any  man  who  hath  kiffèd  the  Saviour  be- 
tray him, /e/  bim  be  Anathema,  If  any  man  de- 
&lc  the  myrteries  of  our  holy  religion,  let  bim  b&: 
Anathema,  If  any  nran  *<  tread  under  foot  the 
Son  of  God,  and  count  the  blood  of  the  covenant' 
an  unholy  thing,  let  him  be  Anathema,"  Hcb. 
X.  29.  Inftead  of  inviting  thee  to  celebrate  the 
y>rûr?>e  of  the  author  of  our  being,  we  forbid  thee 
The  praftice,  for  it  is  comely  only  for  the  upright^ 
Pfal.  xxxiii.  1.  God^  by  our  miniftry,  saitb  to 
t^ee,  Thou  ivicktd  man  !  What  bast  tbou  to  dû  • 
to  take  my  covenant  in  thy  mouth?  Pfal,  K 
16.  Why  doth  tkat  mouth  now  blefs  my  name,- 
and  then  blafpheme  it  :  now  praife  me  thy  Crea- 
tor, and  then  defame  my  creatures  :  now  pub- 
li(h  my  gofpel,  and  then  profane  it  ^ 

If,  on  the  contrary,  you  live  agreeably  to  the- 
cngagemcnts  into  which  you  have  entered  to» 
day  J  what  a  day,  wbat  a  day,  my  brethren,  is 
this  day?  A  day  in  which  you  have  performed 
the  great  work,  for  which  God  formed  you,  and 
which  is  all  that  deferves  the  attention  of  an  im- 
mortal foul.  A  day  in  which  many  impuritiesy 
many  calumnies,  many  paffianate  actions,  many 
perjuries^  and  many  oaths  have  been  buried  in 
cverlaftin^  filence.  It  is  a  day,  in  which  you 
bavebeen-wafhed  in  the  blood  of  the  Lamb  ;  in 
which  yoti  have  entered  into  fcUowfnip  with 
^  God  ; 

\ 


1 96.    The  Résuruciion  of  Jesus  Chrisu 

God  ;  in  which  yoit  have  heard  thefe  triumphant 
iltouts  i»  the  church,  Groce^  grace  unto  ity  Zech. 
jv,  7.  A  oay  in  which  you  have  he^n^  raised  up., 
icgctber^  and  made  to-  sit  together  in  heavenly 
places  in  Christ  Jesusyr.]^h.  ii.  6.  A  day,  the 
pleafing  rcmembrance  of  which  will  follow  you 
to  your  death-bed,  and  will- enable  your  pallors 
to  open  the  g^ates  of  heaven  to  you,  to  commit 
your  iouls  into  the  hands  of  the  Receemer  who 
ranfouied  it,  and  fay  to  you.  Remember,  on  fucii 
a  day  your  fms  -were  efïaced  ;  remen)ber,  on 
fuxh  a  day  Jefos  ChriU  di farmed  death  ;  remem- 
ber, on  fucrta  day  the  gate  of  heaven  was  opened  ; 
to  you. 

O  day  !  which  the  Lord"  hath  made,  let  me 
for  ever  rejoice  in  thy.  light  I  O  day  of  dt'igns,> 
refolutions,  and  promifes,  may  I  never  forget 
thee!  O  day  .of  confalation  and  grace,  may  a 
nch  efFiifion  of  the  peace  of  God  on  this  auditor 
ry,.preierve  thy  memorial  through  a  thoufand- 
generations  1 

Receive    this   pea^e^    my  dear   brethreii.-       I 
fp;ead  over  you    hands  wafhcd  jin    the    innocent- 
blood  of  my  Redeemer  ;   and    :i3   our   rifen    Lori 
Jefus    ChrKl,  uhen  .he    appeared    to  his^difcipks,. 
laid  to  them,  Ft-ace^  peace  be   ur.toyou  ;   fo   we, 
by  his  command,  while  we    cdebrate  the  memo-r 
rable    hiftor-y   of,  hJs    refurreLlion,    fay    to   you, 
♦*  Peace,  peace  be  unto  yoii.  .  As  many    as  walk. 
according  to    tiiis    rule,  peacî  be    on    them,  and 
mercy,  and    upon    the  Ifrael  of  Goil,"    John  xx»- 
19,  2i.  Ga!.  vi.  16.     To  him  be  honor  and  glory.. 
:or  ever,— Amen. 


S^MON 


SERMON    VIII. 


THE  ABSURDirrOF  LIBERTINISM  AND^ 
INFIDELirr. 

PsALM,  xciv.  7,  8,  9,    10. 

They  say,  The  Lord  shall  not  see  rneither  shall 
the  God  of  Jacob  regard  it.  Understand,  ye 
viost  brutish  among  the  people  :  and  ye  foolsy 
when  will  ye  he  noise  ?  He,  that  planted  the 
earj  shall  he  not  hear  ?  He,  that  formed  the 
eye,  shall  he  not  see  ?  He,  that  chastiseth, 
the  heathen^  shall  not  he  correct  ?  He,  thatr 
teachetb  man  knowledge^  sltatl  not  he  know  ? 

Invective  and  reproach  feldom  pro- 
cjeed  from  the  mouth  of  a  man,  who  loves  truth 
and  defends  it.  They  are  the  ufual  weapons  of 
them,  who  plead  a  defperate  caufe  ;  who  feel 
therafelves  hurt  by  a  formidable  adrerfary  ;  who 
have  not  the  equity  to  yield,  when  they  ought 
to  yield  ;  and  who  have  no  other  part  to  t»ke, 
than  that  of  fupplying  the  want  of  folid  reafons 
by  odious  names. 

Yet,  whatever  charity  we  may  have   for  erro- 
neous people,  it  is  difficult  to  fee,   with  modera- 
tion,   men    obftinately   maintaining  fome  errors, 
guiding   their  minds    by  the    corruption  of  their 
bciirts»  and  choofing    rather  to  advance  the  moftr. 
palpable  abfordities,  than  to  give  the  lea  ft  check 
to    the  moft   irregular    pafE^^ns.     Hear  how    the 
facred    authors   treat    people   of    this   charaûer.. 
*^  My  people    is    fooiifh,  they   hav^   not   known 
me  ;  they  axe  fortifh  children,   they  hav£  no  un», 
derftanding.     The    ox  knoweth    his   awner,  and^ 
the   afs   hii    mafter's  crib  ;   but    Ifrael   doth  not 
know,  my  peonle  doth  not  confider.     Ephraim    is 

like 


19Ô  The  Absurdity  of 

like  a  niîy  dove  ^▼ithout  heart,»-  0  generation 
of  ripersj  who  hath  warned  vou-to  flee  from  the 
Avrach  to  come  ?  O  fooliOi  G.ilatians,  who  hath 
bewitched  you,"  Jer.  iv.  i2v  Ifa.  i.  3.  Hof.  vii. 
11.  Matt.  iii.  7-.  andGaî.-iii.  1. 

Not  to  multiply  examples,  Jet  it  fuifice  to  re- 
mark, that,  if  ever  there  were  meu,  who  deferv- 
cd  fuch  odious  ntimes,  they  ^te  I'uch  a?  our. 
prophet  de.rerib?s.  Thofe  abominable  men  I 
mean,  who,  in  order  to  violate  the  lav-^s  of  re- 
fig-^on  without  reniorfe,  maintain,  that  religion 
Is  a  chimera  ;  who  break  down  all  the  bt)unds, 
V'liich  God  halh  fet  to  the  wickednefs  of  man- 
kind, and  who  determine  to  be  obfVinate  infidel?, 
that  they  may  be  pescenble  libertineç.  The 
prophet,  therei^ore,  lays  allde,  in  refpeél  to  them, 
that  charity,  which  a  weak  mind  would  merit, 
that  errs  only  through  the  misforturic  of  a  bad 
education,  or  the  ftrait  limits  of  a  narrow  ca« 
pacity.  '*  O  ye  moft  brutifh  among  the  peo- 
ple," fa^ys  he  to  them,  *»  underftandi  Ye  fool3,^ 
Twhen  will  ye  be  wife  ?'.* 

People  cf  this  fort,  I  intend^  to  arttack  to-^day»: 
Not  that  I    promife   rnyfelf  much-fuccefs    witiv 
them,  or  entertain   hopes    of   reclaiming   them. 
Thcfe    are   the  fooh^   of    whom  Solomon    fays, 
"  though  thou  fhouldeft  bray    a  fool  in  a  mortar 
among  wheat   with    a    peflle,    yet  will   not   his, 
foolifhnefs   depart   from  him,"  Prov.  xxvii^  22. . 
But  I  am  endeavoring  to  prevent  the  pr©grefs  of' 
the  evil,  and  to   guard  our  youth   againft  favora- 
ble impretiions  of  inBdelityand  libertinifm,  which 
have    already    decoyed   away    toD  many    of    o*»- 
young  people,  and  tn  confirm  you  all  in  your    at- 
tachment to  your   holy  religion.     Let    us    enter 
into  the  matter. 

In  the  fly'e  of  the  facred  aothorsy  particularly 
in  that  of  our  prophet,  to  deny  the  exigence  cf 
a  God,  the  do£lrine  of  Providence,  and  the  effen- 
tial  difference  between  juft  and  unjuft,  is  one  and 

the 


Libertinism  and  Infidelity,       x^^ 

the  fame  thing.  Compare  the  pfalra,  out  of 
which  I  have  tîkeii  my  text,  with  the  fourteenth, 
with  the  fifty- third,  and  particularly  with  the 
tenth,  and  you  will  perceive,  that  the  prophet 
confcunds  them,  who  lay  in  tbeir  hearts^  there  is 
no  God,  with  thofc,  who  lay,  God  hath  forgotten  ; 
fie  bidetb  bis  face,  be  ivill  <never  sec.it,  Pfal. 
X.   11. 

In  effcd,  altboagh  the  lafl  of  thefe  doélrines 
may  be  maintained  without  admitting  the  Sifi:, 
yet  the  laft  is  no  lefs  cfTential  to  religion  than  the 
firft.  And  although  a  man  may  be  a  deiil,  and 
an  epicurean,  without  being  an  aiheift,  yet  the 
Jyftem  of  an  atheift  is  no  OTore  odious  to  God 
than  that  of  an  epicurean, -and  that  of  adeifl, 

I  [hall,  therefore,  make  but  one  man  of  thefe 
different  fnen,  and,  after  the  example  of  the 
prophet,  I  Oiall  attack  him  with  the  fame  arras. 
In  order  to  juftify  the  titles,  that  he  gives  an  in- 
fidel, I  fhali  attack, 

Î,  Kis   tafte. 

IL   His  policy. 

III.  His  indocility. 

IV.  His  logics,  or  to  fpeak  nor*;  ,properly, 
his  way  of  reafoning.  ' 

V.  Hi 5  morality. 

VI.  Hr»  confciencsc 

VII.  His  politenefa,  and  knowledge  of  the 
•world. 

Ic  all  thefe  reflétions,  which  I  fliall  propor- 
tion to  the  length  of  thefe  exercifes,  I  fiiall  pay- 
more  regard  to  the. genius  of  our  age  than  to  that 
of  the  li-mes  of  the  prophet  :  and  I  (hall  do  this 
the  rather,  becaufe  we  cannot  determine  on  what 
occalion  the  pfalm  was  compofed,  of  which  the 
text  is  a  part. 

I.  If  yba  confiier  the  taste,  the  difeernment 
and  choice  of  the  people,  of  whom  the  prophet 
fpeaks,  you  will  fee,  he  had  a  great  right  to  dé^ 
nomiïiàKQihzm  most  hut tsb  andjoolisb»     What 

an 


•4îOO  The  Absurdity  of 

an'excefs  mufl:  a  man  have  attained,  when  he 
hates  a  religion,  without  which  he  cannot  but 
be  miferable  1  Who,  of  the  happieft  of  man- 
kind, doth  not  want  the  fuccour  of  religion  Î 
What  difgraces  at  court  1  What  mortifications 
in  the  army  I  What  accidents  in  trade  I  What 
uncertainty  in  fcience  1  What  bitterncfs  in 
jilcafure  I  What  injuries  in  reputation  I  What 
ir.conftancy  in  riches  !  What  difappointments 
in  projed"is  I  What  infidelity  in  friendihip  1 
W'hat  vicifiitudes  in  fortune  I  Miferable  man  I 
What  will  fupport  thee  under  fo  many  calami- 
ties ?  What  miferable  comforters  are  the'paf- 
fions  in  thefe  fad  periods  of  life  !  How  inade- 
quate is  philofophy  itfelf,  how  improper  is  Zeno, 
^o\v  unequal  are  all  his  followers  to  the  tafk  of 
calming  a  poor  mortal,  when  they  tell  him, 
"  Misfortunes  are  infcparable  from  human  na- 
ture. No  man  fhould  think  himfelf  exempt 
from  any  thing,  that  belongs  to  the  condition  of 
mankind.  If  maladies  be  violent,  they  will  be 
fliort  ;  if  they  be  long,  they  will  be  tolerable. 
A  fatal  neceflity  prevails  over  all  mankind  ; 
complaints  and  regrets  cannot  change  the  order 
of  things.  A  generous  foul  fliould  be  fuperior 
to  all  events,  it  (hould  defpife  a  tyrant,  defy  for-. 
tune,  and  render  itfelf  infenfible  to  piiin."  Tol- 
erable refledlions  in  a  book,  plaufible  arguments 
in  a  public  auditory  Î  But  weak  reflexions, 
vain  arguments,  in  a  bed  of  infirmity,  while  a 
man  is  fuffiring  the  pain  of  the  gout,  or  th« 
ftone  I 

O  I  how  neceffary  is  religion  to  us  in  thefc 
fatal  circumftaHces  I  It  fpeaketh  to  us  in  a 
manner  infinitely  more  proper  to  comfort  us  un- 
der our  heavieft  aiHidions  !  Religion  faith  to 
you,  "  Out  of  the  mouth  of  the  Moft  High  pro- 
ceedeth  evil  and  good,"  Lam.  iii.  38.  "He 
formeth  light  and  createth  darknèfs  ;  be  maketh 
peace,  and    crcateih  evil^?'  Ifa.  xlv.  7,     *'  Shall 

there 


Ziberiinism  and  Injidéïiiy,        201 

there  be  evil  'm  the   city,  and  the  Lord  hath  not 
done  it?"  Amos  îti.  6.     Religion  tells  yon,  that., 
if  God  afHidi  you,  it  is  for  your  own  advantage; 
it  is,  that,  being  uneafy  on-eartlvyon  may  take 
your  flig-ht  toward   hc-ùven  ;    that  **   your    light 
affliflion,  which  is  but  for  a  moment,  may    work 
for  y.ou  a  far  more  exceeding  and  eternal  weight' 
of  glory,"  2  Cor.   iv,    17.     Religion    bids    yo« 
*'  not  to  Jthink   it    ftrange    concerning    the  fiery 
trial,  which'is  to  try. you,  as  though  fome  ftrangc  * 
thing  happened  unto  you,"  1  Per.  iv.  12.   but  to, 
believe,  tbat  »'  the. trial  of  your  faith,  being  much 
more  precioa.3  than  that  of  gold,  which  perillietH, 
wHl  be  ^ound  unto  praife,  and   hQnor,'and   glory, 
at  the  appearing  of  Jefus  Ghrifl,"  chap.  i.  7, 

But  religion  is  above  all  necelTary  in    the  grand 
vicillit*ude,  i'h   the    fatal  point,  to    which  all  the  '. 
(lef)'3   of  life  tend,  I  mean,  at  the  hour  of  death* 
For, -at    length,    after    we    have    ru'fhed    iato  al| 
plçafurès,  after  weh^ve  fiing   well,  danced  well, 
feJfled  well,   we   muft  die,    we   muft   die.     And 
what,  pray,  except    religion,    can  fuppoit  a  man, 
OrUggling  with  tbe  king  of  terrors    ?  Job   xviii, 
14;     A  man,  who  fees  his  grandeur  ,  abafed,  his 
fortune  di ft i'lbu ted,  hi's  c&hnêftions'  difîolved,  his 
fenfes    benumbed,  his    grave  dug,   the  world  re-  " 
tiring  from  him,  his   bone3^hangi«:g  on  the  verge 
of  the  grave,   and  his  foul  divided  between  the 
horrible   hope  of  finking  into    nothing,  and    the    • 
dreadful  fear  of  falling  into  tbe  hands  of  an  angry, yq 
God.  ?  T 

Jn  fight  of  tlicfe  formidable  objpfts,  fall,  fall, 
ye  bandages  of  infidelity:  1-ye  v«ils  of  obfcur.ity 
and;  depravity  1  and  tetiwe  perceive  how  necelTa- 
ry religion  is  to  man.  \\.  is  th^at,  which  .fweet- 
ens  the  bitte/dft  of  all  bitters.  It  is  that,  which 
difarms  the  moft  invincible  monfter.  It  is  that, 
which  transformeth  the  moft  frighcful  of  all  ob-  -.  . 
jefts,  into  an  objed  of  gratitude  and  joy.  It 
IS  thuty  which  calm»  the  eo«fcience,  aivd  confirms 
S  the 


aoé  The  Ahmdityof 

the  fouU  It  is  that,  which  prefents'to  the  dy- 
ing believer  another  being,  ;«nother  life,  anothtr 
economy,  other  objefts,  and  other  hopes.  It  is 
that,  which,  "  while  the  outward  man  perifhetb^ 
reneweth  the  inward  man  di)'  by  day,"  2  Cor.  iv, 
16.  It  is  that,  which  diûipates  the  horrors  of 
the  valley  oft&e^sbadow  of  deaths  Pfal.  xxiii.  '4. 
It  is  that,  which  cleaves  the  clouds  in  the  fight 
of  «  departing  Stephen  ;  tells  a  converted  thief, 
■40-day  shah  ikcuhe  in  paradise^  Luke  xxiii.  43. 
and  cries  to  all  true  penitents,  Blessed  are  -iùc 
dead  v>hich  die  in  tle.Lordy  JRev.  xiv.  15, 

II.  Having  taken  the  unbelieving  libertine  on 
his  own  intereft,  I  take  him  on  the  public  inter- 
eft»  and,  having  attacked  his  taflc,  and  difcern. 
tnent,  I  attack  his  .policy,  Aa  in£del  is  a  dif» 
turber  of  public  peace,  who,  by  undertaking  to 
fap  the  foundations  of  religion,  undermines  thofe 
of  fociety.  Society  cannst  subsist  'without  re- 
ligion.  If  plaufible  objediong  may  be  fcrmed 
againft  this  propofuion,  it-is  becaufc  opponents 
have,  had  the  art  of  difguiHng  it.  To  explain  it, 
is  to  preclude  the  fophifms,  which  arc  objedled 
againft  it.  Permit  u»  to  lay  down  a  few  explan- 
atory principles. 

Firft.  When  we  fay,  Society  cannot  subsist 
without  religioHi  we  do  not  cooiprehend  in  our 
-propofjtion  all  the  religions  in  the  world.  The 
proportion  include»  only  thofe  -religions,  which 
retain  the  fundamental  principles,  that  conftitutc 
the  bafifc  of  virtue  ;  as  the  immortality  of  the 
foul,  a  future  judgment,  a  particular  Providence. 
We  readily  graxit,  there  may  be  in  the  world  a 
religion  worfe  than  atheifm  c  for  example,  any 
religion,  that  fhould  command  its  votaries  to 
kill,  to  aflaHlnatc,  to  betray.  And,  aa  we  readi- 
ly grant  this  truth  to  thofe,  who  take  the  pains 
to  maintain  it,  fo  whatever  they  oppoTe  to  us, 
tîktfîlfrom  tbc  feiigiom  of  pagaws^  whîch  were 

hurtful 


LihrHnism  .arii^  Infiiddity.      i  «eg 

,  hurtful- to  fociety,  is  only  vain  dedimation,  that 
proves  ftothing  againft  us. 

Secocdiy.  When  wt  afHrm,  Society  eannct 
subsist  without  reîigîony  we  do  not  pretend,  that 
religion)  which  retains  articles  fafc  to  fociety, 
may  not  fo^mix  thofe  articles  "with  other  princi- 
ples ptrnJcious  to  it,  that  they  may^  fccnr  at'firft 
*^ght  wôrle  than  athcifm.  We  affirm  only,. 
that,  to  take  the  whole  of  Tiich  a  religion,  it  is 
more  advantageous  ta  fociety  to  hare  it>  than 
to  he  defHtute-  of  it.  All,  therefore^  that  is 
objected  againÛ  our  prcpofiiion,  concerning  thofc 
•wars,  «rufades,  and  pcrfecutions,  which  were 
eaufed  by  fuperftinon,  all  this  is  only  vain 
fophiftry,  whicli  doth  irot  affeét  our  thefts  in  t^c- 
Icift. 

Thirdly.  When  we  Uy^^ocieiy  cannot  subsist 
without  religiony  wc  do  not  fay,  that  religion, 
€TÉn  the  pureft  religion,  may  not  caufc  fomc  dif- 
orders  in  fociety  :  but  wc  affirm  only,  that  thefe 
dirorders,  however  numerous,  cannot  counter- 
balance the  benefits,  which  religion  procure»  to 
it.  So  that  alt  objeAions,  taken  flrom  the 
troubles,  which  zeal  lot  truth  may  have  produced 
in  fome  circumftances,  are  only  vain  objections, 
that  cannot  weaken  our  propofition. 

Fourthly.  When  wc  affirm,  Society  cannot 
suhist  without  religion^  wc  do  not  affirm,  that 
all  the  virtues,  which  are  di^laycd  in  fociety, 
proceed  from  religious  principles  ;  fo  that  all 
jud  magiftratfs  are  jii{\  for  their  love  of  equity  ; 
that  all  grave  ecclcfiaftics  arc  ferious,  bccaufc 
they  refpe£t  thei/  charafter  ;  that  all  chafte 
women  are  chafle  from  a  principle  of  love, to  vir- 
tue r  human  motives,  we  freely  grant,  often  pre- 
vail inftead  of  better.  We  affirm  only,  that  fc- 
Jiigious  principles  arc  infinitely  rtiore  proper  to 
regulate  fociety  than  human  motives.  Many 
perfons,  we  maintain,  do  aAuàlly  govcrti  their 
condufl  by  reli^ous  principle»)  and  fociety  ^ou!d 

be 


204  The  Ahmrdiiy  of 

be  incomparably  more  irregular,  were  tlrere  no 
religion  in  it.  That  lift  of  virtues,  therefore, 
•which  only  educatiion  and  connitution  produce, 
doth  not  at  all  afFeft  the  principle,  v*h\ch  we 
are  endeîfvcring  to  eftablifh,  and  he,  wfiotîik«s 
his  objedlions  from  it,  doth  but  beat  the  air.  ' 
*  .  Laftly.  When  we  affirm,  Society  cannot  sub' 
iist  witbont  rvîigiozty  we  do  not  fay,  that  all 
atheifts  and  deifts  ought  therefore  to  abandon 
tiemfelves  to  all  forts  of  vices  :  nor  that  they, 
who  have  embraced  atheifm,  if  indeed  there  have 
been  any  fuch,  were  always  the  moft  wicked  of 
mankind.  Many  people  of  thefe  chara6\?ers,  we 
©wn,  lived  in  a  regular  manner.  We  affirm  on- 
ly, that  irreligion,' bf  itfelf,  openeth  a  door  to 
>1!  forts  of  vices  ;  aijd  that  men  are  fo  forni^ed, 
that  their  dilorders  would  increafe,  were  thiey  to 
disbelieve  the  doctrines  of  the  exiftence  of  a 
God,  of  judgmeni,  and  of  Providence.  All  thé 
examples,  therefore,  that  are  alledged  againft 
us,  of  a  Diagoras,  of  a  Theodorus,  of  a  Pliny,  of 
fVanini,  cf  fome  focieties,  real,  or  chimerical, 
who,  it  is  pretended,  lived  regular  lives  witliout 
the  aid  of  religion  ;  all  thefe  examples,  I  .fay, 
make  nothing  againft  our  hypothefis. 

Thefe  expla-nations  being  granted,  wc  main- 
tain^ithi^t  »6 -politician  can  fucGçed  irt  a  defign 
ct  Uniting  wen  In  one  focial  boiiy,  withciit  fup- 
pofjng  ;the  truth'and  reality  of  religion.  For, 
if  thîsrè:'  be  no  religion,  each  member  of  fociety 
may  do  what  he  pleafisth  ;  and  then  each  would 
give  a  loole  to'his  pafiîocs  ;  each  wtruld  employ 
his  power  in  cruiliing  t^>e  weak,  his  cunning  in 
deceiving  the  fimple,  h'v§  éloquence  in  feducitig 
the  creduioas,  tii's  credit»  in  mining  commerce,' 
his  authority  in  dlftreifing  the  whole  with  horror 
atid  terror,  and  carnage  and  blood.  FrlghtfuT 
diforders  in  their  nature  ■:  but  necelTary  on  prin- 
ciples of'-:rnfidelity  I  For  if  you  foppofe,  tbefe; 
diiorcjers  may  be  prevented,  their  prcvepliôn  muft* 

be 


Liiefiinim.  ani  Infidtlity,        ^o^^ 

be  «ttrlbutcd,  either  to  piivate  intereft,  to  worlds 
ly  honor,,  or  to  human  laws» 

^Miprhate  inter  est  z?itii\Qt  fopply  the  place 
of  religion.  True,  were  all  men  to  agree  to  obey. 
the  precepts  of  religioii,  each  would  find  hi«  owa 
nccount  in  his  ©wn- obedience.  But  it  doth  not 
depead  on  an  individual  tooppofe  a  popula.r  tor- 
rent, to  reform  the  public,  and  to  make  a  nevs^ 
*vror!d  ;  and,  while  the  workt  continues  in  its 
prcfent  i\ate,  he  wilt  find  a  thouCaiîd  circuift- 
ilaiices,  in  which  virtue  is  iiwûoipatibk  with 
private  intereft. 

Nor  can  worldly  honor  fupply.  the  place  of  re- 
ligion. For  what  is  worldly  honor  }  It  is  a 
fuperficial  virtue  ;  an  art,  that  one  man  poffeïTeth, 
of  difguiîing  hibifelf  from  another  ;  of  deceiving 
poHtely;  of  appearing  vittuotis,, rather  than  ci» 
Wing  aÂually  fo.  If  yoi»  extend,  the  limits  of 
worJdly  honor  further,  if  you  make  it  confift  in 
that  purity  of  confciencc,  and  in  that  reftitude 
of  intention,  which  are  in  efteCI  &rm  and  fohd> 
foundations  of  virtue,  you  will  find,  either  that-, 
this  is  only  a  £he  idea  of- what  alm0i\  nobody  is. 
capable  of,  or,  if  I  may  be  allowed  to  fay  fo, 
that  the  virtues,  which  compofe  your  complex 
idea  of  worldly  honotr,  arc  really  branches  of 
religion. 

Finally.  Human  /aïw  cannot  fupply  the  place 
of  religion.  To  whatever  degree  of  perfection 
they  may  be  improved,  they  will  always  favour 
Hi  three  things  of  the  imperfeftion  of  the  legif» 
Jators. 

Î.  They  will  be  imperfect  in  their  substance» 
They  may  prohibit,  indeed,  enormous  crimes  s 
but  they  cannot  reach  refined  irregularities 
which  are  not  the  lefs  capable  of  troubling  fo 
ciety  for  appearing  lefs  atrocious.  They  may 
forbid  murder,  theft,  and  aduUery  :  but  they^ 
can  neither  forbid  avarice,  anger,  nor  concupif- 
ccuce»  They  will  avail  in  the  prcferving  and 
S  2  dilpofing 


206  Tk€-AÏsû4-àity  oj 

difpôfing  bf"pf6-|ïerty<  'ti^çy  iiray  comnvan*!  tbf 
payment  ot"  laxes  \o  the  crown.  and  of  debts  ta 
the  mcrcViaiiç,  the  ciitti'vation  of  icicnces,  and 
libellai  krts  î  bo't-'thty  cannot  orcUin  patieucei 
meekiifi's,  and  love^;  and,  you  will»  grant,  a  ib- 
cfety,  in  whi.ch  there  is  neither  pTaiience,  meek- 
iiefv  nor  love,  muft  needs  be  an  unhappy  fo- 
crety. 

^.  Huni^^n  iaw,s.  wil!  be  iv£q\  :n  their  7nj„iv£S.^„ 
The  rewards,  w.hich  they  offer,  may  ije  fûrborwe, 
for  nien  way  Jo  without  tkem  ;  the  puniûitiient?, 
which  they  inflicl,  Hiay-  be  fuâered  \  and  ihene 
are  fome  particular  cafes,  in  which  they,  whp 
derogate  from  their,  authority,  may  advasce  their 
own  intereft  more  than  if  they  conft.antly  £nd 
fcrupsloufty  fubrait  .to.it. 

3.  Human  iaws-'will-  fae  restrained  in  their* 
extent,  Kiags,  tyrants,  mafters  of  th^  world, 
know  the  art  of  freeing-  themCclves  from  them. 
The  laws  avenge  tis  on  an  infignificant  thief, 
whom  th€  pain  of  hunger  and  the  fear  of  c^eath 
tempted  to  break  open  our  houfes,  to  r©b  us  of  a 
Î rifting  funi  :  but  itho  will  avenge  us  of  magrfffi. 
tern  thieves?  .  For,  my  bi^êth-ren,  fome  meh,  in 
courticâbinets,  in  dedicatory  epifU'es,  in-  the  fc-r- 
TuoBs  of  flatterer^,  and  in  the  prologues  of  pce^», 
3Fe  called  conquerors,  heroes,  demi-gods  ;  but 
:n  tliis  pulpit,  in  this  churchy  in  the  prefence  of- 
the  God,  who  âlletb  this  houfe,  and  who  regard- 
eth  not  th€  appearances  of  men,  you  conqueror?, 
you  heroes,  you  demi  gods,  are  ofrcr»  nothing- 
but  thieve»  and  incendiaries.  Who  Dial  I  avenge 
us  of  thofe  men,  wIk>,  at  the  hcîkcl  of  a  hundred 
thoufand  ûaves,  ravage  tlie  whole  wor^d,  pillager 
cu  the  right  hand  and  on  the  left,  violatt  th* 
moft  lacred  rights,  and  overwhelm  focicty  with 
injuftice  and  oppt-efTion  ?  Who  doth  not  per- 
ceive the  infuftîciency  of  human  laws  on  this  ar- 
ticle, and  the  abiolute  ntctility  of  religion  ? 

III.  The 


^        Lïocriimm  and  Infidelity,       i6y^ 

Hi.  Th€  infiïîel  carrieth  hig /Wéic/V/Çyto  l^e»* 
utmoft  degree  of  extravagance,  by  nnderta-kin^^ 
alone  to  op^ôfe  "âfîl;  mankind^  and  by  audacibufly 
preferring  his  own  judgment  abovfe  that  of  tlié*" 
whole  world,  Mfho^  excepting  a  fmal?  number,'' 
have  unaRJmouilj^  embraced  the  t ruths j  x^hicît' 
he  reje.d\?.  *  '  -  •       •  .:  t>»'* 

This    ar^mentj*4akén   from  unarfi'irôus  totv 
Pent,  fuinilhcth  in  faVor  of  religion,  either  a  bare'- 
prefumption,  or  a  r^al    demonftration,  accordîrîg"^ 
to  the   different   faces,   u^nder   whic-h  it   is    pfç- 
ientèdr    ■   '   ■■'  '■   •'•ir';'     .  •  .:  ■<  >.-t 

It  furniiheth  a  proof,'  f5et^aps  more  than   pre^^ 
iumptive,  when    it  is  oppoled  to  the   objec\ioT7's;  » 
which     ail  -  unbciieving      phifofopher    alledgetJK'' 
wgainR    religicn.     For^  although'  the  faith   of  i^ 
rati'onal  man  ôàgh-t  Act  to   be  founded  on  a  plo-  ' 
raMl}*  of  fiiffragcs,   yetUvnan-itnity  cf  opinion "'i^'' 
r&i^e(5lablTe,     when    it     hat«h-  three    chara(flerSi-> 
\i  IVheii  an  opinion  prevails    in  all  places*     Pj'e-'"' 
fudice  varies   with   climates,  "and    whatever  de- ' 
fends  on  human  caprice,  dlft*»rs  in  France,  and  iti 
Spain,  in  Europe,  and  in-  Afia,'  according  as  the 
inhabitants  of  each  country  have  their  blood  hot' 
oH  *old    ;    their    imagination    flrong    or   iveak,  ' 
2.  IVben  an  opiniojt prevails  at  all  times*     Preju- 
dices  chargci.with    the  liiii^s  ;  ycfws   inftrin^t   ? 
and  experience  corrects   errors,  which   ages  have 
rendered  venerable.     3.  IViben  an  opinion  is  con- 
trat)' to  the  passions   oj  men,     A  prejudice,  ttfat 
contronls  human  paffions,  caçnot  be  of  any   long: 
«Juration.     The  intcreft  that  a   man   hath  in  dil^  > 
coveriug  his  wiflake,    will   pt}:t  him  cm  ufing  all 
his   endeavors  to  devfeîope  a    dtluûon»;;  -.Thef* 
three  chara£\ers  agree  to  truth  only..    ..k,  '   ih  ■  i    ;  ^ 

I  3m  aware,  that  fome  pretend  to  enervate 
this  argument  by  the  tcftimofiies  of  fonie  an« 
ciènt  hiftorians,  and  by  the  relation»  of  fonn 
modern  travellers,. who  tell  ijs  of  fomc  individu^ 
aïs,    ànd    of:  foaie    jdioic  ,'foticties,    who    are  • 


»c6  71k  Ahuràiiy  of 

dcllitute  of  tke  kivowtcdgc  of  êoô,  and  of  «e- 

Ijgion. 

But,,  ii!  order  to  a  folid  r«ply,  w<  arwnge  thc(e 
atheifts,  and  d«i{ls,  who  are  oppofed  to  u&,  \n 
three  different  clftïTcs..  The  fifft  confifts  of  phi- 
lofoipbers,  the  next  of  the  fenlekfs  populace, 
and  the  laliof  proftigate  perfont.  Pbilos<xpb€rs.i 
il^ou  attend  clofely  to  the  icatler,  m\\  appear) 
at  lead  the  gr^ated  part  of  them  will  a|ipear,  to 
kave  been  accuftui  of  having  no  r^I^gion,  only  be- 
caufe  tbey  had.  a  ,pw<r  religion  thaa  the  reft  of 
their  fellow  citixens.  They,  would  not  admit  a. 
plurality  of  gods>  thty  were,  therefore,  accufed 
of  believing  no  God*  The  infidelny  of/;&#  iense- 
less  popuiace^  is^  fa'Wirable  to  our  argument.  Wc 
aftrm,  wherever  ther«  k  a  ff  aric  of  rcafon,  there 
is  alfo  a  fpark  of  religion.  Is  it  aCtonilhiog  that 
they,  who  have  renounced,  the  former,  ihould  re- 
nounce the  latter  alfo  ?  A»  to  the  profligate <, 
who  extinguife  their  own  little  light,  we  fay  of 
them,  with  a  modern  writer,  ^  is  ghùcus  to 
religion  to  hafte  enemies  q/tbis  character» 

But  let  us  fee,  whether  thj«  unanimous  con- 
fent,  which  hath  aSTordcd  us  a  prefumption  in 
favor  of  religion,  will  furniOi  us  witSi  a  demoii- 
ftratîon  againft  thoftî  who  oppofe  it.. 

Authority  ought  never  to  prevail  over  our 
mind*  again  ft  a  judgment,  grounded  on  folid 
rcafons,  and  received  on  a  cool  examination. 
But  authority,  efpecially  an  authority  founded  on 
unanimity  of  fentini«i>t^  ought  always  to  fway 
our  minds  in  regard  to  a  judgment  formed  with- 
out folid  rtafons,  without  examination,  and  with- 
out difcufiion.  Ko  men  dcferve  to  be  called 
t"he  ivoii  fooiisbj  and  tl»c  nwst  brutish*  among  the 

peoplcy 

*  Mr.  Saurin  follows  the  reading  of  the  French  vev^ 
Ccn,  les  p'.xm  Irutaiix,  most  brutifh.  This  is  perfeflly 
agreeable  to  thé  original,  for  the  Hebrew  forms  the 
fuperlative  degree  by  prefixing  the  letter  btth  to  a 
noun-fub^l*ntivc,  which  fgllowa  an  adjeAiVe,  as  here,. 


Lihrtinism  and  Infidelity  »       sosgt* 

people^  fo  mOch  as  thofe  men,  who,  being  as  the 
greatcft  number  of  infidels  are,  without  flody, 
and  without  knowledge  ;  who,  without  deigning 
to  weigh,  and  even 'without  condefcending  to 
hear  the  reafons,  on  which  all  the  men  in  the 
world,  except  a  fewr,  found  the  doûrine  of  the 
cxiftencc  of  God,  and  of  Providence,  give  them- 
felves  an  air  of  infidelity,  and  infolently  fay  ; 
Mercury  Trifmegiftus,  Zoroafter,  Pythagoras, 
Ariftotle,  Socrates,  Plato,  Seneca  ;  moreover, 
Mofes,  Solomon,  Paul,  and  the  apollles,  taught 
fnch  and  fuch  dodlrines  :  but,  for  my*  part,  I  am 
not  of  their  opinion.  And  on  what  ground, 
pray,  ^o  you  rcjeél  the  doctrines,  which  have 
been  defended  by  fuch  illuftrious  men  ?  Do  you 
know,  that,  of  all  charafters,  there  is  not  one  ft> 
difficult  to  fuftain,  as  that,  which  you  afTeft  ? 
For,  as  you  deny  the  mod  corhmon  notion^,  th% 
cleareft  truths,  fcntiments  which  are  the  niôft 
generally  rtceived,  if  you  would  maintain  aft 
appearance  of  propriety  of  charafter,"  yo«  muft 
be  a  fuperior  genius.  -You  muft  rhake  profoûil'd 
refearches,  digcft  iminenfe  volumes,  and^  difcufs 
warky  au  abftrad  qutftion.  "  You' ihiiUMéàrn  t^e 
art  of  evadifig  demonftratioris,  -of  •  jjfalliating 
fophifms,  of  parrying  ten  thôùfarid  thruftsV.  thrrft 
from  all  parts  Will  be  t'aken  "at-  you.  Bat  ybif, 
contemptible  genius  1  ybtf  idiot  !  you,  Vt'hô 
hardly  knew  how  to  arrange  twd  wofds  WitHodt. 
offending'  againft  the  rules  of  grammar,  or  itô  . 
affociatc  two  ideas  without  fhock'ing  commo 
fenfe,  how  do  you  expe<Sl  to  fuftain  a  charaftéf. . 
which  the  greateft'  génîufes  are  ' 'incapable  '-tff 
fupporting  r     ^      ^  ."  «'      '    ^*   '     "^       ^^'  *' 

ÎV.,/ï'et,  asjjo  man  is^fo  «jipreafonable  as, not 

to  profess  to  reafow  j  an^vjï»^  "P  nian  takes  up  ,;^ 

.;:  V  ;  ..^    : .  :     '  -notion^x 

•«     ?  n  •+fY.  u  '     •        .   ■ .     . 

Cant.    J.    8.    Prov.    xxx.   30.  hommum  hx\i\.\ssimi  ; 

hominum  ftipudii^mi  ;  totlus  hrjus 'pop*',ili    ftupidiwtr 

mi  ;  fay  commentators, 


f^lj^p  'The  '^surdity  of- 

„oqtion  fa  eagerly,  as  jîot  to  pique  Wmfclf  on  Ifav— 
^ng  taiicn  Jt^up  after  a  mature  dtliberation  ;  w* 
njufi.  talk  to  the  icfUJcl  as  to  a  pliiiofppher,  wlior 
,al^va.ys  follows  t-be, dilates  oi  içafon,  and  argues 
by  prinCjiplcs  and  coDrc(;^ue»ccs.  Well  then  I 
ij,ct  ps  examine  i>»Ji  h^'ify  or,,as  1  fa  id  before, 
^iis  fuiqy  of  r^ff-&:^i,tig  i,  his  way  of  r^afoning, 
ypjk  will  fee,  is  ïis  brutaJity,  and  his  logic  con- 
^^ptcs  his,exira\:^ganct. 

In.ord^r  to  comprehend  this,  weigh,  in  ths 
iBïoft;^xa5k  and  equitable  balanee,  the  Argument 
^f  our  prophet*  "  He,  that  planted  the  ear, 
(hall  he  »pt  hear  ?  He,.tb^t  forvned  the  eyCf- 
ihall  be  i>ot  fee  ?  He,  tljat  chaftiicth  the  hea- 
then, (hall  not  he  oorreô  ?:  He,  that  tcacheth 
jpan,knowledg«T^î^^^<*^  he  know  ?"  TheTc  are> 
in  bi;ic/,  three  fourcea  of  evidences,  wKi<b  f»jpply> 
tht  whole  of  religion  with  proof.  The  firlV  are 
taken  from  the  works  of  nature  ;  Jle^wbo  plant" 
€d  I  be  4ar  ;  JJct  nuiho  formed  the  eye,  Tlic 
itcond  arc  ;akcn  from  the  eco^Jonoy  of  Provi- 
l^pce ,\.  JBe^  that  cAasfifetb.  the  iheatiitfzu  Tb« 
;^ird  are  taken  froin  the  biilory  of  the  chureh  ; 
Jfe^  thatteaehetbm^n  MnowUdge» 

Tbefirfti»re  taken  from  the  ^ondeiful  wofIûi 
§i^ature,  The;pr©pbfi,aUe4gcth  only  two  ex- 
,;)P3pUs  ;  thjB  o«e  is  that  of  the  ««r,  the  other 
.tkatofxhe  t>^  NoDe  can  commuoicate  what 
^e  ha(h  not,  is  the  moA  inconteAible  of  all  prio« 
/eipjes.  He,  who  coipmumcateth  faculties  to 
il^^'nUs,  wbona  he  createth,  muft  needs  ;pofTef$ 
:whal€.ver  is  ipqft  noble  in  fuch  faculties.  He, 
who. çin^ powered  creatures  to  bear,  mufthimfelf 
hear.  He,  who  imparted  the  faculty  of  difcern- 
ing  objedls,  mud  needs  hinifclf  difcern  thcrn. 
Ct^fc^uently,  t^rere  vi  great  extravapjance  in 
faying,  The  hord  ahali  not  seCy  •neit'itcr  sbali 
tbe  God'tf  Jacob  regard  i>> 

The  faire  argument,  which  the  ftru£lure  of 
<^m  ear»,  axid  tb^t  of  our  eyes,    affbrd»  us,  we 

dériva 


Liheriinism  and  Jnfiâèli^.       2  ii  '' 

derive  alfo  from  all  the  wonderful  Works  of  thé* 
Creator.  The  Creator  poffeffeth  all  thofe  great 
and  noble  exceileflcies,  in  a-fùprcTne  degree,  thé* 
'faint  fhadows  of  which  be  hath  communicatee "' 
to  creatures.  On  thtïi  principle,  what  an  idea' ' 
ought  we  to  form  of  the  Creator  ?  From  What  ' 
a  profound  abyfs  of  power  mtJft  thofe  boundlefs 
fpaces  have  proceeded,  that  immeafurable  ex- 
tent, in  which  imagination  is  loft,  thofe  vaô 
bodies,  that  furround  us,  thofe  luminous  globes, 
thofe  flaming  fpheres,  which  revolve  in  the 
heavens,  along  with  air  the  other  works,  that 
compofe  this  univerfe  '  From  whiat  an  abyfs  of 
wffdom  rauft  the  fuccefQOns  of  feafon^,  of  dajr, 
and  of  night,  bave  proceeded,  thofe  glittering 
ftars,  fo  exa€t  in  tiieir  courfes,  and  fo  pijn£lu3ti 
in  their  duration  ;  alcngf  Wrth  lalt  the  different 
Tecret  fprings  in  the  univerfe,  which  with  the 
utinoft  accuracy  anfwer  their  delign  ?  Fi-orti 
what  an  abyfs  of  intelligence  moft  rational  creà- 
turiîs  cotnê,  beings,  who  conftiture'the  glory  of 
the  intelligent  world  ;  profound  politicians,  wh© 
•^ïry  into  the  inoft  intricate  folds  of  the  human 
heart  ;  geficraU,  who  drffiife  themfelvcs  thi-ongh 
a  whole  aftiy»  animating  with  thèif  eyes,  and 
with  their  voices,  the  various  regiments,  which 
cortipofe  their  forces  ;  -admirable  gcniufcs,  wh« 
derelopethe  myftcriea  of  nature,  rifing  into  the 
heavenfbf  dioptrics,  defcending  into  the  deepefl 
fubtcrranean  aby^Tes  ;  quitting  continental  coa- 
finc«ent  hy  the  art  of  navigation  ;  men,  wh© 
crofs  the  wavesj^nd,  in  fpite  of  the  winds,  con- 
temn the  rocks,  and  dirctfk  a  few  plarik«  fastened 
together  to  fail  to  the  more  diftiint  climes  ?  Whior^ 
c^ii  réfufe  to  the  author  of  all  thefc  wonderful 
wofks  the  faculty  of  feeing  and  hearing  ? 

But  I  do  not  pretend  to  deny,  an  infidel  will 
fay,  that  all  thefe  wonderful  works  owe  theic 
cxiflence  to  a  Supreme  caufe  ;  or  that  the  Su- 
prcn»^  Being,  by  whom 'alcme  they  cjcil^f  doth 

not 


«tjs^  .        .>  The  Absurâiiy  of 

not  himfelf  poffefs  all  pnfilble  perfe^iên.  But 
I  afFirm,  that  the  Supreme  Being  is  fo  grevit,  and 
io  exalted,  that  his  elevation  and  inconceivable 
excellence  prevent  him  from  .cafting  his  eyes 
down  to  the  earth,  and  paying  ;any  regard  ,ta 
what  a  creature  fo  mean  and  fo  indigent  as  man 
performs.  A  Being  of  infinite  perfeclion,  does 
he  inrtereft  himlelf  in  my  condu6l  ?  Will  he 
floop  to  examine,  whe^ther  1  ret^iin  or  difchargc 
the  wages  of, my  fervants  ?  Whether  I  be  regu- 
lar or  irregu'-ar  in  my  family  ?  and  fo  on.  A 
king,  forroundsd  with  -magnificeijce  aiiJ  pomp, 
holding  in  -his-powcifuli  hands  the  reigns  of  his 
empire  ;  a  king,  employed  in  weighing  reafcns 
of  hate,  in  equipping  his  fleets,  and  io  levying 
his.armies.;  will  he  concern  himfelf  with  the  de- 
marches of -^  a  few  worms    crawliBg  beneath  his 

But^his^  compariron  of  God  to  a  -king,  and;  of. 
men  to  worms,  is  abfurd  and  inconclufivc,  'i'he 
economy  of  -Providence,  and  the  hiftory  of  the 
church,  in  concert  with  the  wonderful  works  of 
nature,  difcover  to  u^  ten  thoufand  diflferences 
between  the  relations  of-  God  to  n>en,  and  thole 
of  ^  king  to  worms  of  the  earth.  No  king,  hath 
given  intelligent  fouls  to  worms  :  but  God  hath 
given  intelligent  fouls  to  us.  No  king  hath 
proved,  by  ten  thoufand  avenging  ftrokec,  and 
by -ten  thoufand  glorious  rewards,  that  he" ob- 
ftrved  the-concluâ:  of  worms  :  but  God,  by  ten 
thqufand  glorious  recompenfes,  and  by  ten  thou- 
fand vindiftive  punidimcnts,  hath  proved  his-  at- 
tention to  the  condud  ,  of  «icn.  No  king  hath 
ma4e  a  covenant  with  worms  :  but  God  hath.: 
entered  into  covenant  with  us.  No  king  hath 
commanded  worms  to  obey  hira  :  but  God,  we 
affirm,  hath  ordained  our  obedience  to  him.  No 
king  can  procure  eternal  felicity  to  worms  :  but 
God  can  communicate  endlefs  happinefs  to  us. 
A   Iciag,  although  he  be  a  king,   is  yet  i   inan  4 

his    ' 


Lihertinism  and  Injiiehiy,       213 

his  mind  is  little  and  contraded,  yea  iufinitely 
contra'ded  j  it  would  be  ablurd,  that  he,  bcin^ 
called  to  govern  a  kingdom,  Oiould  fill  his  ca- 
pacity with  trifles  :  But  is  this  your  notion  ot' 
the  Deity  ?  The  direclion  of  the  fun,  the  gov« 
eminent  of  the  world,  the  formation  of  myriads 
of  beings,  which  live  through  univerfal  nature, 
the  management  of  the  whole  univerfe,  cannot 
exhauft  that  intelligence,  who  is  the  obje£l  of 
our  adoration  and  praife.  While  his  thoughts 
include,  in  their  bouitdlefs  compafs,  all  real  and 
all  poffible  beings,  his  eyes  furvcy  every  individu- 
al, as  if  each  were  the  fole  object  of  his  atten- 
tion. 

Thefe  arguments  being  thus  Rated,  either  our 
infidel  niuil  acknowledge,  that  they,  at  leaft, 
render  probable  the  truth  of  religion  in  general, 
and  of  this  theli?  in  particular,  God  regardctb 
the  actions  oj  men:  or  he  refufeth  to  acknowl- 
edge it.  If  he  refute  to  acknowledge  it  ;  if  he 
ferioufly  affirm,  that  all  thefe  argijments,  very 
far  from  ariliug  to  demondration,  do  not  eveu- 
alTord  a  probability  in  favor  of  religlorr  ;  then 
he  is  an  idiot,  and  thf:re  remains  no  other  argu- 
ment to  propofe  to  him,  than  that  of  our  prophet^. 
Thou  fool -f  loben  ivilt  thou  be  wise  ?  '  -\ 

I  even  queftibn  whether  any  unbeliever  coula 
•ever  perfuade  himfelf  of  what  he  endeavors  to 
perfuade  others  ;  that  is,  that  the  affemblage  oi 
truths,  which  conilitute  the  boiy  of  natural  re» 
ligion  ;  that  the  heavy  ftrokes  of  juflice  aven^> 
ing  vice,  and  the  extacic  rewards  aceompanyrnç 
firtue,  which  appear  in  Proyide^nce  ;  tliat  the 
accomulifiiment  of  numerous  prophcci-es  ;  that 
the  operation  of  countlefs  miracles,  which  arc 
related  in  authentic,  hiftories  of  the  church  :  no, 
Î  cannot  believe,  that  any  infidel  could  ever  pre- 
vail with  himfelf  to  think,  thac  all  this  trq^in  of 
argument  doth  not  form  a  probability  againft  a 
fyfVem  of  infidelity  and  atheiur. 


.ig  14  The  M  surdity  of 

But  if  the  power  and  the  fplendor  of  truth 
force  bisconlein.;  if  he  be  obliged  to  own,  that, 
although  Diy  arguments  are  not  demonftrative, 
they  are,  however,  in  his  opinion,  probable  ; 
then,  with  th€  prophet,  I  fay  to  hiro,  0  thou 
most  brutish  among  tlw people  I 

V.  Why  ?  Becaule  in  comparing  his  logic 
■with  his  vwralltji,  (and  this  is  my  'fifth  article) 
1  perceive,  that  nothing  but  an  CKcels  of  bru- 
tality can  unite  thefe  two  things.  Hear  how 
he  reafons.  "  It  is  probable,  not  oinly  that 
t-here  is  a  God,  but  alfo  that  this  God  rcgardeth 
t^e  allions  of  men,  that  he  referves  to  himfelf 
the  punifhment  of  thofe,  who  follow  the  fuggel- 
tions  of  vke,  and  the  rewarding  of  them,  who 
obey  the  laws  of  virtue.  The  fyflem  of  irré- 
ligion is  counterbaUnced  by  that  of  -religion, 
Ferltaps  irréligion  may  be  well  grounded  :  but 
perhaps  religion  may  beTo.  Ifi  this  (late  of  un- 
certainty, 1  will  xiiredl  my  condud\  on  the  prin- 
ciple, that  irreligion  is  well  grounded,  and  that 
religion  hath  no  foundation.  /  nuill  break  in 
pieces,  ver.  5.  (this  was  the  language,  according 
to  our  pfalmill,  of  the  unbelievers  of  his  time) 
I  will  break  in  pieces  the  people  oj  God  ;  I  will 
afflict  bis  heritage  ;  /  ivill  slay  tbe^oidav  end 
the  'Stranger  ;  or,  to  fpeak  agreeably  to  the 
genius  of  oar  own  time,  I  will  ipend  my  life  in 
pleafure,  in  gratifying  my  fenfual  appetites,  in 
avoiding  wljat  would  checJc  me  in  my  courfe, 
in  a  word,  in  living  as  if  I  were  »bie  to  demon» 
Urate  either  that  there  was  no  God,  or  that  he 
paid  no  regard  to  the'aflions  of  men."  Ought 
he  not,  rather,  on  the  contrary,  as  his  mind  is  in 
a  ftate  of  uncertainty  between  both,  to  attach 
himfelf  to  that,  which  is  the  moft  iafe  ?  Ought 
he  Dot  to  fay  ?"  I  will  fo  regulate  my  coflduft, 
that,  if  there  be  a  God,  whofe  exigence,  indeed, 
I  doubt, but,  however,  am  notable  to  difprove  4 
If  God  pay  any  regard  to   the  a<^ioas    of   men, 

which 


Liheftinûm  and  Infidity.        215 

trhîch  I  q^eftion,  but  cannot  deny  ;  he  may  not 
condemn  mc."  Judge,  ye  chrlflians  I  men, 
who  can  thDs  brutally  inlult  a  dark  futurity, 
and  the  bare  poffibllity  of  thofe  punifliments, 
which  religion  denounceth  againft  the  -wicked  j 
fuch  men,  are  they  not,  cither  the  mofl'  feolirn> 
or  the  moft  brutifiî,' among  the  people  ?  *'  Un- 
derhand, ye  moft  brutifh  among  the  people  Î 
Ye  fools  !   When  will    ye  be  wife  ?" 

VJ.  I  would  attack  the  conscience  of  th*^ 
libertine,  and  terrify  him  with  the  language  of 
my  text.  *'  He,  who  teachetb  man  knowledge, 
fhiill  not  he  corre(5l  :"*  That  is  to  fay,  *'  ,Ht>, 
who  gave  you  laws,  fiiall  not  he  regard  your 
violation  of  them  ?"  The  perfons  whom  I'  at- 
tack, I  am  aware,  have  dtrfied  us  to  find  the  leai^ 
veftige  of  what  is  called  confcience  in  thtm. 
But  had  you  thoroughly  examined  yourfelves, 
when  you  fet  us  at  defiance  on  this  article  ? 
Have  you  been  as  fuccefsful,  fis  you  pretend  to 
have  been,  in  your  daring  cntcrprize  of  freeing 
yourfelves  entirely  from  the  terrors  of  con- 
fcience ?  Is  this  light  quite  extinct  ?  This  in-». 
terior  mafter,  doth  he  didtàte  nothing  to  you  ? 
This  rack  of  the  Almighty,  doth  it  never  force 
you  to  confefs  what  you  would  willingly  deny  I 
Are  your  knees  fo  firm,  that  they  never  fmite 
together  with  dread  and  horror  ? 

The  queftion,  concerning  the  poflibility  of  en- 
tirely freeing  a  man  from  the  empire  of  con- 
fcience, is  a  matter  offa£l.  We  think  we  have 
reafon  for  aftirmîng,  that  no  man  can  bring  him- 
felf  to  fuch  a  ftate.  You  pretend  to  be  your- 
fçlves  a  demonftration  to  the  contrary.  You 
arc,  you  declaje,  perfeAly  free. from  the  attacks 
of  confcience.  This  is  a  fad,  and.  I  grant  it  ;. 
I  take  your  word.  But  here  is  another  i^Gif. 
in  regard  to  which  we  ought  to  believe  in  our 
turn,  and  on  which  our  word  is  worth  as  much 
as  yours.     This  15  it.     We   have    fecn   a  great, 

number 


21 6  The  Ahsuràiiy  of 


rumber  of  Tick  people  ;  we  have  attended  a  great 
number  of  dying  people.  Among  thofe,  to 
wnom,  in  the  courfc  of  our  miniftry,  "we  have 
been  called,  we  have  met  with  all  forts  of  char- 
t£ters.  \Vc  have  viiited  fome,  who  once  were 
'What  yoD  profefs  to  be  now,  people,  who  boafted 
of  having  freed  themfeîves  frosn  vulgar  errors, 
from  the  belief  of  a  God,  a  religion,  a  hell,  & 
heaveoy  and  of  faying,  when  they  abandoned 
themfeîves  to  the  utmoft  e^iceiTes,  as  you  fay, 
The  Lord  shall  not  see  ;  neither  shall  the  God 
of  Jacob  regard  it.  But  we  have  never  rret 
witb  a  Tingle  individual,  no,  not  one,  who  hath 
not  contradi^ed  himfelf  at  the  approach  of 
death.  It  is  faid  fome  have  done  this.  For 
our  parts,  we  have  never  met  with  any  fuch  ; 
we  have  never  attended  one,  who  hath  not  prov- 
ed by  his  example,  that  you  will  contradift 
yourfelves  alfo.  We  have  often  vifited  thofe, 
■who  have  renounced  all  their  fyftems,  and  have 
curfed  their  infidelity  a  thoufand,  and  a  thoufand 
times.  Wc  have  vifued  many,  who  have  re- 
tjurred  the  aid  of  that  very  religion,  which  they 
had  ridiculed.  We  have  often  feen  thofe,  who 
Have  called  foperQilion  to  affift  religion  ;  and 
who  have  turned  pale,  trembled,  and  fhaken,  at 
the  bare  fiE^ht  of  our  habit,  before  they  had 
}ieard  the  fentence,  which  God  pronounced  by 
cnr  mouthp.  But  we  have  never  feen  an  indi- 
vidual, no,  not  one,  who  died  in  his  pretended 
fccpticifm  :  It  remains  with  you  to  aerount  for 
thefe  fads.  You  are  to  inquire,  wheiher  you 
yourfelves  will  be  more  courageous.  It  belongs 
to  you  to  exattiine,  whether  yon  c-^n  bear  thofe 
dying  agpnie?,  thofe  devouring  regrets,  thofe 
terrible  mifgivings,  which  made  your  predecef-  - 
fors  iinfay  all,  anddifcover  as  much  cowardice  at 
death, a<;  they  b^d  difcovcredbrutality  in  their  lives, 
VII.  Perhap-.  you  have  been  furprized,  my 
brethren,  that  >ve  have  rcCerved  the  weakeft   of 

c«r 


Libertinism  and  Infidelity.       2?i  j, 

our  attacks  for  the  laft.  Perhaps  you  objcdl^ 
that  motives,  taken  from  what  is  czWçd politeness,^ 
and  a  knonvledge  of  the  loorld^  can  make  no  imr 
preflions  on  the  minds  of  thofe,  who  djd  nQt  h^t 
the  force  of  our  former  attacks.  It  is  no;  vfiti](t 
out  reafon,  however,  that  we  have  placed  ^ih\4- 
laft.  Libertines  and  infidels  ofren  pique  thein-. 
felves  on  their  gentility^  and  good  breedings 
They  frequently  taJie  up  their  fy{)cra  of  infidéli- 
ty^  and  purfue  their  courfc  of  profanenefs,  nie.rew- 
]y  through  their  falfe  notions,  of  gentility.  R£.a- 
for»,  they  think,  too  fcholafiic,  and  faith,  pedant, 
ry.  They  imagine,  that,  in  order  to  diftinguiih 
.themfelves  in  the  world,  they  rauft  affect  Deiihei* 
to  believe  nor  to  reafon. 

Well  Î  you  accomplished  gentleman  I  do  you. 
know  what  the  world  thinks  of  you  ?  The} 
prophet  tells  you  ;  but  it  is  not  on  thç  authority 
of  tlie  prophet  only»  it  is  on  the  opinions  ot  ^your 
fellow  citizrns,.  that  JL  mean  to  perfaade  ysu. 
You  are  conudered.  in  the  world  as  the  most 
brutish  of  mankind.  .  Understand,,  ye  most,  bru" 
tisb  among  the  people  /.  What  is  an  accomplish-, 
ed  gentleman  ?  What  is  politenels!  and  good 
breeding  ?  H  is  the  art  of  accommodating  oue.'s 
felt  to  the  genius  of  that  focietyj.  and  of  feeming 
to  enter  into  the  fentimenis  pf  that  .  comp.any,  ia 
■which  we  are  ;  of  appearing  to  honor  what  thty 
honor  ;  of  refpecling  what  they  refpe£l  ;  .and  of 
paying  a  regard  even  to  their  prejudices,  and 
their  weakntfTes.  On  the'^e,  principles,  are  you 
not  the  rudest,  and  most  unpolished.QÏ  Xi\:àwW\u^X  ? 
Or,  to  repeat  the  language  ot  my  text,  are  you 
not  the  most  brutish  among  the  people  ?  Yoi] 
live  among  people,  who  believe  a  God,  and  n 
religion;  among  people,  who  were  educated  ia 
tbefc  principles,  and  who  defire  to  die  in  thele 
principles;  among  people,  who  have,  many  cf 
them,  facriflced  their  reputation,  their  e«fe,  and 
their  fortune,  to. religion.  Morsovcrj  -.ou  liv2 
T  2  '      in 


ôi8  The  Ahurdity  of 

in  a  fociet)^,  the  foundations  of  ^vhich  fink  wîth 
thofe  of  religion,  fo  that  were  the  latter  under- 
jmircd,  the  former  v?o*îd,  therefore,  be  funk. 
All  the  metTibers  of  fode;y  are  interefltd  in  fup- 
porting  this  cdificc,  v?hich  yov»  are  endeavoring: 
to  dcHroy.  The  inag'.i\rate  commands  you  not 
to  publifii  principles  that  tend  to  the  fubverfion 
of  his  authority.  The  peopJe  requeR  you  not  to 
propagate  opinions,  ^vTiich  tend  to  fubjeû  them 
to  the  paflions  of  a  nagiftrate,  who  will  imagine, 
he  hath  no  judge  fi:perior  to  hirofelf.  This  dif- 
trcH'ed  mother,  mourning  for  the  îofs  of  her  on- 
ly fon,  prays  you  not  to  deprive  her  of  the  con- 
folatson,  which  {he  derives  from  her  prcfent  per- 
fosfion,  that  the  fon, .  whom  (he  laments,  is  in 
i)offeffion  of  immortal  glory.  That  fick  man 
beieecheth  you  not  to  dilabufe  him  of  an  error, 
that  fweetens  all  his  forrows.  Yon  dying  man 
begs  you  would  rot  rob  him  of  his  only  hope". 
The  whole  world  conjures  you  not  to  cflablifli 
truths,  (even  fuppo'ing  they  were  truths,  an  hy- 
pothecs which  I  deny  and  deteH)  the  whole 
world  conjnres  yon  not  to  eftablifh  truths,  the 
îcnowledge  of  which  would  be  fatal  to  all  man- 
kind. In  fpite  of  fo  many  voices,  in  fpite  of  fo 
many  prayers,  in  fpnc  of  fo  Hjany  intreaties,  and 
nmongfo  many  people  interefted  in  the  eftablifli- 
ment  of  religion;'  to  affirm  that  religion  is  a 
f<4ble,  to  oppofe  îtwith  eagerncfs  and  obRinacy, 
to  try  all  yowr  flreugth,  and  to  place  all  your 
glory,  in  deftroying  it  :  What  is  this  but  tlie 
height  of  rudenefs,  brutality,  and  madnefs  ? 
"  Undcrftand,  ye  moft  brntifli  among  the  peo- 
ple 1  Ye  fools  !    When  will  ye  be  wif«  ?" 

Let  us  put  a  period  to  this  difcourfe.  We 
come  to  you,  my  brethren  1  When  we  preach 
^gainft  chnrafters  of  thefe  kinds  we  think,  wc 
read  what  pnlTej  in  your  hearts.  You  congratulate 
yoorftlve  =  ,  for  the  mofl;  part,  for  rot  being  of 
the    fiumber,   for    dctefting    infidelity,    and    for 

refpcfting 


Libertinism  and  Infidelity,        21g 

refpefting  religion.  But  ftiall  we  tell  you,  my 
brethren  ?  How  odious  foever  the  men  are, 
>vhom  wc  have  defcribed,  we  know  others  more 
odious  ftill.  There  is  a  reftri(^ion  in  the  judg- 
ment, which  the  prophet  forms  of  the  firft,  when 
he  calls  tbem  in  the  text,  The  most  foolish^  and 
the  most  brutish  among  the  people  ;  and  there 
are  feme  men,  who  furpafs  them  in  brutality 
and  extravagance. 

Do  not  think  we  exceed  the  truth  of  the  mat- 
ter, or  that  we  are  endeavoring  to  obtain  your 
iitteution  by  paradoxes.  Really,  I  fpeak  as  I 
think  ;  I  think,  there  is  more  ingenuoufncfs,  and 
€ven,  (if  I  may  venture  to  fay  fo)  a  lefs  fund  of 
turpitude  in  men,  who,  having  refolvcd  to  roll  on 
with  the  torrent  of  their  paffions,  endeavor  to 
jjcrfuade  themfclves,  either,  that  there  is  no 
God,  or  that  he  pays  no  regard  to  the  a6^ions  of 
Hîén  ;  than  in  thofe,  who,  believing  the  exiftence, 
nnd  providence  of  God,  live  as  if  they  believed 
îi-ither.  Infidels  were  not  able  to  fupport,  it» 
their  excefTes,  the  ideas  of  «n  injured  bcncfad^or, 
of  an  angry  Supreme  J^idge,  of  an  eternal  falva- 
tion  negleded,  of  daring  h«ll,  a  lake  burning' 
%9itb  fire  and  brimstone^  and  smoke  ascending 
'lip for  ever  and  every  Rev.  xxi.  8.  and  xiv.  II, 
In  order  to  give  their  paiîions  a  free  fcope,  they 
found  it  necefTary  to  divert  their  attention  from 
all  thefe  terrifying  objefts,  and  to  efface  fuch 
(hocking  truths  from  thci' minds. 

But  you  Î  who  believe  the  being  of  a  God  Î 
You  1  who  believe  yourfelves  undrr  his  eye, 
and  who  infult  him  every  day  without  repentance, 
or  remorfe  î  You  I  who  believe,  God  holds 
thunder  in  his  hand  to  crufh  finners,  and  yet  live 
in  fin  1  You  \  who  think,  there  are  devouring 
flames,  and  chains  of  darknels,  and  yet  pref'jn)p- 
tuoufly  brave  their  horrors  1  You  î  who  believe 
liie  iflimortality  pf  your  fouls,  and    yet  occupy 

yourfelves 


s 20  The  Ahsurdiiy  of 

yourfelves  about  nothing  but   the  prefent  life   1 
What  a  front  I  What  a  brazeu  front  is  yours  I  ; 

You  confider  a  revelation  proceeding  from 
heaven,  and  fupported  by  a  thoufand  authentic 
proofs.  But,  if  your  faitk  be  well  grounded, 
hovf  dangerous  is  your  condition  i  For,  after 
all,  the  number  of  evidences,  who  atteft  the  re- 
ligion, which  you  belieie,  this  number  of  wit- 
ncffes  depofe  the  truth  of  the  prnfVVc'a]  part  of 
rdigicn,  as^-wcH  'as  ihe  truth  of  the  fpeculati^e 
part.  Thefe  witncfTes  attcO,  that  "  without 
holinefs,  no  man  fliall  fee  the  Lord  ;"  that  "  nei-. 
thcr  thieves,  nor  covetous,  nor  drunkards,  nor  re- 
vilers,  nor  extortioners,  fnall  inherit  the  king- 
dom of  God,"  Heb.  xii.  14.  1  Cor.  yi.  10.  .  And 
confequently,  tbtfe  evidences  atteft,  that  yon 
thieves,  that  you  coretous,  that  you. drunkards, 
that  you  revilcr&,  that  you  extortioners,  fhall  be 
excluded  from  that  happy-  manfion.  Do  you. 
rejeâ  this  propohtion  ?  Clafs  yourfelves  then, 
with  infidch.  Contrad»<Sl  nature  ;  coatradi6t- 
confcience  ;  contradift  the  church  ;  deny  the 
recovery  of  ftrength  to  the  lame  ;  the  giving  of. 
fight  to  the  blind  ;  the  raifing  of  the  dead  ; 
contradiû  lîcaven,  and  earth,  and  fea,  nature, 
and  every  cleraent.  Do  you  admit  the  propofi-. 
tion  ?  Acknowledge  then,  that  you  mud  be 
irretrievably  loft,  unlefs  your  ideas  be  reformed- 
and  renewed,  unlefs  you  renounce  the  world, 
that  enchants  and  fafcinates  your  eyes. 

This,  my  brethreti,  this  is  your  remedy»  . 
This-  is  what  we  hope  for  you.  This  is  thatf 
to  which  we  exhort  you  by  the  compafljon  of; 
God,  and  by  the  great  falvation,  which  religion 
prefents  to  you.  Rtrfpe(St  this  religion.  Study 
it  every  day.  Apply  its  comforts  to  your  for- 
rows,  anfl  its  precepts  to  your  lives.  And, 
joining  promifes  to  precepts,  and  precepts  to 
promifes,  affort  your  chriftianity*  AfTure  your- 
felves, 


LiStrtinism  and  Infidelity.       221 

fcïves,  then,  of  the  peace  of  God  in  this  life, 
and  of  a  participation  of  his  iglory  after  deaths 
Qk)d  grant  you  this  grace  I— Amen. 


.-4 


SERMON 


SERMON    IX. 


THE  HARMONY  OF  RELIGION  AND 
CIVIL  POLITY. 

Proverbs  xiv,  34. 

Righteousness  exaltetb  a  Nation. 

1  O  propofe  nîa:fimsof  civil  polity  in  a  re- 
ligious affembly,  to  propofe  maxims  of  religion 
in  a  political  affembly,  are  two  things,  which 
feem  alike  fenfelefs  and  imprndent.  The  chrif- 
tian  is  fo  often  diftinguifhed  from  the  flatefman, 
that,  it  would  feem,  th^ey  weraopporitc  charac- 
ters. We  have  been  lately,  taught  to  believe, 
that  Jefus  Chrift,.  by  giving  us  an  idea  of  a  i^o^ 
ciety  more  noble  than  any  we  can  form  upon 
earth,  hath  forbidden  us  to  prevent  the  miferies 
ef  this  flate,  and  to  endeavor  to  procure  the  glo- 
ry of  it.  It  hath  been  faid,  that  kingdoms  and 
ftates  cannot  be  elevated  without  violating  the 
laws  of  equity,  and  infringing  the  rights  of  the 
church.. 

How  general  foever  this  odious  notion  may 
have  been,  hardly  any  one  hath  appeared  openly 
to  avow  it  till  of  late.  The  impudence  of  plead- 
ing for  it  was  referved  for  our  age,  for  a  chrif- 
tian  admitted  into  your  provinces,  cheriflied  in 
your  bofom,  and,  O  fhame  of  our  churches  Î  ap- 
pearing among  proteftant  refugees,  as  the  devil 
formerly  prefented  himfelf  before  the  Lord  among 
the  angtis  of  God.*' 

We  propofe  to-day,  my  brethren,  to  endeavor 
to  unravel  the   fophifms  of  this  author,  to    fhew 

you 

w 
*    Voyez  Bayle,  Continuât,   des   penfees   divers. 
Tom.  ii.  pag.  5^8. 


The  Harmony  of  Religion,  ^c.     223 

you  the  açrecnent  of  religion  with  civil  polity, 
and  to  eftablilh  this  propofuion,  that  as  there  ig 
nothing  in  religion  to  counteract  the  delign  qi 
a  wife  lyftera  of  civil  polity,  to  there  is  nothing 
in  a  wife  Tyrtcin  of  civil  government  to  counter* 
a6l  the  deiign  of  the  chrilVian  religion.  I:  was 
the  wifeft  of  all  kings,  who  taught  us  this  lefTono 
He  fpeaks  of  the  exaltation  of  a  nation,  and  this 
is  the  eiid  of  civil  polity.  He  fpcaks  of  righte- 
ousness, and  this  is  the  dciigp  of  religion,  or 
rather,  this  is  religion  itfelf.  He  afHrms,  that 
the  latter  18  the  foundation  of  the  former,  and 
this  is  the  agreement  of  religion  with  civil  gov- 
ernment. It  is  righteousness^  faith  he,  it  is 
zighteousjiessy  that  exalteth  a  nation» 

This  propojition  of  Solomon  needs  both  ex- 
plication and  proof  ;  and  this  difcourfe  is  in* 
tended  to  furnifli  both. 

In  our  firft  part  we  v/iil  flate  the  queftion,  fix 
the  fenfe  of  thefe  terras, righteoufuefs, exaltation  ; 
we  will  fee  afide  the  various  falfe  fenfes,  which 
occaHoned  the  opinion  that  we  intend  to  oppofe  ; 
and  by  thefe  means  we  will  preclude  fuch  objec- 
tions as  n)ay  be  made  againfi  our  do€liine.  ' 

In  the  fécond  part,  we  wilf  a.lledge  feme  argu- 
ments in  favour  of  the  propofition  contained  in  the 
text  wheit  properly  explained,  and  fo  prove  that 
righteousness  exalteth  a  nation. 

This  nation  is  exalted,  my  brethren  :  but,  al- 
low me  to  fay,  it  is  not  by  its  righteousness,  We- 
have  n.pt  therefore  chofen  this  text  to,  create  an 
opportunity  of  making  encomiums  on  you  ;  but 
\?e  treat  of  the  fubjedl  in  order  to  fix  your  atten- 
tion on  the  proper  means  of  prcferving  and  aug-. 
mcnting  your  clevition.  Plappy  if  our  delign 
meet  with  fuccefs  1  Happy  if  we  contribute, 
tiiough  not  according  to  the  extent  of  our  wifiics, 
yet  according  to  the  utmoft  of  our  ability,  to  the 
^glory  of  this  ftate  Î 

I.  Wc 


.224        The  Harmony  of  Religion 

I.  We  juft  now  infmuated,  that  the  falfe 
gloffes  put  upon  the  maxim  of  the  wile  man  wer« 
tlf  principal  caules  of  our  backwardnefs  to  ad- 
iTiit  the  t'Uth  of  it.  I:  is,  therefore,  important 
to  ttate  the  qucflion  cl«ar}y. 

1.  When  we  aîîîim  thAt  righteousness  and 
religion  in  general,  (for  it  would  i.^  f^ïy  to  prove 
that  the  word  righteousness  in  the  text  is  t:o  be 
taken  in  this  vague  fenfe)  I  fay,  when  we  aitirm 
t^jat  ïeligion  exaltntb  a  nation^  we  do  not  mean 
fuch  a  religion  as  many  imagine.  We  ingTu- 
oufly  acknowledge,  and  would  to  God  the  whole 
world  acknowledged  !  that  neither  the  religion 
of  a  cruel  man,  nor  the  religion  of  a  fupeifti- 
îious  perfon,  nor  the  religion  of  an  enthtffiaû, 
can  exalt  a  nation* 

How  can  the  religion  of  a  cruel  man  exalt  a 
^nation  ?  The  religion  of  fuch  men  is  too  well 
Jkftown  for  the  peace  of  Europe.  Such  aa  thefe, 
'  under  pretence  of  devotion,  cut  a  free  courfe 
for  their  own  black  and  inflexible  pafllons, 
Thefe  arm  themfelves  with  the  civil  fword  to 
deftroy  all,  who  doubt  the  truth  of  their  fyflems  ; 
they  put  violence  in  the  place  of  dcmonftrationj 
and  endeavor  to  eftabiiflj  the  gofpel,  as  if  it 
were  the  Koran  of  Mohammed,  by  force  and  con- 
ftraint.  Thefe  charaders,  as  I  jufl  now  faid, 
arc  too  well  known  for  the  peace  of  Europe, 
Even  now,  while  I  Ipeak,  I  behold  many,  who 
have  fo^ered  under  fuch  cruelty,  and  have  op- 
pofed  the  Rrongeft  argument  againfl  it.  No,  my 
brethren,  this  is  not  the  religion  that  etialtetb 
a  nation*  Such  a  religion  depopulates  ftatcs, 
ruins  commerce,  and  is  a  never-failing  fource  of 
civil  wars  and  intefline  commotions.  The  re- 
ligion, of  which  we  fpeak,  is  a  kind,  patient, 
gentle  religion  j  a  religion,  the  grand  charac- 
ter of  which,  is  forbearance,  benevolence,  and 
fVaternal  love  ;  a  religion  inimical  to  error  and 
herefy  :  bat  which,  however,  pitict  the  errone- 
ous 


4ini  Civil  Polity^  225 

«u^  and  the  heretic  ;  a  religios,  which  exerts 
itfelf  to  eradicate  falfe  clo£\rines  :  but  which 
leaves  each  at»liberty  to  admit  the  truth  ;  a  re- 
ligion, which  hath  no  other  fword  than  the 
rtvord  of  ibe  Spirit^  nor  any  other  weapon  than 
that  of  the  word. 

How  can  the  religion  of  a  superstitious  man 
exalt  a  nation  ?  It  makes  devotion  degenerate 
into  idlenefs,  it  increafeth  the  number  of  ecclc- 
fiaftics,  and  fo  renders  many  members  ufrlels  'to 
iociety.  It  waftcs,  in  pretendedly  pious  founda- 
tions, immenfe  fums,  which  might  have  con- 
tribuied  to  the  atlvancement  of  arts  and  fcienccs. 
It  generates  fcruples  in  the  minds  of  ftatefmcn, 
and  fo  rettrains  the  exercife  of  thofe  fine  facul- 
ties, which  God  created  for  the  good  of  the 
ftate.  It  puts  the  cafuiO  in  the  phce  of  the 
prince,  and  the  prince  in  the  place  of  the  cafaift, 
thecafuift  on  the -throne,  and  the  pnnce  in  con. 
fellion  at  his  feet.  No,  my  brethren,  this  is  not 
the  religion,  ot  which  we  fpealc.  The  religion, 
of  which  we  fpeak,  is  oppofite  to  fuperftition. 
It  is  juft  and  folid,  requiring  us  to  *'  render  un- 
to Caefar  the  things  that  are  Cxfar's,  and  tinto 
God  the  things  that  are  God's,"  Matt.  xii.  17» 
It  prcfcribes  bounds  to  fovereigns  :  but  it  re-^ 
quires  cafuifts  alfo  to  know  their  place. 

How   can    the   religion  of  an  enthusiast  con- 
tribute to  the  exaltation  of  a  nation  ?     The  foul 
of  an   enthufiaft  is   always    agitated  with  vifions 
and   reveries.        He    incelîantly    thrufts    himfelf 
into  the  company  of  the  great,  in  order  to  infpire 
them    with    his  own    fpirit,    and    to  breathe  into' 
them  the  foul  of  enthuliafm.     He    sndeavors  tat' 
animate  governors,  called  to  watch  over  a    ftate, ' 
and  to  conduft  the  people  to  national    happinefs, 
with  his  wild    fchemes.     He    is    always    talking 
of  extirpating  the   icformation,  and   thundering 
excommunications  againft  thofe,    who  do  not  en- 
ter into  his  extravagant  projeiSls  j  his  anathemas 
U  i» 


£2  25        The  Harmony  à f  Religion 

are  as  extravagant  and  wild  as  the  projefts  them- 
i'elves.  This  is  not  the  religion,  of  which  we 
I'peak,  The  irligion,  that  er^aiteth  .a  jiatioriy'is 
derived  from  the  treaCurpsof  the.  Divine  .Intelli- 
gence ;  it  was  formed  in  the  mind  of  that  Su- 
preme Spirit,  from  whom  wifdom  proceeds,  as 
the  Rieam  tiows  Irom  the  fpring  :  and  not  in 
the  ideas  of  a  difordered  brain,  nor  in  the  dreams 
of  a  vilionary. 

Wc  wiflj  you  to  take  religion  and  righteouf- 
rcfs  in  the/rwefenfe  of  the  terms.  This  is  our 
firft  elucidation.  This  is  the  firft ,  precaution, 
that  mult  be  ufed  to  underftand  the  (late  of  the 
^ueftipn. 

2.  We  do  not  mean  to  affirm,  that  the.trac 
religion  is  fo  neceffary  in  û//  its  doclrines,  and 
in.  all  the  extent  of  its  precepts,  that  there,  are 
no  infiances  of  the  flouriHiing  of  focieties,  which 
have  not  been  wholly  regulated  by  it.  We  ac- 
knosvledge  that  fome  focieties  of  men,  vvho  have, 
been  only  partially  governed  by  its  maxima, 
have  enjoyed  long  and  glorious  advantages  upon 
the  theatre  of  the  world  ;  either  bccaufe  their 
faVfe  religions  contained  fome  principles  of  recr 
titude  in  common  with  the  true  religion  ;  or. 
becaufe  God,  in  order  to  animate  fuch  people  'to 
praclife  fome  virtues,  fuperficial  indeed,  but, 
however,  neceiTary  to  the  being  of  fociety,  an- 
nexed fuccefs  to  the  exercife  of  them  ;  or  be» 
caufe  he  profpered  them  to  anfwer  fome  fecret 
defigns  of  his  wifdom  ;  or  becaufe,  finally,  rec- 
titude was  never  fo  fully  eflablilhed  on  earth  as 
to  preclude  injuftice  from  enjoying  the  advan- 
tages of  virtue,  or  virtue  from  fuffering  the 
penalties  of  vice.  However  it  were,  we  allow 
the  fafl,  and  we  only  affirm,  that  the  mofi:  fure 
method,  that  a  -nation  can  take  to  fupport  and 
exalt  itfelf,  is  to  follow  the  laws  of  righteoufnefa 
and  the  fpirit  of  religion.  This  is  a  fécond  elu= 
cidation  tending  to  llate  the  queftion  clearly. 

3.  We 


and  Civil  Polity,  227 

3,  We  do  not  affirm,  that  in  every  particular 
.Tase   religion    is    more    fnccefst'ul    in    procuring" 

fome  temporal  advantage  than  the  violation  of 
it  ;  fo  that  to  confider  fociery  onjy  in  this  point 
of  light,  and  to  confine  it  to  this  particular  cai'c 
'independently  of  all  other'  circuniflances,  te^ 
"Sligion  yields  the  honor  of  pof\erity  to  injufticc 
'We  allow,  fome  Rate  crimes  have  been  fuccef»»-' 
fnl,  and  have  heen  the  fteps,  by  whicli  fome  peo- 
ple have  acquired  worldly  glory.  We  even  al- 
low,  that  virtue  hath  fonietimes  been  an  obftact^. 
A'o  grandeur.  We  only  affirm,  that,  if  a  nation 
"be  cbnPidered  in  every  point  of  light,  and  in  s^l 
circumftances^  if  all  things  be  weighed,  it  w.i.il 
be  found,  thai  the  more  a  fociety  pra^iî'e  virttx-, 
the  more  profperiiy  it  will  enjoy.  We  atlirm, 
that  the  more  it  abandons  itfelf  to  vice,  the  mx^re 
inifery  will  it  fooner  or  later  fuffer  ;  fo  tha-t  the 
very, vice,  which  contributed  to  its  exaltation, 
will  produce  its  deftruftion  ;  and  the  very  vir- 
toe,  w-hich  ieems  at  firft  to  ^bafe  it,  will,  in  the 
Mtiïd',  ejcalt  it  to  glory.  This  is  a  third  élucida- 
•  tion,"^  '  '  1  r  •       ■   ■ .  •.        ■'   ,  ' 

4.  We  do  not  mean  by  exaltatiot),  tbdt  sort  s>f 
ehvatioity  at  which  worldly 'heroes,  or  rather  cy- 
rants,  afpire.  We  acknowledge,  <har,  if  by  ex- 
alting a  nation  be  underftood  an  elevation  eX-* 
tending  itfelf  beyond  the  limits  of  re^5titnd^, 
an  elevation  not  dire^led  by  juftice  and  p;ood 
faith,  an  elevation  confifling  of  the  acquilitions 
©f  wanton  and  arbitrary  power,  an  elevation 
obliging  the  whole  worla  to  fubmit  to  a  yoke  ot 
flavery,  and  fo  becoming  an  executionier  of  di- 
vine vengeance  on  all  mankind  ;  we  allow,  that 
in  this  fenfe  exaltation  is  not  an  elTecl  of  rigbtV" 
ousness.  But,  if  we  underhand  by  .ejca/^mç"^:: 
nation  whatever  governs  with  gentî'enefs,  -negc- 
ciates  with  fuccefs,  attacks  with  courage,  de* 
fends  with  refolution,  and  conftitutes  the  happi- 
nefs  of  a  people,  whatever  God  always   beholds 

with 


2  28         The  Harmony  of  Religion 

^vith  favorable  eyes  ;  if  this  be  what  is  meant 
by  exalting  a  natioriy  we  affirm,  a  nation  is  ex- 
alted only   by  righteoulnc-fs. 

5.  In  tine,  we  do  not  affirm,  that  the  profperi- 
ty  of  luch  a  nation  would  be  fo  perfedt  as  to 
exclude  all  untoward  circumftances.  We  only 
fay,  that  the  higheft  glory,  and  the  moft  pcrfeft 
happinel'ç,  which  can  be  enjoyed  by  a  nation  in 
a  world,  where,  after  all,  there  is  always  a  nnx- 
tore  of  adverfity  with  profperity,  are  the  fruits 
of  rightcoufnefs.  Thefc  elucidations  muft  be 
retained,  not  only  becaufe  they  explain  the  the- 
fis,  which  we  arc  fnpporting,  and  becaufe  they 
are  the  ground  of  what  we  fliall  hereafter  fay  : 
but  alfo  becaufe  they  IVrve  to  preclude  fuch  ob- 
jeifilions,  to  folve  fuch  difficulties,  and  to  unravel 
fuch  fnphifms,  as  the  author,  whom  wc  oppofe, 
urges  againft  us. 

One  argument  againft  us  is  taken  from  the 
abufes,  which  religion  hath  caufed  in  focicty  : 
t»ot  this  tujedtion  is  removed,  by  taking  away 
faife  ideas  of  religion.  A  fécond  obje^ion  is 
taken  from  the  cafe  cf  fouAC  idolatrous  nations, 
"Who,  though  they  were  i^rangers  to  revealed  re- 
ligion, have  yet  arrived  at  a  great  height  of 
worldly  glory  :  but  this  objeftion  is  removed  by 
our  fécond  elucidation.  A  third  objeftion  is  tak- 
en from  feme  particular  cafe,  in  which  vice  is  of 
more  advantage  to  a  flate  than  virtue  :  but  this 
obje<f\ion  falls  before  the  manner  in  which  we 
have  ftatcd  the  queflion.  A  fourth  objeûion  is 
taken  from  extravagant  notions  of  glory  :  but 
thif  ohjed\ion  is  removed  by  didinguiflung  true 
exaltation  froKi  falfe.  Filially,  an  objedlion  is 
taken  from  the  evils,  which  the  moft  virtuous 
focieties  fuffer,  and  we  have  hikno.vledged,  that 
this  world  will  always  be  to  public  bodies  what  it 
is  to  individuals,  a  place  of  milcry,  and  we 
have  contented  ourfelves  with  affirming,  that  the 
moftfolid  happinefs,  which  can  be   enjoyed  here, 

hath 


and  Civil  Poliiy.  229 

hath  rightcoufncfs  for  its  caufc.  The  narrow 
limits,  to  which  we  are  confined,  will  no:  alluw 
us  to  carry  our  refl'célions  any  further,  'i'he)', 
however,  who  niedit.-^te  profoundly  on  the  matter, 
will  eafily  perceive  that  all  ihele  objedions  are, 
if  not  abundantly  refuted,  at  leafl  fufficiently  pre- 
cluded by  our  explications, 

We  will  now  proceed  to  (hew  the  grounds  of 
the  maxim  of  the  wife  man.  We  will  open  fix 
fources  of  reftedtions  ;  an  idea  of  fociecy  in  .gen- 
eral ;  the  conftitution  of  each  government  in  par- 
ticular ;  the  nature  of  ans  and  fciences  ;  the 
conduft  of  providence  ;  the  promifes  of  God  hiui- 
felf  ;  and  the  hiftory  of  all  ages,  Thefe  articles 
make  up  the  remainder  of  this  difcourfe, 

II.  I.  Let  us  fiifl  form  an  idea  of  society  in 
generals  and  cor^fider  the  motives,  which  incjuced 
mankind  to  unite  themfclves  in  fociety,  and  to  fix: 
themfelves  in  one  place.  By  doing  this,  we  (hail 
perceive,  that  righteousness  is  the  only.thing  that 
can  render  nations  happy.  Every  individual  hath 
infinite  wants  ;  but  only  finite  f'iculticsjp  fupply 
them.  Each  individual  of  mankind  hath  need  of 
kijowledge  to  inform  him,  laws  to  dire£l  him, 
property  ro  fupport  him,  medicine  to/relieve  him, 
aliments  to  nouriPn  him,  clothing  and  lodging  to 
defend  himfelf  againfl  the  injuries  of  the  ieafons. 
How  eafy  would  it  be  to  enlarge  this  catalogue  i 
Similar  mtereils  form  a  firailar  deOgn.  Divers 
^mcn  unite  tiiemfelves  together,  in  order  that  the 
induflry  of  all  mayfjpplytlie  wants  cf  each — > 
This  is, the  origin  of  focieties  and  public  bodies 
of  men. 

It  iseafy  to  comprehend,  that,  in  order  to  en- 
joy the  blelUags  pro^pofed  by  i:hi;s  aîTembiagf,.fome 
fixed  mp^iims  miift.be  laid  down  and  invicUbLy 
.obeyed.  It  will  be  necelTary  for  all  the  members 
of  this  body  to  coiifider  themftlves  as  naturally 
equal,  that  by  this  idea  they  may  be  inclined  to 
affprd  each  other  mutoal.fuccor.  It  will  be,  ne» 
U   2 cc{r.r/ 


230         The  Harmony  of  Religion 

ceffary  that  they  (hould  be  fincere  to  each  other, 
Ifft  deceit  fhould  ferve  for  a  vail  to  concral  the 
iata'.  dcfigns  of  fome  from  the  eyes  of  the  reft,  Jt 
will  be  nectlTary  for  all  to  oblerve  the  rules  of 
rigid  equity,  that  fo  they  may  fulfil  the  contra<f\s 
which  thty  bound  themfelves  to  perform,  when 
they  wece  admitted  into  this  fociety.  It  will  be 
nectffary,  that  efleera  and  benevolence  ftiould 
give  life  and  aftion  to  righteoufnefs.  It  will  be 
necelTary.,  that  the  bappinefs  of  all  Ihou'd  be  pre- 
ferred before  the  intercft  of  one  ;  and  that  in 
cafes  where  public  and  privi^e  iutereifs  clafh,  the 
public  good  fhould  always  prevail.  It  will  be  ne- 
■cefTary,  that  each  fnould  cultivate  his  own  talents^ 
that  he  may  contribute  to  the  happinefs  of  that 
fociicty,  to  which  he  ought  to  devote  himfclf 
with  the  utmofl  fincerity  and  zeal. 

Now,  my  brethren,  what  can  be  more  proper 
*o  make  us  obferve  thefe  rules,  than  religion,  tl.an 
righteousness?  Religion  brings  us  to  feel  our 
natural  equality  ;  it  teacheth  us,  that  we  origin- 
ate in  the  fame  doft,  have  the  fame  God  for  our 
Creator,  are  all  dcfwended  from  the  lame  fitft  pa- 
rent, all  partake  of  the  fame  miferies,  and  f^re  all 
doomed  to  the  fame  laft  end.  Religion  teacheth 
us  fincerity  to  each  otler,  that  the  tongue  fhould 
be  a  faithful  interpreter  of  the  n)ind,  that  we 
{hould  speak  every  man  truib  ivith  bis  neighbor^ 
Epb.  iv.  25.  and  that,  being  always  in  the  fight 
of  the  God  of  truth,  we  fhould  never  depart  from 
the  laws  of  truth.  Religion  teacheth  us  to  be 
juf\,  that  we  fhould  "  render  to  all,  their  dues  : 
tribute  to  whom  tribute  is  due,  cuf\om  to  whom 
cuftom,  fear  to  whom  fear,  honor  to  whom  honor  ; 
that  whatfoever  we  would  that  men  fhould  do  un* 
to  us,  we  fhould  do  even  fo  unto  them,"  Rom. 
xiii.  7.  Matt.  vii.  12.  Religion  requireth  us  to 
be  animated  with  charity,  to  confider  each  other 
as  creatures  of  one  God,  fubje<5l:3  of  the  fame 
king,  Q3C tubers  of  one  body,  and  heirs  of  the  fauc 

glory. 


and  Ctvil  Polity.  23* 

glory.  Religion  requireth  us  to  give  up  private 
intereft  to  public  good,  not  to  seek  our  own,  but 
t'very  one  another's  ivealtb  ;  it  even  requireth  us 
io  lay  do'wn  our  lives  for  the  brethren.  Thus  by 
coniidering  nations  in  thefe  primitive  views,  it  is 
righteousness  alone  that  exalts  them. 

2.  But  all  this  is  too  vague.  We  proceed 
next  to  conCder  each  form  of  government  in  par* 
ticular.  It  is  impra^tjcabie  tor  all  the  members 
oi  fociety,  on  every  preffing  occafion,  to  affcmble 
together  and  give  their  I'uffiages.  Public  bodies 
therefore  ?.gree  to  fet  apart  fomc  of  their  number, 
"who  arc  accounted  the  foul,  the  will,  the  deter* 
mination  of  the  whole.  Some  nations  have  com- 
niitted  the  fupreme  power  to  one,  whom  they  call 
monarch;  this  is  a  monarchical  ftate.  Others 
have  committed  fupreme  power  to  a  few  of  their 
own  body,  called  magistrates,  senators,  nobles^. 
or  fome  other  honorable  appellation  ;  this  is  a  re- 
public, called  in  the  fchools  an  ariftocracy.  Oth- 
ers have  diffufed  fupreme  power  more  equally 
among  all  the  merubers  of  their  fociety,. and  have 
placed  it  in  all  heads  of  families  ;  this  is  ^popular 
government,  ufually  called  a  democracy*  Society 
gives  its  authority  and  privileges  into  the  hand» 
of  thefe  perfons  ;  it  entrufts  and  empowers  them 
to  make  laws,  to  impofe  taxes,  to  raife  fubfidies, 
to  make  peace  or  declare  war,  to  reward  virtucj 
to  punifli  vice;  in  one  word,  to  do  whatever  may 
be  beneficial  to  the  whole  fociety,  with  the  felici» 
ty  of  which  they  are  entruf^ed. 

If  we  confxder  thefe  various  forms  of  govern* 
ir.ent,  we  fiiall  find,  that  each  nation  will  be  more 
01  lefs  happy  in  its  own  mode  of  governing,  will 
more  or  lefs  prevent  the  inconveniencies  to  which 
it  is  fubjed,  according  as  it  (hall  have  more  or 
lefs.  attachment  to  religion  or  righteousness. 

What  are  the  particular  inconveniencjts  of  a 
monarchical  g)vernincnt  ?  In  what  cafes  is  mon- 
archy fatal  to  ihj:  liberty,  qua  io  to  the  fehciiy, 

of. 


232         The  Harmony  of  Religion 

of  a  nation?  When  the  monarch,  ioftead  of  mak- 
ing the  good  of  the  people  his  fupreme  law,  fol- 
Icrws  nothing  but  his  own  caprice»  When  he 
thinks  himfelf  vefted  with  fupreme  power    for  his 

^own  glory,  and  not  for  the  glory  of  his  kingdom. 
W^hen,  by  ftretching  his  authority  beyond  its  lavv- 
fi)l  bounds,  he  endeavors  arbitrarily  to  difpofe  of 
the  lives  and  fortunes  of  his  fubjed\s.  When,  in 
order  to  avenge  a  private  quarrel,  or  to  i'atiate 
his  tbirft  for  3  glory,  from  vvhich  his  people  derive 

'*tib  benefit,  he  ëngageth  them  in  bloody. wars,  and 
facrificeth  tïiem  to  a  vain  and  imaginary  grandeur, 
when  he  waftes  the  fubftance  of  his  people  in  fu- 
perb  buildings,  in  exceffive  embelliflinients,  and 
in  fumptuous  equipsges.  When  he  impofes  on 
them  enormous  tributes,  and  exorbitant  taxes. 
When  he  is  inatfctliible  to  the  widow  and  the  or- 
phan, "When  he  gives  himfelf  up  to  indolence, 
and  doth  Wot  ^ftodjr  the    wants    of  his    fubjefts. 

■  When,  thoiigh  he  appropriates  to  himfelf  the 
advantages  tît' empire,  yet,  in  order  to  free  him- 
'feif  frorti  the  fatigue  of  governing,  he  commits 
the  reins  to  a  ralh  counfellor  or  to  an  infolent 
favorite.     Wheti   he  entertains  fuch  an    idea   of 

'royalty  as  one  anciently  formed,  who  defined 
it  a  right  to  do  whatever  we  will  with  impunity  ; 

'fuch  ^ri  idea'as  that,  which  a  mean  flatterer  gave 
of  it    to    Alexander  the  Great,  Do  as  many  urt- 

'^jufl  aérions  as  yon  will,  in>poverifh  your  fubje6\s 
'by  exactions,    extortions,  and   rapines,   to  fatisfy 

■your  luxury  and  ambition,  it  is  all  right,  it  is  al! 
lovely,  becaufe  you  chdofc  to  have  it  fo.*  When, 

'indeed    of    being    thé     father   of    his  people,   be 

'ftrives  to  be  the  executioner,  like  that  brutal 
emperor,  who  wiflied  the  Roman  empire  had  but 

■one 'head  that  he  might  firike    it    off  at  a  blow.f 

•Thefe  are  the  inconveniencies  of  the  firft  kind  of 
government.  In 

c   ' 

*  Plutarch  ad  princip.  indo<a, 

I  f  Sueton,  Calig.  ch^p.  xxx. 


and  Civil  Polity.  233 

In  what  cafes  h  the  fécond  kind  of  govern- 
ment hurtful  ?  Is  it  not,  when  any  one  of  the 
magiftrates,  inftead  of  confidering  himfelf  as  a 
fmgle  member  of  the  affembly,  aims  to  be  at  the 
head  of  it  ?  When  he  intrudes  into  office  by 
finirter  means.  When  he  ufeth  his  power,  not 
for  the  public  good,  but  for  the  advancement  and 
glory  of  his  own  family.  When  he  is  mean 
enough  to  fell  his  vote.  When  he  ingratiates 
himfelf  with  a  tiumber  of  feditious  people,  in  or- 
der to  form  cabals,  and  to  engrofs  fupreme  pow* 
er.  When  he  doth  not  take  pains  to  inform  him- 
felf of  the  merits  of  a  caufe,  before  he  deter- 
mine it.  When  be  affociates  colleagues  witb 
himfelf,  wbofe  incapacity  is  intended  to  be  made 
a  foil  to  his  own  abilities,  tn(\ead  of  calling  in 
men  more  able  than  himfelf  to  fupply  his  own 
defeats.  In  one,  >vhen  he  makes  himfelf  judge 
in  his  own  caufe. 

Let  us  obfcrvc,  laftly,  when  a  popular  govern* 
cient  becomes  hurtful.  Is  it  not  when,  by  a 
inepe  principle  of  levity,  laws  are  made  and  un- 
made by  caprice  ?  When,  under  pretence  of 
equality,  »  proper  deference  to  fuperior  under- 
ftandings  is  refufed  ?  When  intrigue  and  cabal 
give  effect  to  evil  counfels  ?  W^hen  a  powerful 
faAion  oppreffes  the  virtuous  few  ?  When  pop- 
ular liberty  degenerates  into  licentioufnefs  and 
anarchy,  and  when  the  ambition  of  many  be- 
comes an  evil,  as  enormous  and  fatal  as  the  ty- 
ranny of  one  ?  Thefe,  and  many  more,  are  the 
imperfeûions  of  thefe  three  forts  of  government» 
Need  we  to  take  up  your  time  in  proving,  that 
all  thefe  ills  are  moft  and  beft  precluded  by  re- 
ligion I  Do  we  not  all  recoiled  foroe  fcripture 
maxima,  which  would  reftrain  thefe  exccifes  ?  I 
need  not,  therefore,  multiply  quotations  to  prove 
this  point.  Is  not  each  of  us  convinced,  that, 
if  we  thus  confidcr  nations  in  regard  to  the  forms 
of  their  government,  it  is  righteousness  alone 
that  exalts  them  ?  3.  Our 


;%^4         ^^^^  Harmony  of  Religion 

3.     Our  doftrine  will  appear  in  a  clearer  light 
.flill,   if   we  procrcd  to    examine  the   liberal  arts 
^and  sc{e}ices.     The    mprf    a  lociety    follows    the 
^fpirit  of  religion,    the  more  wiil  religion  cherifii 
-^them.^upder    its    foftcring.wiiifr.      Jurisprudence 
,w.ill  lipuriÛi,  hec^ufe  law  will  be:  difen^ag-cd  from 
^ambiguity,  which   perpetuates  animôTuies  ;  be- 
caufe  counfellors  will  plead. none  but  juftcaufes  ; 
and   b.ecaufe    judges  will  never  fufTer  tbemfelves 
to  be  corrupted  by  gij^^,  vjhich  blind  ibe  ejes  of 
jJb.e .wise  :   bin  -wjll    always. decide    accordiiig  to 
the  Ipirit  p/.tb,c  l/ft^fj^^n^   tlje   di£lates..^f  con- 
fcie.nce..   ..■.;■.-     [■  ^   *    ,' '^  ,"--  .!'..';!    ♦     ;^  • 
^^     ,Th^  milifa^'J.  Orp  wjjll.-floiirjRi^  bëcaufé  x\\e  fol- 
.jd.ler  w^ll  not  defraud  the  .p.fEc_er,  the    ofncer  wijl 
.not  defraud    the  toldie/  ;  becaufe    bo'h    will  go 
jintp  the  army,  .nojt  merely  to  obtain  the  favor  of 
ahqir    g.QY,e:r,nors,  but    tçj.pleafe    God  ;  becaufej 
bein'g  prepared    to  die  by   an  anticipated  repcfil- 
. tance,  th.çir   a^çdor  y/.ill  not  be   reflfainecl  by"  the 
j^fe^r  of  fariin^  into  the  ba^.^s   pj  "an  angVy  (yoà  ; 
,  b^cgqjÇe,  fliûjild  .they  .havp  neg-léfted  tp  conciliante 
-jiçhe  faypp  of  God  before -a  b^ttje,    they  .vybujid  be 
.perfuaded,  eyen  i,n  .the   be^t  of  it,  that  the  beft 
way  to  pleafe  him  would  be  to  difcharge  tlie   du- 
ty of    their    office  ;  \vhere,as   when    foldiers   feel 
.  their  confciences    agitated,  when  amidfl  the  'dif* 
]^cbàrg,e  of  the, £rtiilei:y  of  their  enemies  they  diï*- 
.cover  eternal  .flames,  whsn  they. fee  hciropening 
.  under  their  .feet,  .and  th.e  horrors  of  eternr.l  pun- 
..ifliment  f^icceeding  thofe   of  the  field  of   battle, 
they  will  always    fight  with    reludance,  and  ea- 
.jfJeavor  to  avoid  futurp   rpifery   by    Seein^g  .away 
.fiço.ai.  pre fent  death.:    ^^,.   ,-,,,, 

In  a  virtuous  ti^içy  çômMfrce  ^'J\\\%on\^t[^J  l>ç- 
^caafe  the  merchant,  always  fpeakipg  the  truth, 
.apd  dealing  with  good  fait.h,  wjll  attra(5l  general 
credit  .and  conhclence  ;  always .  following  the 
^tules  of  wifdom  and  prudence,  he,  .will  never  en- 
,gage  in   ralh  ujidert^kings,   Y'l^**?^  >i!Jll»V  fap^i^'^s 

and 


' ■  '  ''and  Civil  Polity.  235^ 

aind^fubvert  whole  houfes  ;  nor  beiiig' ahVnia't'eâ^ 
With  avarice  or  vain  ^l^vj'':  he  wUl  rict  fifft  ac-"* 
quire  richcs'by  injudice',  .ârTdiieiit  \vki\e  them' 
with  iridifcretiori  ;  depéàdin^  'on  the'bieiiing^s  of* 
heaven,  all  his  labors  Will  b^  enlivened  witli* 
courage  and  joyo  '"        '      '    '     ^  '' 

In  Inch  ^  iUteydhhiiiy''^\ÏÏÛo\in%'y  b'e'cauftf. 
each,  burniug  with  zeal  foi'  the  glbry  of  God, 
will  carefully  cultivate  a  fcience,  which  hath 
God  for  Its  objc-dl  ;  bécaùfé.  bein^  free  from  i^ 
parry  fpirit,  he  will  receive  the  tnith,-  ^vhateve'f* 
hand  may  prefent  it  to  him'  ;  becaure,  by'refeT--'s 
ring  religion  to  its  chief  end,  he  \Villno't  fpend 
his  life  in  the  purlult  of  trifles  ;  beciaufe,  full  oP 
■seal  for  his  falvation,  he  will  be  attentive  to  eve-* 
ry  fïep  towards  it  ;  becaàfe,  not  being  é^iïîaved'* 
by  his  paiîions,  he  will  not  be  enveloped  in  thé" 
darknefs  produced  by  them  ;  or,  to  exprefs  my-' 
felf  in  the  language  of  fcripture,  becalife,  by  dd-'^ 
jng  tee  will  of  Godf  be  ivill  knonv  iv-hctbèr':Çut\f- 
an d'  fu c h  doc Irines  zomé  î'com  t h e  S u p r e m e ; B e i n^, ' 
or  from  the  preacher  only,  John  vii.  17,  '     ' 

The  mechanical  arts  will  flouriflivin  a  virtu- 
ops  Hate,  beciiufe  they,  on  v/hom  God  hath  not 
bctVowéd  genius  equal  to  the  inveftig^Jtion  of  ab- 
ftrad  fcicnces,  whom  he  hath  fitted  for  l^fs  no- 
ble'ftatibns  in  fociety,  will  fill  up  thofc  fta'tions 
with  the  ijtmoft  care,  and  will  be  happy  in  deriv-" 
irig  from  them  fuch  advantages  as  they  produced 
Thus  a  juft, notion  of  atts  and  fciences  opens  to 
us  a  third  fou rte  of  arguments  to  prove  the  truth 
of  our  text. 

4.  The  do£trlne  oï  providence  opens  a  fourth, 
as  otliers  have  obferved.  The  coridudl  of  provi- 
dence, in  regard  to  public  bodies,  is  very  differ-' 
eht  from  that,  which  prevails  in  the  cafe  of  in- 
dividuals. In  regard  to  the  latter,  providence" 
is  involved  in  darknefs.  Many  times  it  feems 
to  condemn  virtue  and  eVown  injuftice,  and  to' 
leave  innocence  to  groan  in  filencC)  and  to  em-- 

power 


23^        The  Harmony  of  Religion 

power  guilt  to  riot  and  triumph  in  public.  The 
wicked  rich  man  fartd  sumptuously  every  day^ 
Lazarus  desired  ia  vain  to  be  fed  -with  the  crumbs 
that  fell  from  bis  table,  Luke  xvi,  19,21.  St. 
Paul  was  exc-cuted  on  a  icaffold.  Nero  reigned 
on  Cafsr's  throne.  And  to  fay  all  in  o\\t  word, 
Jefus  Ghrift  was  born  in  a  ftable,  and  Herod  lived 
and  died  in  a  palace. 

But  providence  is  direfted  in  a  different  meth- 
od in  regard  to  public  bodies.  Profperity  in 
them  is  the  tffeft  of  righteoufnefs,  public  hap- 
pinefs  is  the  reward  of  public  virtue,  the  wifeft 
nation  is  ufualJy  the  molt  fuccefsful,  and  virtue 
•walks  with  glory  by  her  fide.  God  iometimes 
indeed  afSidls  the  nioft  virtuous  nations  :  but  he 
doth  fo  with  the  defign  of  purifying  them,  and  of 
opening  new  occafions  to  beftow  larger  benefits 
on  them.  He  fometi mes  indeed  profpers  wicked 
nations:;  Ijut  their  jprofperity  is  an  effort  of  his 
yaiiejTce  and  long  fuffering,  it  is  to  give  them 
itimc  topi'eventrtheir  deftru6lion  ;  yet,  after  all, 
as  I  faid  beicre,  profperity  ufualiy  follows  righte- 
oufnefs  -in  public  bodies,  public  bappinefs  is  the 
reward  of  public  virtue,  the  wifeft  nation  is  the 
moft'faccefsful,  and  glory  is  generally  conne<5led 
.■with  virtue. 

rPbey,  to  whom  we  are.  indebted  for  this  re- 
ilé£lion,  have  grounded  it  on  this  reafon,  A  day 
will  come  when  Lazarus  will  be  indemnified,  and 
the  rich  man  punilhed  ;  St.  Paul  will  be  reward- 
ed, and  Nero  will  be  confounded  ;  Jtfus  Chrifl: 
will  fill  a  throne,  and  Herod  will  be  covered  with 
ignominy.  Innocence  will  be  avenged,  juftice 
Satisfied,  the  majefty  of  the  laws  repaired,  and  the 
rights  of  God  maintained. 

But  fuch  retribution  is  impraticable  in  regard 
to  public  bodies.  A  nation  cannot  be  puniDied 
then  as  a  nation,  a  province  as  a  province,  a 
kingdom  as  a  kingdom.  All  different  forts  of 
government  wili  be  then  aboliflied.  One  indi- 
vidual 


and  Civil  Polity»  z^j 

vîdual  of  a  people  will  be  put  in  poiTeflioi)  of 
glory,  while  another  will  be  cover-d  with  fliame 
and  confufion  of  face.  It  (hould  (eeai,  then,  that 
providence  owes  to  its  own  reélitude  thofc  times 
of  vengeance,  in  which  it.  pours  all  its  wrath  oi\ 
wicked  focieties,  fends  them  plagues,  wars,  fam- 
ines, and  other  cataftrophies,  of  which  hiftory- 
gives  us  fo  many  memorable  examples.  To  place 
hopes  altogether  on  worldly  pol'-cy,  to  pretend  to 
derive  advantages  from  vice,  and  fo  to  found  the 
happinefs  of  fociety  on  the  ruins  of  religion  and 

virtue,  what  is  this  but  to  infuk  providence  ? . 

This  is  to  arouze  that  power  againll  us,  which 
fooner  or  later  overwhelms  and  confounds  vicious 
focieties. 

5.  If  the  obfcurlty  of  the  ways  of  providence, 
which  ufually  renders  doubtful  the  reafonings  of 
men  on  its  condad,  weaken  the  laft  argument, 
let  us  proceed  to  confider,  in  the  next  place,  the 
-  declarations  of  God  himfelf  on  this  article.  The 
whole  twenty-eighth  chapter  of  Deuteronomy, 
all  the  bleffings  and  curfes  pronounced  there,  fuU 
■  ly  prove  our  dodrine.  E.ead  this  tender  com- 
plaint, which  God  formerly  made  corxerning  the 
irregularities  of  his  people,  "  O  that  they  v/erc 
wife,  that  they  underftood  thie,  that  they  would 
confider  their  latter  end  !  How  fhould  one  chacc 
a  thoufaud,  or  two  put  ten  thoufand  to  flight:'' 
chap,  xxxii.  29,  30.  Read  the  afFeifling  words> 
which  he  uttered  by  the  mo«th  of  his  prophet, 
<*  O  that  my  people  had  hearkened  unto  me,  and 
Ifrael  had  walked  in  my  ^yays  i  1  (hould  i'oou 
have  fubdued  their  enemies,  and  turned  my  ban^i 
k^ainfl  tbnir  adverfaries.  Their  time,  fnould  have" 
endured  forever.  I  fnould  have  fed  them  alfo 
"With  the  fineft  of  the  wheat  ;  and  with  honey  ouç 
of  the  rock  fhàuld  I  have  fatisûed  them,"  Pf-^lm"* 
Ixxxi.  13,  &c.  Read  :he  noble  promifes  made  byj 
the  rainiftry  of  Ifaiah,  "  Thus  faith  the  Lord  thy 
Kçdeèmer,  the  Holy  One  of  Ifrael,  I  am  th^ 
'Y  Lord  ^ 


03S        The  Harmony  oj  'Religion 

Lord  thy  God  which  tcacheth  thee  to  prophet, 
v?hich  leadeth  thee  by  the  way  thou  fliouldeft  go. 
O  that  thou  hadft  hearkened  to  my  command- 
Ojcius  I  then  had  thy  peace  been  as  a  river,  and 
thy  righteoufnefs  as  the  waves  of  the  fea  :  thy 
feed  alio  had  been  ac  the  fand,  and  thy  name 
fliould  not  have  been  cut  60'',  nor  deftroyed  from 
before  me,"  chap,  xlviii.  17,  Sec.  Read  the  ter- 
rible threatenings'denounced  by  the  prophet  Jere- 
miah, "  Though  Moie^  and  Samuel  flood  before 
me,  yet  my  mind  could  not  be  toward  this  peo- 
ple ;  cafi:  them  out  of  my  fight,  and  let  them  go 
forth.  And  it  fhall  come  to  pafs,  if  they  fay  un- 
to thee,  *:Whither  (hall  we  go  forth?  then  thou 
{halt  tell  them,  Thus  faith  the  Lord,  Such  as  are 
for  death,  to  death  ;  and  fucUas  are  for  the  fword, 
to  the  fword;  andfuch  as  are  for  the  famine,  to 
the  famine  ;  and  fuch  as  are  for  the  captivity,  to 
the  captivity.  And  I  will  appoint  over  them  four 
kinds,  faith  thé  Lord  ;  the  fword  to  flay,  and  the 
dogs  to  tear,  and  the  fowls  of  the  heaven,  und  the 
beafts  of  the  earth,  to  devour  and  deflroy.  For 
vho  (hall  have  pity  upon  thee,  O  Jerufalem  ?  or 
\pho  fiiall  bemoan  thee  ?  or  who  (liall  go  afide  to 
afk  how  thou  doeil  ?  Thou  haft  forfaken  me,  faith 
the  Lord,  thou  art  gone  backward  :  therefore  will 
I  ftretch  out  my  ha^rd  againft  thee,  and  dcftroy 
thee;  1  am  weary  of  repenting,"  chap.  xv.  1,  Sec. 
The  language  of  our  text  is  agreeable  to  all  thefc 
palTages  ;  it  is  rigbteousnessy  faith  the  text,  it 
is  righteoufnefs  that  exaltetb  a  nation»  Th\.]^ 
God  fpeaks  ;  moreover,  thus  he  ads,  as  we  (hall 
.  fhcw  you  in  the  next  articie. 

6.  The  history  of  all  ages  affords  us  another 
clafs  of  arguments  in  defence  of  our  dodrine, 
and  fo  proves  the  truth  of  it  by  experience. 

Had  ever  preacher  a  wider  or  more  fruitful 
field  than  this,  which  opens  to  our  view  in  this 
part  of  our  difcourfe  ?  Shall  we  produce  you  a 
fiftof  Egypdans,  Peifians,  AfTyrians,  andGreeksj 

■  cr 


and- Civii  Pûliiy.  s.39 

orRbmans  who  furpaffed  them  all  ?  Shall  we 
fhew  you  all  thefe  nations  by  turns  exalted  as 
they  refpedled  righteoufncfs,  or  abafed  as  they 
negledcd  it  ? 

By  what  myfterious  art  did  ancient  Egypt  fub» 
fift  with  fo  much  glory  during  a  period  oï  fifteea 
or  fixteen  ages  ?*  By  a  benevolence  fo  extenfive, 
that  he,  who  refufed  to  relieve  the  wretched, when 
he  had  it  in  his  power  to  aflift  him,  was  himftlf 
puniihed  with  death  :  by  a  jultice  fo  impartial, 
that  their  kings  obliged  the  judges  to  take  an 
oath,  that  they  would  never  do  any  thing  againft 
their  own  confciences,  though  they,  the  kingg 
themfelves,  fliould  command  them  :  by  an  aver- 
fion  to  bad  princes,  fo  fixed,  as  to  deny  them  the 
honors  of  a  funeral  :  by  invariably  rendering  to 
merit  public  praife,  even  beyond  the  grave  ;  for 
when  an  Egyptian  died,  a  feflion  was  held  for 
the  dired  purpofc  of  inquiring  how  he  had  fpent 
bis  life,  fo  that  all  the  refpe£t  due  to  his  memory 
might  be  paid  :  by  entertaining  fuch  juft  ideas  o£ 
the  vanity  of  life,  as  to  confider  their  houfes  au- 
inns,  in  which  they  were  to  lodge  as  it  were  only 
for  a  night,  and  their  fepulcres  as  habitations,  in 
which  they  were  to  abide  many  ages,  in  which, 
therefore,  they  united  all  the  folidity  and  pomp 
of  architeûure,  witnefs  their  famous  pyramids  : 
by  a  life  fo  laborious,  that  even  their  amufements 
were  adapted  to  flrengthen  the  body,  and  improve 
the  mind  :  by  a  readinefs  to  difcharge  their  debts 
fo  remarkable,  that  they  had  a  law,  which  pro- 
hibited the  borrowing  of  money,  except  on  con- 
dition of  pledging  the  body  of  a  parent  for  pay^ 
ment,  a  depofit  fo  venerable,  that  a  man,  who 
deferred  the  redemption  of  it,  was  looked  upon 
with  horror  :  in  one  word,  by  a  wifdom  fo  pro- 
found, that  Mofes  himfelf  is  renowned  in  fcnp- 
ture  for  being  learned  in  it, 

Br 

*  Diodor.  Sicil.  lib.  i.  h^*  3.    Herod,  lib.  ii. 


'Ç40        The  Harmony  of  Religion 

Bjr  what  marvellous  method  did  the  Perfiahs 
obtain  fuch  a  diflinguiflied  place  of  honor  in  an- 
cient hiftory  ?*"  By  conudering  falfehood  in  the 
moCr  horrid  light,  as  a  vice  the  meaneft  and  mofl 
dilgraceful  :  by  a  noble  generofity,  conferring 
favors  on  the  nations  they  conquered,  and  leav» 
ing  them  to  enjoy  all  the  enfigns  of  their  former 
grandeur  :  by  an  uiiiverfal  equity,  obliging  them- 
felves  to  publiih  the  virtues  of  their  greateft  ene- 
riies  :  by  obferving,  as  an  inviolable  fecret,  ftate 
nffairs,  fo  that,  to  ufe  the  language  of  an  ancient 
author,  neither  promifes  nor  threatenings  could 
extort  it,  for  the  ancient  laws  of  the  kingdom 
obliged  them  to  be  Trient  under  pain  of  death  ; 
by  a  decorum  fo  regular,  that  queens  and  all  court 
jadies  quitted  the  table  as  foon  as  ever  the  com* 
pany  began  to  lay  afide  moderation  in  drinking  : 
by  religioufly  recording  noble  anions,  and  tranf- 
tnitting  them  to  pofterity  in  public  regifters  :  by 
educating  their  children  fo  wifely,  that  they  were 
taught  virtue  as  other  nations  were  taught  let- 
ters :  by  difcoverlng  no  grief  for  fuch  youths  as 
died  uneducated.  The  children  of  the  royrffam- 
ily  'Aere  put,  at  fourteen  years  of  age,  into  the 
hands  of  four  of  the  wifcik  and  moft  virtuous 
Hateirnen.  The  £rft  taught  them  the  worfhip  of 
the  gods  ;  the  fécond  trained  them  up  to  fpeak 
truth  and  praftife  equity  ;  the  third  habituated 
ihcm  to  fubdue  voluptuoufnefs,  to  enjoy  real  lib- 
erty, to  be  always  princes,  and  always  ntaflers 
of  themfclves  and  their  own  pgfTions  ;  the  fourth 
fnfpirtd  them  with  courage,  and,  by  teaching 
them  how  to  command  themfelves,  taught  them: 
how  to  maintain  dominion  over  others. 

We  purpofelv  omit  the  noble  and  virtuous  ac- 
tions of  the  Affyrians,  and  Medes,  the  Greeks, 
and  other  nations,  who  were  the  glory  of  the 
ages  in  which  they  lived.  3ut  îet  us  rot  pafs  by- 
ancient 

.  *  Herod.  Ub.  î.  iii.     Plat.  Alcib.  r. 


and  Civil  Polity»  241.: 

ancient  Rome  :  Was  eter  nation  more  exalted  I* 
One  expreffion  of  Caelar  will  give  us  a  jufl  notion 
of  their  excellence.  Cicero  recommended  a  friend 
to  him,  and  this  was  his  anfwer  :  In  regard  to 
Marcus  Fur  his  ^  whom  you  bave  recommended  to 
mcy  I  will  make  bim  king  of  Gaul,  If  you  bave 
any  otber  friends  you  wish  to  bave  promoted^  you 
may  command  me,\  But  by  what  unheard-of 
prodigy  did  old  Rome,  compofed  at  firft  of  no 
more  than  three  thoufand  inhabitants,  carry  con-^ 
queft  in  lefs  than  fix  hundred  years  to  the  ends 
of  the  earth  ?  Thus  fpsaks  the  Emperor  Julian, 
By  what  impenetrable  fecret  did  this  confufed 
njixture  of  vagabonds  and  thieves  become  a  femi- 
nary  of  heroifm  and  grandeur  ?  By  a  wife  dociU 
ity,  fo  that  even  kings  fometinies  fubmitted  to 
the  advice  of  individuals  \  witncfs  Tullus  Hoi- 
tilius,  who  durft  not  decide  the  cafe  of  Horatius, 
but  referred  it  to  the  people  :!•  by  an  obierva- 
tion  of  the  law  fo  {lri€t,  that  Brutus  condemn- 
ed his  two  fons  to  die  by  the  hands  of  the  pub- 
lic executioner,  for  having  liftened  to  the  am- 
bitious propofals  of  the  Tairquins,  who  were 
confpiring  to  enflave  the  citizens,  and  remount 
the  throne  :  by  a  frugality  fo  great,  that  fuch 
men  as  Curius^  Fabricins,  Hegulu«s  iEmilius, 
Paulus,  and  Mumraius,  thefe  great  deliverers  of 
the  Roman  people,  were  feen-to  feed  their  own 
cattle,  to  cultivate  their  lands,  and  to  live  with- 
out pomp  and  parade  ;  by  an  excellent  economy, 
fo  that  Atilius  Regulus, ,  who  commanded  a  Ro- 
man army  in  Africa,  demanded  leave  of  the  Seti- 
ate  to  go  home  and  provide  for  the  wants  of  his 
family,  from  whom  a  day  laboref  had -ftolen  the 
working  tools  ufed  in  cultivating  hb  sftate  of 
V  2  -  feven 

•  Montaign  de  la  grandeur  Romaine,  lib.  ii.  chap.  24. 

t  Cicer.  Epifl.  ad  famil.  lib.  vii.  5.  Some  copie:; 
read  not  Furius,  but  M.  Orfms.  See  Spanheim  ia,Lb«i 
Cxlars,  page  161. 

I  Liv.  lib.  i.  16. 


242        ^^^  Harmony  of  Religion 

{even  acres  ;  a  requifition  fo  jufi,  that  the  Sen- 
ate engaged  to  buy  tools,  to  ciiUivate  his  land, 
and  to  fupport  his  wift:  and  children  at  the  pub- 
lic charge  :*  fo  far  did  the)'  carry  this  virtue, 
that  the  elder  Cato,  returning  from  Spain  to 
Italyy  fold  his  horfe  to  fave  the  charge  of  freight, 
and  ufually,  when  he  travelled,  carried  his  own 
knapfack,  which  contained  all  his  travelling  ne- 
CtflTaries  :  by  an  ardent  love  for  the  general 
good,  fo  that  every  thing  was  referved  for  the 
public  :  temples,  baths,  Foads,  aqueducts,  tri-- 
UiTiphal  arches,  all  were  foperb,  when  the  nation- 
al glory  was  in  view,  as  all  things  for  the  ufe  oî 
individuals  were  plain  :  by  an  utter  averfion  to 
ufelefs  bravery,  fo  that  they  confidered  in  a  light 
equally  mean,  the  general,  who  expofed  his  per- 
fon  needlefsly,  and  him,  who  avoided  danger, 
■when  the  public  good  rendered  it  neceiTary  for 
Vxm  to  expofe  himfelf:t  by  a  fcrcpulous  cau- 
tion not  to  undertake  unjuO:  wars  ;  to  guard 
againft  which,  they  had  a  college  a^  Rome, 
where  it  was  coolly  exaniined,  whether  an  in- 
tended war  were  jufi  or  uniufl,  before  it  was 
propoied  to  the  fen  ate  and  the  people  :|  by  an 
unfjrmountable  aveilion  to  every  fpecie  ot 
military  fraud,,  fo  that  Lucius  Marcius,  (my 
brethren,  how  ought  this  idea  of  Pagan  heroes* 
to  cover  fome  witl»  confuiion,  who  oftentatioufly 
affeâ.  to  play  the  hero  in  the  chriftian  world  I) 
Lucius  Marcius,  I  fay,  having  deceived  Perfcs, 
king  of  Macedonia,  by  giving  him  falfe  hopes  of 
peace,  and  having  conquered  hnn  by  tliis  ftrata- 
gem,  was  adjudged  by  the  fenate  to  have  vio- 
lated the  Homaa  laws,  and  to  have  fwerved^  frorn 
the  ancient  cuftoms,  according  to  which  it  was  a 
maxim  to  conquer  by  valor  and  not  by  fraud. 

If,     - 

*  Liv.  Epitom.  lib.  1 8.     Montagne  de  la  parfimonie 
des  anciens,  lib  i.  chap.  5a* 

t  Selluft  de  bcll.  Catil   ix. 

\    Coll.  des  faciaux.   Dion.  lialic.  lib.  î5.    Antj^. 
Rom.  lib.  i.  32. 


end  Civil  PoUty.  s^^ 

If",  having  (hewn  the  caufe  of  the  profperitjr 
of  ancient  nations,  we  were  to  inquire  into  the 
reafons  of  their  decline  j  were  we  to  compare 
the  Egyptians  under  their  wife  kings  with  the 
Egyptians  in  a  time  of  anarchy,  the  Perfians 
victorious  under  Cyrus,  with  the  Perfians  ener- 
vated by  the  luxuries  of  Alia,  the  Romans  at 
liberty  under  the  Confuls,  with  the  Roman! 
enflaved  by  their  Emperors,  we  iliould  5nd,  that 
the  decline  of  each  of  thefe  nations  was  owing 
to  the  praflice  of  vices  oppofite  to  the  virtues 
which  had  caufcd  its  elevation  :  we  ffiould  be 
obliged  to  acknowledge,  that  vain  glory,  luxury, 
voluptuoufnefs,  difunion,  envy,  and  boundlefs 
ambition,  were  the  hateful  mearvs  of  fubvcrtîn^ 
fiâtes,  which,  in  the  height  of  their  profperity, 
expedVed,  and  in  all  appearance  juftiy-  expeClea, 
to  endure  to  the  end  of  time  :  we  (hould  be 
obliged  to  allow,  that  fome  excefTes,  which,  in- 
certain circumrtances,  had  contributed  to  exalt" 
tlrefc  nations,  were,  in  other  circumftances,  the 
means  of  ruining  them. 

True,  ambition  impelled  Cafar  to  elevate  the 
Republic  of  Rome  to  a  pitch  as  high  as  it  is  pofli* 
ble  for  human  grandeur  to  attain.  Armed  for 
the  defence  of  the  Republic,  he  fought  for  it, 
thougli  lef£  for  it  than  for  his  own  glory,  and  dif- 
played,  we  grant,  the  Roman  eagle  in  thefurtheft 
parts  of  Afia,  rendered  Gaul  tributary,  fwelled 
the  Rhine  with  German  blood,  fubdued  the  Brit- 
ons,  and  made  all  the  Adriatic  coafts  refound  the 
fame  of  his  viétories.  But  did  not  the  fame  am- 
bition impel  him  to  excite  a  civil  war  to  arm 
Rome  againft  Rome,  to  cover  the  Pharfalian  field 
with  carnage  and  foak  the  ground  with  Roman 
blood,  topurfue  the  ftrattered  remains  of  Pompey's 
army  into  the  heart  of  Africa^  to  give  a  queen, 
or  rather  a  proftitote,  the  kingdom  of  Egypt,  to 
reduce  the  firft  and  moft  free  of  all  nations  to  a 
ftate  of  meannefs  and  fervility  beneath  the  moft 

abjea 


244        ^^^  Harmony  of  Religion 

abje£l  of  mankind  ?  For,  my  brethren,  wliat 
were  thefe  Romans  after  they  had  lofl  their  liber- 
ty, and  given  themfelves  up  to  abfolnte  makers  ? 
Thefe  Romans,  who  had  given  the  univerfe  law  ; 
thefe  Roman  citizens,  even  the  mcanefl  of  them, 
who  would  have  thought  thcmfelres  difgraced  had 
they  mixed  their  blood  with  that  »f  kings  ;  thefe 
Romans,  once  fo  jealous  of  their  liberty,  have  we 
not  feen  thefe  very  people  under  their  emperors 
•fubmit  to  vafTalage  fo  as  to  become  a  fcandal  even 
to  (laves  ?  Infamous  flatterers,  did  not  they  ereél 
altars  to  Claudius,  Caligula,  and  Nero?  Did 
Dot  Rome  hear  one.  of  its  citizens  addrefs  this 
language  to  the.lall  of  thefe  monfters  ?  "  Choofe, 
G«far,  what  place  you  will  among  the  immortal 
gods.  Will  you  fway  the  fceptre  of  Jupiter,  or 
mount  the  chariot  of  Apollo  ?  There  is  not  a 
deity,  who  will  not  yield  his  empire  to  you,  and 
count  it  an  honor  to  refign  in  your  favor.* 

But  is  it  neceffary-to  quote  ancient  hiflory  in 
proof  of  what  we  have  advanced,  that  is,  that  the 
fame  vices,  which  contribute  at  firft  to  exalt  a 
nation,  in  the  end  caufe  its  decline  and  ruin  ? 
There  is  a  nation,!  in  favor  of  which  all  things 
feem  to  promife  a  general  and  lafting  profperity. 
It  has  îin- advantageous  fituation,  a  fruitful  foil, 
a  temperate  climate,  an  agreeable  fociety,  an- 
cafy  accefs,  a  mutual  generofity,  an  inimitable 
induflry,  quick  penetration  in  council,  heroical 
courage  in  war,  incredible  fuccefs  in  trade,  fur- 
prifing  dexterity  in  arts,  indifputable  reputation 
in  fciences,  an  amiable  toleration  in  religion, 
feverity  blended  with  fweetnefs,  fweetnefs  temper- 
ed with  feverity. 

Does  this  nation  pafs  the  bounds  ?  At  firft 
it  acquires  advantages  more  than  nature  and. 
art  bad  given  it.     The  boundlefs    ambition  of 

the 

•  Lucan.  Pharfal.  lib.   i. 

f  This  fermon  was  preached  in  1706» 


and  Civil  Polity,  24 J^ 

the  monarch  infpires  the  fubje£ls  with  a  noble 
pride.  Authority,  eftablifned  by  defpotical  pow- 
er, enflaves  the  judgments  of  all  to  the  will  of 
one.  A  treacherous  policy  at  firft  impofcs  on 
neighboring  ftates.  Troops,  impelled  by  a  rafh 
valor  at  firft,  furmount  all  obftacles.  Toleration 
is  banifhed,  the  prince  takes  the  place  of  God 
himfelf,  and  exercifes  his  prerogative.  Violat- 
ing the  faith  ofedifts,  procures  fome  prefent  ad- 
vantages. An  infatiable  avidity  adds  fortrefe 
to  fortrefs,  city  to  city,  province  to  province, 
kingdom  to  kingdom.  But  where  is'divine  prov- 
idence ?  Where  is  the  truth  ©f  our  text, 
righteousness  exalteth  a  nation  ?  What  pitch 
of  grandeur  can  religion  obtain  for  a  people, 
"which  cannot  be  obtained  by  other  means  ? 

Stop.  The  objeûion  made  to  our  dodrine 
demônftrates  the  truth  of  it.  The  ambition  of 
the  monarch,  communicated  to  his  fubjedlsj 
will  there  produce  all  the  fatal  effeéis  of  ambi- 
tion. Defpotical  power,  which  enflaved  the. 
judgments  of  all  to  the  abfolute  will  of  one,  will 
caufe  the  judgments  of  all  to  refift  the  will  of 
one.  That  deceitful  policy,  which  took  neigh- 
boring ftatcs  by  furprize,  will  infpire  them  with 
diftruft  arid  precaution.  Troops  hwrrred  on  by 
Taftinefs  will  find  out  that  rafhnefs  is  the  high 
road  to  defeat.  Toleration  difallowed  will  dif^ 
affedl  the  hearts  of  faithful  fubjefts,  and  induftry 
will  flee  to  foreign  climes.  The  violation  of 
cdi€ls  will  deftroy  confidence  in  all  the  public 
inftruments  of  government.  An  infatiable  avid- 
ity of  territorial  acquifitions,  of  poffefling  forts, 
cities,  provinces,  and  kingdoms  without  num- 
ber, will  require  more  attention  and  greater  ex- 
penfe  than  any  nation  can  furnifh.  A  ftate  in 
this  condition,  will  fink  under  the  weight  of  its 
own  grandeur,  it  will  be  attenuated  by  being 
expanded,  and,  if  I  may  ufe  fuch  an  expreffion,, 
impoverifiied   by  its   abundance.      Each  pafTion, 

put 


24$        7"^^  Harmony  of  Religion 

put  in  motion  will  give  a  (liock  peculiar  toitfelf, 
and  all  together  will  unite  in  one  general  blow - 
fatal  to  the  edifice,  which  they  had  eref\ed.  A  ■ 
prince,  by  becoming  an  objeél  of  the  a*lmiration 
of  the  world,  becomes  at  the  fame  time  an  ob- 
jedi  of  jealoufy,  fufpicion,  and  terror.  Hence 
come  civil  commotions  and  foreign  warSé 
Hence  the  forming  of  leagues,  and  deep-con- 
certed plots.  Hence  mortality,  fcarcity,  and 
famine.  Hence  heaven  and  earth  in  concert 
againft  a  ftate,  that  feemed  to  defy  both  earth 
and  heaven..  Hence  an  eternal  example  to  juf- 
tify  providence  in  all  future  ages,  and  todemon- 
ftrate  to  the  moft  obflinate  the  doftrine  of  the 
text,  that  only  reditude  can  procure  fubftantial 
glory,. 

Thus,  we  think,  we  have  fufHciently  eftablifh- 
ed  our  propbe<*s  propofition  :  and  we  will  finifii 
the  arguments,  by  which  we  have  fupported  it, 
by  giving  you  the  charadler  of  that  author,  who 
hath  taken  the  greateft  pains  to  fubvert  it.*  He 
was  one  of  thofe  inconfiflent  men,  whom  the  fineft 
genius  cannot  preferve  from  felf-contradidlion, 
and  whofe  oppofite  qualities  will  always  leave  us 
in  doubt,  whether  to  place  them  in  one  extreme, 
or  in  another  diametrically  oppofite.  On  the  one 
hand,  he  was  a  great  philofopher,  and  knew  how- 
to  diftinguifh  truth  from  falfehood,  for  he  could 
fee  at  once  a  connexion  of  principles,  and  a  train 
of  confequences  :  on  the  other  hand,  he  was  a 
great  fophifter,  always  endeavoring  to  confound 
tryth  with  falfehood,  to  wreft  principles,  and  to 
force  confequence?.  In  one  view,  admirably 
learned und  of  fine  parts,  having  profited  much  by 
the  labors  of  others,  and  more  by  the  exercife  of 
bis  own  great  fenfe  :  in  another  view,  ignorant, 
or  affedling  to  be  ignorant,  of  the  moft  common 
things,  advancing  arguments  which   bad  been  a 

thoufaod 

•  Mr.  B*yle. 


and  Citjil  Polity.  --24^- 

■Adufand  tiroes  refuted,  and  ftarting  obje£li(His 
which  the  greateft  novice  in  the  fchcols  durft  not 
have  mentioned  without  bluQîing.  On  the  one 
hand,  attacking  the  gre^tcft  men,  opening  a  wide 
field  for  them  to  labor  in,  leading  them  into  de- 
vious and  fugged  paths,  and,  if  not  going  beyond 
them,  giving  them  a  world'^of  pains  to- keep  pace 
with  him  :  on  the  other  hand,  quoting  the  mean- 
eft  geniufes,  offering  a  profufion  of  incenfe  to 
them,  blotting  his  writings  with  names  that  had 
never  been  pronounced  by  learned  lips.  On  the 
one  hand,  free,  at  leaft  in  appearance,  from  every 
difpofition  contrary  to  the  fpirit  of  the  gofpcl, 
chafte  in  his  manners,  grave  in  his  converfation, 
temperate  in  his  diet,  and  auftere  in  his  ufual 
courfc  of  life  :  on  the  oth^r,-  employing  all  the 
acutenefs  of  his  geniuc  xo  oppofc  good  morals, 
and  to  attack  chaftity,  raodefty,  and  all  other 
chriftian  virtues..  Sometimes  appealing  to  a 
ti-ibunal  of  the  mod  rigid  orthodoxy,  deriving 
arguments  from  the  pureft  fources,  and  quoting 
divines  of  the  moft  unfufpefted  foundnefs  in  the 
faith  :  at  other  times,  travelling  in  the  high 
road  of  heretics,  reviving  the  objedions  of  an- 
cient herefiarchs,  ferging  them  new  armor,  and 
uniting  in  one  body  the  errors  of  pâft'àges  with 
thofe  of  the  prefent  time.  O  that  this  man,  who 
was  endowed  with  fo  many  talents,  may  have 
been  forgiven  by  God,  for  the  bad  ufc  he  made 
of  them  I  May  that  Jefus,  whom  he  fo  often 
attacked,  have  expiated  his  crimes  1  But,  though 
charity  conftrains  us  to  hope  and  wi(h  for  his 
falvation,  the  honor  of  our  holy  religion  obliges 
us  publicly  to  declare  that  he  abufed  his  own 
underftanding,  to  proteft  before  heaven  and  earth 
that  we  difown  him  as  a  member  of  our  reformed 
churches,  and  that  we  Ihall  always  confider  a 
part  of  his  writings  as  a  fcandal  to  good  men, 
and  as  a  peft  of  the  churcha 

We  return  to  our  prophet.     Let  us  employ  a 

few 


s 4^         The  Harmony  of  Religion 

few  moments  in  reflecSling  on  the  truths  we  have? 
heard.  Thanks  be  to  God,  my  brethren,  we  have, 
better  means  of  knowing  the  righteousness  that 
exalts  a  natioîi,  and  more  motives  to  prailife  it, 
than  all  the  nations,  of  whofe  glory  we  have  been 
hearing.  They  bad  only  a  fuperficial,  debafed, 
confufed  knowledge  of  the  virtues,  which  confti» 
tute  fubftantial  grandeur  ;  and,  as  they  held  er- 
rors in  religion,  the^»^  muft  necefTarily  have  erred 
in  civil  polity.  •  God,  glory  be  to  his  name  Î  hath 
placed  at  the  head  of  our  councils  the  moft  perfe£l 
legifl^tor,  that  ever  held  the  reins  of  government 
in  the  world.  This  legiiiator  is  Jefus  Ghrift.  Ilts 
kingdoKiy  indeed,  is  not  cf  this  worlds  but  the 
rules  he  has  given  us  to  arrive  at  that,  are  proper 
to  render  us  hapoy  in  the  prefent  ftate.  When 
"he  fays,  Seek  yejirst  the  kingdom  of  God^  and  his 
rightecusnessy  and  all  other  things  sJiall  be  added 
to  you,  Matt.  vi.  33-  he  gives  the  command,  and 
makes  tke  promife  to  whole  nations  as  well  as  to 
individuals. 

Who  ever  carried  fo  far  as  this  divine  legiflator 
ideas  of  the  virtues,  of  which  we  have  been  treat- 
ing in  feveral  parts  of  this  difcourfe,  and  by 
pradtifing  which  nations  are  exalted  ?  Who 
ever  formed  fuch  jufl;  notions  of  that  benevolence, 
that  love  of  fecial  good,  that  generofuy  to  ene- 
mies, that  contempt  of  life,  that  wifdom,  that 
veneration  for  noble  exploits,  that  docility  and 
frugality,  that  devotednefs  to  public  ufe,  that, 
diflançe  from  falfe  glory,  that  magnanimity,  and 
all  the  other  virtues,  which -render  aniiquity  ven- 
erable to  us  ?  Who  ever,gave  fuch  wife  inflruc- 
tjons  to  kings  and  fubje<Sls,  magiftraies  and  peo-, 
pie,  lawyers  and  merchants,  foldiers  and  ftatef- 
men,  the  world  and  the  church  ?  We  know 
thefe  virtues  better  than  any  other  people  in  the 
world.  We  are  able  to  carry  our  glory  far  be- 
yond Egyptians  and  Perfiaps,  Affyrians  and 
Medes,  iacedenjoni>ios,  Athçnian^j  and  Ro- 
mans i 


'Cnd  Civil  Polity,  ^^j 

mans;  if  not  that  fort  of  glory,  which  glares 
and  dazzles,  at  leaft  that,  which  makes  tranquil 
and  happy,  and  procures  a  felicity  far  more  agree- 
able than  all  the, pageantry  of  heroifm  and  world- 
ly fplendor. 

Ghriftians,  let  not  thefe  be  mere  fpeculations 
to  us.  Let  us  endeavor  to  reduce  them  to  prac- 
tice. Never  let  us  fuffer  our  political  principles 
to  clafh  with  the  principles  of  our  religion.  Far 
from  us,  and  far  from  us  for  ever,  be  the  abomin- 
able maxims  of  that  pernicious  Florentine,*  who 
gave  ftatefmen  fuch  fatal  Icffons  as  thefe  :  A 
prince,  who  would  maintain  his  dignity,  ought  to 
learn  not  to  be  virtuous,  when  affairs  offtate  re- 
quire him  to  praiStife  vice;  he  ought  to  be  frugal 
with  his  own  private  fortune,  and  liberal  with 
public  money  ;  he  ought  never  to  keep  his  word 
to  his  own  difadvantage  ;  tie  ought  not  fo  much 
to  afpire  at  virtue  as  at  the  femblance  of  it  ;  he 
ought  to  be  apparently  merciful,  faithful,  fincerc 
and  religious,  but  really  the  direû  oppolite  ;  that 
he  cannot  polEbly  praftife  what  are  accounted 
■virtues  in  other  men,  becaufe  necelHty  of  ftate 
will  often  oblige  him  to  a<Sl  contrary  to  charity, 
humanity  and  religion.;  he  ought  to  yield,  to  the 
various  changes  of  fortune,  to  do  right  as  often 
as  he  can,  but  not  to  fcraple  doing  wrong  when 
need  requires.— I  fay  again,  far  from  us  be  thefe 
abominable  maxims!  Let  us  obey  the  precepts 
of  Jefus  Ghrift,  and  by  fo  doing  let  us  draw  down 
blcflings  on  this  nation  more  pure  and  pcrfe€l 
than  thofe  which  we  now  enjoy. 

The  blefiings  we  now  enjoy,  and  which  provi- 
dence beftowéd  on  us  Co  abundantly  a  few  d?\^s 
ago,t  (hould  infpirc  us  with  lafting  gratitude; 
however,  ray  brethren-,  they  are  not,  they  ought 
not  to  be,  the  full  accomplilhment  of  our  wiflies« 
W  Such 

•  Machiavel.  Prînc.  xv.  xvi.  xvii. 
\  At  tbe  battle  of  Ramilles,  M*y  23,  1705. 


5250       The  Harmony  of  Religion 

Such  laurels  as  we  afpire  at,  are  not  gathered  in 
fields  of  battle.  The  path  to  that  eminence,  to 
vhich  we  travel,  vs  not  covered  with  human  gore. 
1'he  acclamations  we  love,  are  not  excited  by 
■«vars,  and  rumors  of  wars,  the  clangor  of  arms, 
and  the  fhoatings  of  armed  me«i. 

Were  our  pleafure,  though  not  of  the  pureft 
fort,  perfect  in  its  own  kind,  we  ihould  experience 
a  rife  in  happinefs  Î  But  can  we  enjoy  our  victo- 
ries, without  mourning  for  the  miferies  which 
procured  them  I  Our  triumphs  indeed  abafe  and 
confound  our  enemies,  and  make  them  lick  the 
duft;  yet  thefe  very  triumphs  prefent  one  dai|c 
iide  to  us.  Witnefs  the  many  wounds,  which  I 
ihould  make  a  point  o«f  not  opening,  wei'v;  it  not 
a  relief  to  mourners  to  hear  of  their  fufferings  ; 
were  it  not  equitable  to  declare  to  thofe,  whofc 
iorrows  have  procured  our  joy,  that  we  remem- 
ber them,  that  we  are  concerned  for  them,  that 
•we  fympathize  with  them,  that  we  are  not  fo  tak- 
en up  with  public  -joy  as  to  forget  private  woe. 
Witnefs,  I  fay,  fo  many  dcfolate  houfes  among 
us.  Witnefs  this  mourning  in  which  fo  many  of 
us  appear  to-day.  Witnefs  thefe  affeftionate  Jo- 
iephs,  who  lament  the  death  of  their  parents. 
Witnefs  thefe  Marys  and  Marthas,  weeping  at 
the  tomb  of  X.azarus.  Witnefs  thefe  diftrefled 
Davids,  who  weep  as  they  go,  and  exclaim,  O 
Absalom^  my  son  !  my  son  Absalom  !  would  God 
I  had  died  for  ibee  !  0  Absalom,  my  son^  my 
son  '  2  Sam.  xviii.  33.  Witnefs  thefe  Rachels, 
who  make  Rama  echo  with  their  cries,  refusing 
to  be  comforted^  because  their  children  are  not^ 
Jer.  ocxxi.   15. 

My  dear  bretliren,  on  whom  the  hand  of  God 
is  heavy,  ye  forrowful  Naomis,  ye'  melancholy 
Maras^  toith  whom  the  Almighty  bath  dealt  very 
bitterly^  Ruth  i.  20.  we  (hare  your  griefs,  we 
»ix  our  tears  with  yours,  we  feel  all  the  Jblows 

~  that 


and  Civil  Polity,  2^ 

that  ftrlke  you.     O  fatal  vi£lory  I    O  bloody  glo- 
ry I  you  are  not  fruits  of  righteousness, 

ChriOians,  if  our  joy  be  mixed,  it  is  becaufe 
our  righteousness  is  mixed.  Let  us  not  learch' 
for  our  misfortunes  in  any  other  caufe.  Let  us 
do,  when  any  thing  is  wanting  to  complete  our 
joy,  what  the  ancient  people  of  God  did,  when- 
ever they  were  conquered.  The  congregailon 
was  affembled,  the  ephod  was  put  on,  the  oracle 
was  confulted,  inquifition"  was  made  from  tribe 
to  tribe,  from  family  to  family,  from  houfe  to 
Koufe,  from  perfon  to  perfon,  who  it  was,  whole 
fin  had  caufed  the  lofs  of  the  vi(5lory,  or  the  lofs 
of  a  regiment,  and  when  he  was  difcovered  he: 
"was  put  to  death.  JoOiua,  after  he  had  met  witîi 
^  repulfe  before  Ai,  and  had  loft  thirty-lix  raen^ 
rent  his  garments,  and  Jay  on  his  faCe  upon  the 
earth  before  the  àrk  of  the  Lord.  In  like  man- 
ner, let  us,  my  brethren,  at  the  remembrance  of 
ihfedled.  countries,  fields  of  battle  covered  with 
ifarcafes,  rivers  of  blood  dying  the  foil,  confufed. 
heaps  of  dead  and  dying  fellow-creatures,  new 
globes  of  fire 'flying  in  the  air,  let  iis  examine 
ourfelves.  Happy,  if,  as  in  the  cafe  juft  now 
mentioned,  only  one'  criminar  could  be  found 
among  many  thoufands  of  innocent  perfons  Î 
A'.as  1  we  are  obliged,  on  the  contrary,  to  lament, 
that  there  is  hardly  one  innocent  among  thou- 
fands of  the  guilty. 

Where  is  the  Achan,  who  imbitters  the  glorr- 
cos  and  immortal  vidtories,  which  God  grants  to 
Ifrael?  What  tribe,  what  family,  what  houfe, 
(hall'be  taken?  Is  it  the  magiftrat^  ?  Is  it  the 
people?  Is  it  the  paftor  ?  Is  it  the  flock  ?  Is 
It  the  merchant  ?  Is  it  the  Toldier  ?  Ah  1  my 
brethren  !  do  you  not  hear  the  oracle  of  the  Lord 
anfwering  from  the  terrible  tribunal  cre6led  in 
your  own  confciences  ?  It  is  the  magiftrate  ;  it 
ÎS  the  people  ;  it  is  the  paftor  ;  it  is  the  flock  ;  it 
is  the  merchant  j  it  is  the  foldieri 

It 


2(j2         The  Harmony  of  RcUgkn 

It  is  that  magistrate^  who,  being  required  to 
have  alway<5  before  his  eyes  that  God,  by  wbotn 
kings  reign,  and  that  throwe,  before  which  the 
greateft  monarchs  of  the  world  muft  be  judged,  is 
dazzled  with  his  own  grandeur,  governed  by  x 
worldly  policy,  and  hath  more  at  heart  to  enforce 
the  obfervation  of  his  own  capricious  orders, than 
thofe  rules  of  eternal  reditude,  which  fecure  the 
hïeiy  and  happinefs  of  a  nation. 

It  is  that  people^  who,  inflead  of  confiderin^ 
the  felicity  of  that  nation  whose  God  is  the  Lord, 
are  attempting  to  be  happy  independently  of  God  ; 
choofmg  rather  to  facrificc  to  blind  chance,  than 
to  him  who  is  the  happy  God^  and  who  alone  dif- 
pcnfes  profperous  and  advcrfc  circumftances. 

It  is  that  minister^  who,  ipftead  of  confining^ 
bis  attention  to  the  difcharg^e  of  all  the  duties  of 
his  office,  performs  only  fuch  parts  as  acquire  him 
a  popular  reputation,  negledting  private  duties, 
fuch  as  friendly  and  afFediionate  remonflrances, 
paternal  advice,  private  charities,  fccret  vifits, 
which  characterize  the  true- minifters  of  the  gof- 
pel. 

It  is  that  congregation  y  which,  inftead  of  re- 
garding the  word  dilpenfed  by  us  as  the  word  of 
God,  licentioufiy  turns  all  public  miniftrations 
into  ridicule,  and  under  pretence  of  ingenuity  and 
tVerdom  of  thought,  encourages  infidelity  and  ir- 
réligion ;  or,  at  beft,  imagines  that  religion  con- 
ftrts  more  in  hearing  and  knowing  than  in  practice 
and  obedience. 

It  is  that  soldier,  who,  though  he  is  always 
at  war  with  death,  marching  through  fire  and 
flames,  hearing  nothing  but  the  found  of  warlike 
inftruments  crying  to  him  wiih  a  loud  and  dread, 
ful  voice,  remembsr^  you  must  die  !  yec  frames 
a  morality  of  his  own,  and  imagines,  that  his 
profeflion,  fo  proper  in  itfelf  to  incline  him  to 
obey  the  maxims  of  the  gofpel,  ferves  to  free  hitn 
itom  all  obligation  to  obedience* 

Ah  Î 


and  Civil  Polity.  253: 

Ah  !  this  it  is,  which  obfcures  our  brighteft 
triumphs  ;  this  ftains  our  laurels  with  blood  ; ,  this 
excites  lamentations,  and  mixes  them  with  our 
fongs  of  praife.  Let  us  fcatter  thefe  dark  clouds. 
Let  us  purify,  o»r  righteoufnefs  in  order  to  purifj^ 
our  happinefs»  Let  religion  be  the  bridle,  <he 
rule,  the  foul  of  all  our  councils  ;  and  fo  may  it 
procure  us  unalterable  peace,  and  unmixed  pleaC- 
ure  I  or  rather,  as  there  is  no  fuch  plea  Cure  on 
earth,  as  imperfection  is  a  charafter  elTential  to 
human  affairs,  let  us  elevate  our  hearts  and  minds 
to  nobler  obje£ls,  let  us  figh  after  happier  periods^ 
and  let  each  of  us  feek  true  glory  in  the  enjoyi- 
mcnt  of  God.  God  grant  us  this  grace  I  To 
kim  be  honor  and  glory  for  ever,  Amen. 


W  2  SERMOH. 


SERMON    X. 

CHRISTIAN    HEROISM. 

Proverbs  xvi,  52.  . 

He  that  ruteth  bis  spirit,  is  better  than  he  that 
taketb  a  city, 

Vr  ERE  we  to  judge  of  tbefc  words  by  the 
firft  iropreflions  they  make  on  the  mind,  we  (hould 
place  them  among  fuch  hyperbolical  propofuion» 
as  imagination  forms  to  color  and  exceed  truth. 
The  mind  on  fome  occafions  is  fo  ftruck  as  to 
magnify  the  objed  in  contemplation.  The  more 
fufceptible  people  are  of  lively  imprcflions,  the 
more  fubjeft  they  are  to  declamation  and  hyper- 
bole. We  find  thefe  maxims  fometimes  neceffary 
in  explaining  the  facrcd  authors.  Were  we  to  ad- 
here icrupuloufly  to  their  words,  we  fliould  often 
miftake  their  meaning,  and  extend  their  thoughts 
beyond  due  bounds.  The  people  of  the  caft  feU 
dom  exprefs  themftlves  with  precifion.  A  cloud 
intercepting  a  few  rays  of  light  is  the  sun  dark* 
ened  :  A  meteor  in  the  air  is  the  poivers  of  the 
heavens  shaken  :  Jonah  in  the  belly  of  the  fifti  is 
a  man  down  at  the  bottom  of  the  mountains  : 
Thunder  is  the  voice  of  Jehovab,  ponverful  and 
full  of  majesty^  dividing  flames  of  fre^  breaking 
cedars  of  Lebanon,  making  Syrians  skip^  and 
stripping  forests  bare  :  A  fwarm  of  infedls  is  a 
nation  set  in  battle  array,  marching  every  one  on 
bis  nvays,  not  breaking  their  ranks,  besieging  a 
city,  having  the  teetb  of  a  lion,  and  the  check 
teeth  of  a  great  lion,  Joel  i.  6.  and  ii.  7,  9. 

If  we  be  ever  authorized  to  folve  a  difficult 
text,  by  examining  the  licenfe  of  hyperbolical 
Hyle  :  if  ever  it  be  necelTary  to  reduce  hyperbole 
to  precifioP)  is  it  not  fo  now   in  explaining  the 

tcx; 


Christian  Heroism.  255 

text  before  us  ?  He  that  ruleth  his  spirity  is 
better  than  he  that  taketb  a  city.  What  ji  ftnefs 
can  there  be  in  comparing  a  man,  who  by  reflec- 
tion correds  his  paflions,  with  an  hero,  who,  in 
virtue  of  concerted  plans,  great  fatigues,  fpending 
days  and  nights  on  horfeback,  furmounting  diffi- 
culties, enduring  heats  and  colds,  braving  a  va- 
riety of  dangers,  at  laft  arrives,  by  marching 
through  a  ftiower  of  (hot  darkening  the  air,  to  cot 
through  a  fquadron,  to  fcale  a  wall,  and  to  hoift 
his  flag  in  a  conquered  city  ? 

But  however  juft  this  commentary  may  appear^ 
you  will  make  do  ufe  of  it  here,  unlefs  you  place 
chriftianit;  in  the  exercife  of  cafy  virtues,  and 
after  the  example  of  moft  men,  accommodate  r«« 
ligion  to  your  paffions  inftead  of  reforming  your 
^ffions  by  religion.  Endeavor  to  form  princi- 
ples, refift  falhion  and  cuftom,  eradicate  prejudice^ 
undertake  the  conqueft  of  yourfelf,  carry  6re  and 
fword  into  the  moft  fenfible  part  of  your  foul, 
enter  the  lifts  with  your  darling  fin,  mortify  your 
members  vfbiçb  are  upon  earthy  rife  above  flefh 
and  blood,  nature,  and  felf  love,  and,  to  fay  all 
in  one  word,  endeavor  to  rule  .your  spirit  ;  and 
you  will  find,  that  Solomon  hath  rigoroufly  ob- 
ferved  the  laws  of  prccifion,  that  be  hath  fpokea 
the  language  of  logic  and  not  of  oratory,  and 
that  there  is  not  a  ftiadow  of  hyperbole  or  exag- 
geration in  this  propofition,  He  that  ruletb  his 
spirity  is  better  than  be  tbat  taketh  a  city. 

But  to  what  period  fliall  we  refer  the  explici- 
tion  of  the  text  ?  We  will  make  meditatioa 
fupply  the  place  of  experience,  and  we  will  eftab- 
liih  a  truth,  which  the  greateft  part  of  you  have 
not  experienced,  and  which  perhaps  you  never 
will  experience.  This  is  the  defign  of  this  diC» 
courfe.  Our  fubjeA  is  true  heroifm,  the  real 
hero. 

I  enter  into  the  matter.  The  word  beroism  ifi 
tiorrowed  of  the  heathens.    They  called  thofc 

tnea 


25^ 


Christian  Heroism. 


men  heroes,  whom  a  remainder  of  modefly  and 
religion  prevented  their  putting  into  the  number 
of  their  gods,  but  who  for  the  glory  of  their  ex- 
ploits were  too  great  to  be  enrolled  among  mere 
men.  Let  us  purify  this  idea.  The  man,  of 
whom  Solomon  fpeaks,  be  i&ho  ruleth  bis  spirity 
ought  not  to  be  confounded  vvith  the  refl:  o£ 
mankind  ;  be  is  a  man  transformed  by  grace^ 
one,  who,  toufe  the  language  of  fcripture,  is  a 
partaker  of  tbe  divine  îiature.  We  are  going 
to  fpeak  of  this  man,  and  we  will  firft  dcfcribc 
him,  and  next  fet  forth  his  magnanimity,  or,  to 
keep  to  the  text,  we  will  firft  explain  what  it  is 
to  rule  tbe  spirit f  and,  fecondly,  we  will  prove, 
that  bey  that  ruletb  bis  spirit,  is  better  iban  be^ 
■that  taketb  a  c,itj.  If  we  proceed  further,  it  will 
.only  be  to  add  a  few  refledlions  tending  to  coa- 
^vince  you,  that  you  are  all  called  to  heroifm  ; 
rtbat  there  is  no  middle  way  in  religion  ;  that 
you  muft  of^neceiTity,  either  bear  the  fhame  and 
infamy  of  being  mean  and  daflardly  fouls,  or  be 
crowned  with  the  glory  of  heroes. 

.1-  Let  us  firft.  explain  the  words  of  the  text, 
JO  rule  tàe  spirit»  Few  words  arc  more  equivo- 
.cal  in  the  facrsd  language  than  this  which  our 
finterpreters  have  rendered  spirit.  It  is  put  i«n 
•different  places  for  the  thoughts  of  the  j«/W, 
.the  pafiions  of  the  heart,  the  emotions  of  sense, 
•phantoms  of  imagination,  and  illufions  of  concu- 
piscence. We  will  not  trouble  you  with  gram* 
.inàtical  differtations.  In  our  idiom,  to  rule  the 
spirit,  (and  this  is  precifely  the  idea  of  Solo- 
.mon)  to  rule  tbe  spirit  is  never  to  fuft*er  ones- 
ièlf  to  be  prejudiced  by  falfe  ideas,  always  to  fee 
things  in  their  true  point  of  view,  to  régulât» 
.our  hatred  and  our  love,  our  defires  and  our  inac- 
tivity, exad\ly  according  to  the  knowledge  we 
have  obtained  after  mature  deliberation,  that  ob- 
jects are^  worthy  of  our  efteem,  or  deferve  our 
averfion,  that  they  are  worth  obtaining,  or  prop- 
er to  be  negleded.  But, 


Christian  Heroism,  ^57- 

But,  as  this  manner  of  fpeaking,  to  rule  the 
*/>/>/(,  fuppofes  exercife,  pains,  labors,  and  refin- 
ance, we  ought  not  to  confine  ourfelves  to  the 
general  idea  which  we  have  given.  We  confider 
man  in  three  points  of  light  ;  in  i^egard  to  his 
natural  difpofitions  ;  in  regard  to  the  objeds 
that  furround  him  ;  and  in  regard  to  the  habits 
which  he  hath  contrad^ed. 

!•  Confider  the  natural  dispositions  of  man* 
Man,  as  foon  as  he  is  in  the  world,  finds  him* 
fclf  the  flave  of  his  heart,  inflead  of  being  maf« 
ter  of  it.  I  mean,  that  inftead  of  a  natural  facil- 
ity to  admit  only  what  is  true,  and  to  love  onljr 
ithat  is  amiable,  he  feels,  I  know  not  what,  in- 
terior power,  which  difpofes  him  to  truth  and 
Tirtoe,  and  conciliates  him  to  vice  and  falCc*- 
ilood. 

I  am  not  going  to  agitate  the  famous  qtieftion 
of  freewill,  nor  to  enter  the  lifts  with  thofe^ 
who  are  noted  in  the  church  for  the  herefy  of 
denying  the  doctrine  of  human  depravity  ;  nor 
will  I  repeat  all  the  arguments,  good  and  bad^ 
Hhich  are  alledged  againft  it.  If  there  be  a  fub» 
jeA,  in  which  we  ought  to  have  no  implicit  faith,, 
either  in  thofe  who  deny,  or  in  thofe  who  affirm  ;; 
if  there  be  a  fubjed,  in  the  diAcuâlon  of  which^ 
they  who  embrace  the  fide  of  error  advance 
truth,  and  they  who  embrace  the  fide  of  truth  ad* 
vance  falfehoods,  this  is  certainly  the  fubje^.^ 
But  we  will  not  litigate  this  doctrine.  We  will 
alledge  here  only  one  prcof  of  our  natural  de* 
pravity,  that  (hall  be  taken  from  experience, 
and,  for  evidence  of  this  fatal  truth,.,  we  refer 
each  ofyottto  his  own  feelings» 

Is  virtue  to  be  praûifcd  ?  Who  does  not  feci; 
as  foon  as  he  is  capable  of  obfërving,  an  inward 
power  of  refiftance  ?  By  virtue,  here  I  under- 
ftand  an  untverfal  difpofition  of  an  intelligent 
foul  to  devote  itfelf  to  order,  and  to  regulate  its 
Condudl  as  ordei  requires.     Order  demands,  that, 

whea 


^^ 


Christian,  Heroism, 


when  I  fuiFer,  I  (hould  fubmit  tnyfelf  to  the 
nighty  hand  of  God,  which  affii^ls  me.,^  When 
I-  am  in  profperity,  order  re(}uires  me  to  acknowl- 
edge the  bounty  of  my  benefacbor.  If  I  pofTefs 
talents  fuperior  to  thofe  of  my  neighbor,  order 
requires  me  to  ufe  them  for  the  glory  of  him, 
from  whom  I  received  them.  If  I  am  obliged 
to  acknowledge,  that  my  neighbor  hath  a  richer 
endowment  than  I,  order  requires  me  to  acquiefce 
with  fubmifTion,  and  to  acknowledge  with  hu- 
mility this  difference  of  endowment  :  Iho^uld  1% 
revolt  with  infolence,  or  difpute  through  jealoufy 
or  felf-Ioye,  I  (hould  aifldiforderly. 
.  What  I  afiirm  of  virtue,  that  it  is  a  general 
difpofition,  that  I  affirm  alfo  in  regard  to^n  in-, 
difpofition  to  fin.;  To  avoid  vice  is  to  oefifl:^ 
alike  from  every  thing  contrary  to  order,  '  fropy 
flanderand  anger,  from  indolence  .^nd.,v.ol,uptu-' 
Qufnefs,  and  fo  on«  .      ^    -.^ 

'.  He,  who  forms  fuch  ideas  of  the  obligations, 
of  raep,  will  have  too  .many  reafpns  to  acknowU, 
e^ge',  by  his  own  inward  feelings  and  experience,, 
tiiat-we  bring  into  the  world  with  us  propenfities 
l^oftile  and  fatal  to  fuch  obligatipns.  Some  of- 
thefeare  in  the  body  ;  others  in  the  mind.  ," 

,  Some  are  in  the  body.  Who  |&  there,  that 
finds  in  his  fenfes,  that  fupplcnefs  and  readinefs. 
of  compliance  with  a  volition,  which  is  itfelf  di-, 
reded  by  la-ws  of  order  ?  Who  does  not  feel 
bis  conflitution  rebel  againft  virtue  ?  I  am  not 
fpeaking  now  of  fuch  men  as  brutally  give  them* 
felves  up  to  their  fenfes,  who  confult  no  other 
laws  than  the  revolutions  of  their  own  minds^ 
and  who,  having  abandoned  for  many  years  ,the 
government  of  their  fouls  to  the  humors  .of  their 
bodies,  have  loft  all  dominion  over  their  fenfes», 
I  fpeak  of  fuch  as  have  the  moft  fincere  defire  to 
hear  and  obey  the  laws  of  order.  How  ofte^ 
4oe3  a  tender  and  charitable  foul  find  in  a  bfidy,^ 
Cub  je  it  to  violence    and   anger,  obftacles  aga'inft 

■  the 


Christian  Heroism.  2^ 

'the  exercife  of  its  charity  and  tendernefs  ?  How 
ofien  does  a  foul,  penetrated  with  refpeû  for  the 
-laws  of  purity,  find  in  a  body,  rebellious  againft 
^his  virtue,  terrible  obftades,  to  which  it  is  in  a 
'manner  conftrained  to  yield? 

Diforder  is  not  only  in  'the  body  ;  the  soul  is 
in  the  fame  condition.  Gonfult  yourfelves  in 
regard  to  fuch  virtues,  and  vices  as  are,  fo  to 
fpeak,  altogether  fpiritual,  and  have  no  relation, 
or  a  very  diftant  one,  to  matter,  and  you  will 
find  you  brought  into  the  world  an  indifpoiition 
to  fome  of  thefe.  virtues,  and  an  inclination  to  the 
oppofite  vicest  For  example,  avarice  is  one  of 
•thefe  fpiritual  vic^s,  having  oniy  a  very  diftant 
r  relation  to  matter.  1  do  not  mean,  that  avarice 
does  not  incline  us  toward  fenfible  objeds,  I  on- 
ly fay,  that  it  is  paiïion  lefs  feated  in  the  materi- 
al than  in  the  fpiritual  part  of  man  ;  it  rifes 
rather  out  of  retiedions  of  the  mind  than  out  of 
motions  of  the  body.  Yet  how  many  people  are 
born  fordid  ;  people  always  inclined  to  amafs 
money,  and  to  whom  the  bare  thought  of  giv- 
ing, or  parting  with  any  thing,  gives  pain  ;  peo- 
ple who  prove,  by  the  very  manner  in  which  they 
exercife  the  laws  of  generofity,  that  they  are 
naturally  inclined  to  violate  them  ;  people  who 
never  give  except  by  conftraint,  who  tear  away, 
as  it  were,  what  they  beftow  on  the  neceflities 
of  the  poor  ;  and  who  never  cut  off  thofe  dear 
parts  of  themfelyes  without  taking  the  mofl  af- 
'fei^ionate  leave  of  them  ?  Envy  and  jealoufy 
are  difpolitions  of  the  kind,  which  we  call  fpirit- 
ual. They  have  their  feat  in  the  foul.  There 
are  many  perfons,  who  acknowledge  the  injuftice 
and  bafcnefs  of  thefe  vices,  and  who  hate  them, 
and  who  neverthclefs  are  not  fufiicient  mafters 
of  themfelves  to  prevent  the  dominion  of  them, 
at  leaft  to  prevent  a  repetition  of  them,  and  not 
to  find  fometimes  their  own  mifery  ia  the  prof- 
:çerity  of  other  perfons. 

As 


.^,6o  .Christian  Heroism* 

As  we  feel  in  our  conftitution  obftacles  to  vir- 
tue, and  propenfities  to  vice,  fo  we  perceive  alfo 
^inclinations  to  error,  and  obftacles  to  truth. 
Thefe  things  are  clofely  conneded  ;  for  if  we 
find  within  us  natural  obftacles  to  virtye,  we  find, 
for  that  very  reafon,  natural  obftacles  to  truth  ; 
and  if  wc  be  born  with  propenfities  to  vice,  «ec 
are  born  on  that  very  account  prone  to  error. 
Striûly  fpeaking,  all  ideas  of  vice  may  be  refer- 
red to  one,  that  is  to  error.  Every  vice,  every 
irregulaf  paflion  openly  or  tacitly  implies  a  falfc- 
hood.  Every  vice,  every  irregular  paflion  in- 
•  cludcs  this  error,  that  a  man,  who  gratifies  his 
paflion,. is  happier  than  he,  who  reftrains  and 
moderates  it.  Now,  every  man  judging  in  this 
manner,  whether  he  do  fo  openly  or  covertly, 
takes  the  iide  of  error.  If  we  be  then  naturally 
inclined  to  forae  vices,  we  are  naturally  inclined 
to  ifome  errors,  1  mean,  to  admit  that  falfe  prin- 
*ciple,  on  ^hich  the  irregular  palîion  eftabliiheth 
the  vice  it  would  commit,  the  dcfire  of  gratifica- 
tion. An  impalTionate  man  is  not  free  to  dif. 
-cern  truth  from  falfehood,  at  leaft,  he  cannot 
-v^ithout  extreme  conftraint  difcern  the  one  from 
the  other.  He  is  inclined  to  Ex  his  mind  on 
•whatever  favors  his  paflion,  changes  its  naturcy 
and  difguifcs  vice  in  the  habit  <rf  virtue  ;  and, 
to  fay  all  in  one  word,  l>e  is  impelled  to  fix  his 
mind  on  whatever  makes  troth  appear  falfe,  and 
falfehood  true. 

I  conclude,  the  difpoiition  of  mind,  of  which 
Solomon  fpeakss,  and  which  he  defcribes  by  rui* 
ing  the  spirit^  fuppofes  labor,  conftraint,  and  ex. 
crcife.  A  man,  who  would  acquire  this  noble 
difpofition  of  mind,  a  man,  who  would  rule  bis 
spirit^  muft,  in  fome  fort,  re-create  himfelf  ;  he 
finds  himfelf  at  once,  if  I  may  be  allowed  to  fay 
fo,  at  war  with  nature  ;  his  body  muft  be  form- 
cd  anew  ;  his  humors  and  his  fpirits  muft  be 
turned  into  another  channel  ;  violence  rauft  be 
done  to  all  the  powers  of  his  foul.  2." 


Christian   Heroism:  26j.^ 

2-  Having,  confiderecl    m^n  in    regard  to    his 
natural  difpoluions,  ohferve  him,  iecoiidly,  in  re-.^ 
gàrd  to  surrounding  ohjt^cts.      Here  yon  will  obr-* 
tain  a  fécond  expoiition  of  Solomon's  words,    He^^ 
that  ruletb    bis  spirit  ;  you    vtfill  have    a  feco.iid'' 
clafs  of  evidences   of  liiat   exercife,    labor,  and" 
conftr'aint,  which  true  heroifm  fuppofes.      Society 
is    compofed  of  many   enemies,    who  fee  m  to  be 
taking  pains   to  increafe    thofe  difficulties,  which 
oiir  natural  difpofition's  oppofe  agalnft  truth   and' 
•virtue'. 

'  Ekamîne  thé  niembers  of  this    fociety  among, 
■whom  -we    are   appointed    to    live,   confult    their 
ideas,    hear    their   converfâtibn,  \véigh  their  reà-' 
fonings,  and  you    will  find    ajmofl    every  where,' 
falfe  judgments,  error?,  miflalces,  and  prejudices  ; 
prejudices  of  birth,  taken  from    our  parents,  thîî' 
uu'rfes'who  fuckk'd  us, 'ih'è  people  who    nVade"the* 
habits,  in  which  vve  were  wrapped  in  our  cradles  V' 
-préjudices  of  education,  taken  from,  the  mailers',' 
to  whom  the  care  of  our  earliefl  days   was   cocfi- ' 
mîttéd,    from    fortîc  falfe    ideas,  which    they  had 
imbibed  in  their  youth,  and   from    other  iilufions^ 
"which  they  h?.d   create'd*  ttîém'felvès  t  '  p'refudices'' 
of  country,,  taken    froin  'the'kénius  of  the  peopfe'^ 
among  whom    we  have   liv'e^,    artdj  fo    to  fpeakj 
from  the  vqry  air  we    have  breathed'  :   prejudices  " 
of  religion,  taken  from    our    catechifts,  from    thc^ 
divines  we    have  confûUed,  from  the    paftors    by' 
whom  we  have  been   dintdtid,   from    thefeft  we' 
have  embraced,  :    pi'éjudices  of  •friendfliip,    taken^ 
from  the  çonrte^dllbn's  we  have  had,  and  thé  cdin-' 
pany'  we  have  kept  :  prejud'ices  of  trade  and  pro-' 
feffian,  taken  from    ttie    mechanical  arts  we  haie' 
followed,  or  the  abRraifil  fcienCes  we    have    ftiidi-'^ 
ed  :   prejudices  of' fortune,  takeii    from    the  Goti-' 
dition  of  life  in  whi^h  we  have  been,  eitheriamoiig'^* 
the    noble  or    the    poor^'   Th»<9'i^' only    aim  a}!'" 
part  of  t1ie',caoSis,  by  which  error  is   x:onvéyed  to.' 
us.*    WBar  efforts  muft  aiiïàn ifiake,  what  pains' 
X  raufl 


S.62  Christian  Heroism, 

tnuft  he  take  with  himfelf,  to  preserve  himfelf 
from  contagion,  to  hold  his  foul  perpetually  in 
equilibrium,  to  keep  all  the  gat-es  of  error  fliut, 
and  inceffantly  to  njaintaiij,  amidfl  fo  many 
prejudices,  that  freedom  of  judgment,  which 
-weighs  argument  againft  objeélion,  objeélion 
againrt  argument,  which  deliberately  examines 
all  that  can  be  advanced  in  favor  of  a  propofi- 
tioa,  and  ail  that  can  be  faid  again^ft  it,  which 
confiders  an  object- in  every  point  of  vi<w,  and 
■which  makes  uc  .xietermine  only  as  we  are  con- 
ilrained  by  the  firrefiftible  authority,  and  by  the 
foft  violence  of  truth,  dcmonftration,  and  evi- 
dence ? 

As  the  men,  who  furround  us,  fafcinate.us  hy 
their  errors,  fo  they  decoy  us  into -vice  hy  their 
example.  In  all  places,  and  in  all  ages,  virtue 
.had  fewer  partlzans  than  vice  :  in  all  ages  and 
jn  all  places,  the  friends  of  virtue  were  fo  few  in 
ccmparifon  of  the  partlzans  of  vice,  that  the 
faints  complained,  that  the  earth  was  not  inhab- 
ited by  men  of  the  firft  kind,  and  that  the  whole 
world  was  occupied  by  the  latter,  "  the  godly 
roan  ceafeth  ;  the  farthful  fail  from  among  the 
children  of  men.  The  iLord  looked  down  from 
heaven  upon  the  children  of  men  ;  to  fee  if  there 
were  any  that  did  underfland,  and  feek  God. 
They  are  all  gone  afide,  they  are  altogether  be- 
come  filthy  :  there  is  none  that  doeth  good,  no 
not  one,"  Pfal.  xii.  1.  and  xiv.  2,  3.  An  exag- 
geration of  the  prophet,  1  grant,  but  an  exag- 
geration for  which  the  univerfality  of  human 
depravity  hath  given  too  much  occafion.  Caft 
your  eyes  attentively  on  fociety,  you  will  be,  as 
our  prophet  w?is,  aftonilhed  at  the  great  number 
cf  the  partlzans  of  vice  ;  you  will  be  troubled, 
as  he  was,  to  diftin^uifh  in  the  crowd  any  friends 
of  virtue  ;  and  you  will  find  yourfelf  inclined  to 
fay,  as  he  faid,  there  is  none  that  dçetb^ood,  no^ 
not  one. 

But 


Christian  Hermm»  2&3 

But  how  difTicult  is  it  to  rcGft  example,  and 
to  rule  tbè  spirit  among  fuch  a  number  of  ty- 
rants, who  aim  only  to  enHave  it  I  In  order  to 
Fcfift  example,  we  miift  inceffantly  oppofe  thole 
natural  inclinations,  which  urge  us  to  imitation. 
To  re fi ft  example,  we  muft  not  fufTer  ourfelves 
'to  be  dafczled  either  with  the  number,  or  the 
fplendor  offuch  as  have  placed  vice  on  a  throne. 
To  refi ft  example,  we  muft  brave  perlecution,  and 
all  the  inconveniences,  to  which  worldly  people 
never  fail  to  expofe  them,  who  refufe  to  follow 
them  down  the  precipice.  To  refifl  example,  we 
muft  love  virtue  for  virtue's  fake.  To  refifl:  eX' 
ample,  we  niuft  tranfport  ourfelves  into  another 
■world, -imagine  ourfelveâ  among  thofc  holy  focie- 
ties,  who  furround  the  throne  of  a  holy  God, 
"Who  make  his  excellencies  the  continual  matter 
of  their  adoration  and  homage,  and  who  tiy  at 
the  firft  Cgnal  of  his  hand,  the  firft  breath  of  \>H 
mouth.  What  a  work,  what  a  difficult  work  for 
you,  poor  mortal,  whoife  eyes  are  always  turned 
toward  the  earth,  and  whom  your  owi  involtinta* 
ry  and  infurmountable  weight  iacefTantly  carries 
downward  ! 

3.  Finally,  we  mufl  acknowledg*  what  labor^ 
pains  and  refinance,  the  difpofition,  of  which  Sol- 
omon fpeaks,  requires,  if  we  confider  man  in  re- 
gard to  the  habits  which  he  hath  contrafted.  As 
foon  as  we  enter  into  the  world,  we  find  ourfelves 
impelled  by  our  natural  propenfities,  ftunned  with 
the  din  of  our  paflions,  and,  as  I  juft  now  faid, 
reduced  by  the  errors,  and  carried  away  by  the 
examples,  of  our  companions.  Seldom  in  the  Crîl 
years  of  life,  do  we  furmount  that  natural  bias, 
and  that  power  of  example,  which  impel  us  to 
falfe  hood  and  fin.  Moft  men  have  done  more 
jhfts'of  vice  than  of  virtue,  eonfequently,  in  the 
courfe  of  a  certain  number  of  years,  we  contrib- 
ute by  our  way  of  living  to  join  to  the  depravity 
of  nature  that  which  comes  from  exercife  and  ha- 
bit.    ■ 


264  Christian  Heroism. 

bit.  A  man,  who  w'oujdi^  rw/^  kis  spirit^  is  thefi 
required  to  cradicite  tbç.  habits  which  have  taken 
pofTefîîon  of  hirn.     What  a  taflc  i 

What  ^t'oil:,  when  we  endeavor  to  prevent  the 
ire.turn  of  ideas,  ,n-h'ch  for  njàny  years  our  minds 
have  revolved  !  What  ^  talk,  to  defend  one'5 
ftlf  from  a  pafiion  which  knows  all  the  avenues 
of  the  mind,  and  how  to  facilitate  accefs  by  means 
of  the  body  I  What  a  tafk,  to  turn  away  irom 
the  Mattering  images,  and  feducing  felicitations 
of  concupifcence  long  accuftOH-ied  to  gratifica- 
tion !  What  a  tafl:,  when  we  are  obligpci  ^0 
xnake  the  greatçft  efforts  in  tlje  weaktA.  prt  of 
life,  and  to  fubdae  an  enem)-,  whom  we  hayé 
been  always  ufed  to  ronfider  as  oncot^querable, 
pnd  whom  we  never' durft  attack^  v/htn  he  had  no 
other  arms  than  what  we  chofe  to  give  Him,  and 
enjoyed  no  other  advantages  than  fuch  as  we 
thought  proper  to  allow  1  -Such  labor,  fuch  pains 
and  conflraint,  muR  he  experience,  who  acquires 
the  art  of  ruling  his  spirit  /  Now  then,  as  we 
have  explained  this  difpofition  of  mind,  let  us  af- 
fign  the" place  which  is  due  to  him  who  hath  it> 
Having  given -an  i^ea-pf  real  heroifm,  we  muft 
clij'play  the  grandeur  of  it,  and  prove  the  propo^ 
fuion  in  my  text,  He  t^hat  riihth  his,  ^pirtt^  is 
better  than  be  that  taketh  a  citj^. 

II.  I^'or  this  pnrpofe,  it'  is  nov  necefTary  to 
obferve,.  that,  by  him  that  tqhth  acity^  Solomon 
iioes  not  mean  a  man,  who  from  principles  of  vir- 
tue, to  defend  his  country  and  religion,  hizards 
his  life  and  liberty  in  a  juil.war:  in  this  view, 
}ie  that  i.aketb  a  city^  and  be  iJial  ru'eth  bis  spirit^ 
«3  one  and  the  fame  man.  Solomon  intends  con- 
querors, who  live,  if  I  may  exprefs  myfelf  fo, 
upon  vi£\Qries  and  cnrquefts  ;  he  infends  herotSj 
fuch  as  the  world  confiders  them. 

Neither  is  it  necéflary  precifely  to  fix  t^e  b,oi»i)d,$ 
of  t[iis  greneral  expreffion.  is  better.  He  tba^ 
rziîeth  his  spirit^  is  better  tban  be  that  taketh  a 

city. 


Christian  Heroism*  265 

city.  The  fenfe  is  eafily  underftood  :  in  general-, 
it  fignifies,  that  he  that  ruleth  bis  spirit^  difcov- 
ers  more  fortitude,  more  magnanimity,  and  n>cre 
courage,  that  he  hath  more  juft  ideas  of  glory, 
and  is  more  worthy  of  cfteem  and  praife,  thaft  they 
who  are  called  in  the  world  conquerors  and  lie- 
roes. 

We  will  prove  this  propofuion  by  comparing 
the  hero  of  the  world  with  the  chriftian  hero,  and 
we  will  confine  the  comparifon  to  four  articles  ; 
Firft,  the  motives  which  animate  them  :  iecond- 
ly,  the  exploits  they  perform  :  .  thirdly,  the  ene- 
mies they  attack  :  and  laftly,  the  rewards  they 
obtain.  He  that  taketh  a  cityy  is  animated  with 
motives  mean  and  worldly,  which  degrade  an  in- 
telligent foul,  even  while  they  feem  to  elevate  it 
to  a  pinnacle  of  grandeur  and  glory  :  but  he  that 
ruleth  his  spirit^  is  animated  by  motives  grand, 
noble  and  fublime,  every  way  fuited  to  the  excel- 
lence of  our  nature.  .  He  that  ruleth  his  spirit^ 
is  capable  of  all  the  exploits  of  him  that  taketb  a 
city  :  but  he  that  taketh  a  city^  is  not  capable  ot" 
tlte  exploits  of  him  that  ruletb  his  spirip.  He 
that  taketb  a  city^  attacks,  an  exterior  enemy,  to 
whom  he  bath  no  attachment  :  but  he  that  ruletb 
his  spirit^  attacks  an  encn^ry  who  is  dear  to  hhn, 
and  hath  the  greatnefs  of  foul  to  turn  bis  arms 
againR.  himfelf.  In  fine^  i>ff  that  taketb  a  citjy 
is  crowned  only  by  idiots,  who  have  no  juti  no- 
iVons  of  grandeur  and  heroifm  :  but  he  that  ruleth 
bis  spirit^  will -be  crowned  with  ttie  hands  of  tfee 
only  jull  appraifer,  .and  diipenfer  of  glory.  Thcfe 
are  four  titles  of  fuperiority,  which  the  chriflun 
hero  hath  over  4he  falfe  hero  :  four  foiirces  of 
proofs  to  eRabliflv  the  propofition  in  our  text,  He 
that  ruletb  his  spirit ,  is  better  than  he  that,  tak- 
eth a  city* 

1.  Let  us  confider  the  motive  s  .^\ih\ch  animate  a 
conqueror  that  taketh  a  city^  and  the  motives 
which  animate  a  man  that  obtains  rule  over  his 
X  2  spirit  : 


fi66 


Christian  Heroism, 


spirit  :  the  motives  of  the  true  hero,  with  the 
fi'.OtivcK  of  the  faife  hero.  What  are  the  motives 
of  a  falie  hero  ?  What  fpirit  animates  hini,  when 
iie  undertakes  to  conquer  a  cit.y  ?  This  is  oPfC  of 
the  queftions  ^^hich  finful  pafiions  have  mofl  ob- 
fcured.  Truth  is  difguifed  in  epifties  dedic.atpry, 
and  in  profane  eulogiums,  yea  fometimes  in  relig- 
ious difcourfes.  The  majefty  of  a  viélorions 
genera],  the  glory  of  a  conqueror,  the  pompous 
titi-es  of  viClor,  arbiter  of  pe^çe,  arbiter  of.  war, 
have  To  dazzled  us,  and  in  fiptçç  fort  fo  perverted 
the  powers  of  our  fouiv  that  .w«  cannot  form  juft 
notions  of  this  fubjeil.  Hear  pure  nature,  for- 
merly fpeaking  by  the  mouth  of  a  nation,  who 
■were  the  more  wife  for  not  being  civilized  by  the 
injuftice  of  our  laws  and  cuftoms.  I  fpeak  of  ihe 
ancient  Scy.n  ians.  The  moft  famouS;  i;aker  of  ci- 
ties came  to  their  cabins,  and.  caverns.  He  J^.sd 
already  fubdned  his  fellow  cltize.n,s  and  neigh- 
bors. Already  Thebes  and.  Athens,  Thrace  and 
ThciTaly,  had  fubmitted  to  bis  arms.  Already, 
Greece  being:  too  fmall  a  fpbere  of  action  for  him, 
he  had  penetrated  even  into  PetTia,  pn fifed  the 
famous  Phrygian  river,  where  he  flew,  lix  hun- 
dred thoufand  men,  reduced  Caria  and  Judeo, 
made  war  with  Darius  and  conqgered  him,  per- 
formed exploit?  m-ore  than  h.uman,  and  in  fphe 
of  nature,  befiegcd  and  took  7"yre,  the  moft 
famous  fiege  recorded  in  ancient  hiftory,  fubju- 
gated  the  Mardi  ard  Baclrian?,  att?iined  the 
mountains  Gaucafus  and  Oxus,  and,,  in  a  word, 
conquered  more  countries,  and  enilaved  more 
people,  than  we  can  defcribe,  or  even  mention 
within  the  limits  allotted  to  this  ç^erçife.  Thi^ 
man  arrives  \n  Scythia.  The  Scythians  feet 
deputies  to  him,  who  th«s  addreffed  bim.  "  Had 
the  gods  given  you  a  body  proportioned  to  yo,ur 
ambition,  the  whole  univer.fe.  would  have  been 
too  little  for  you  :  witji  one  hand  you  will 
have    touched   the   call.,   and  ^ith  the  other  the 

weft, 


Christian  Tîeroisih.  267 

> 

wei\,  aD(?,  not  coritent  with  this,  you  would  have 
followed  the  fun,  and  hv»ve  feen  where  he  hides 
bin  ft  if.  Whatever  you  are,  you  are  afpiring  at 
vhat  you  can  never  obtain.  From  Europe  you 
run  into  Aiia  :  and  from  Afia  back  you  run 
sgàin  into  Europe,  and  having-  enflaved  all  man- 
kind, you  attack  rivers,  and  forefls,  and  wild 
beads.  What  have  you  to  do  with  us.  ?  We 
have  never  fet  foot  in  your  country.  May  not 
a  people,  living  in  a  delVrr,  be  allowed  to  be  ig- 
norant of  who  you  are,  and  whence  you  come? 
You  boaft  of  having  exterminated  robbers,  and 
you  yourfclf  are  the  greateft  robber  in  the  world. 
You  have  pillaged  and  plundered  all  nations,  and 
now  you  come  to  rob  us  of  our  cattle.  It  is  in 
vain  to  fill  your  hands,  for  you  are  always  in 
feaich  of  frefii  prey.  Of  what  ufe  are  your 
boundlefs riches,  except  to  irritate  your  eternal 
thirfl  ?  You  are  the  fiffl  man,  who  ever  experi- 
enced fuch  extreme  want  in  the  midft  of  fnch 
abundance.  All  you  have,  ferves  only  to  make 
you  defire  with  niore  fury  what  you  have  not. 
If  you  be  a  God,  do  good  to  mankind  :  but  if 
you  be  only  aii  infignificant  mortal,  think  of 
what  you  are,  and  remember,  that  it  is  a  great 
foll^  to  occupy  things,  which  make  us  forget 
ourfelves."*  Thefe  are  the  motives,  which  ani- 
iTiate  the  heroes  of  the  world  ;  thefe  are  the  fen- 
timents,  which  are  difguifed  under  the  fine  names 
of  glory,  valor,  greatnefs  of  foul,  heroifm.  An 
infatiable  avidity  of  ricnes,  an  invincible  pride, 
a  boundlcfs  ambition,  a  t^tal  forgetfulnefs  of 
what  is,  what  ought  to  be,  and  what  muft  be 
hereafter. 

The  motives  of  him,  who  endeavors  to  rendi?» 
himfelf  mader  of  his  own  heart,  are  love  of  or- 
der, defire  of  freedom  from  the  flavery  of  the 
paflions,  a  noble  firmnefs  of   foul,  which  admits 

oniy 

*  Quintus  Curtius,  lib.  vii.  chap.  8. 


fi68  Christian  Heroism, 

only  what  appears  true,  and  loves  only  whst  ap. 
pears  lovely,  after  fober  and  ierious  dlfcuflion. 
In  this  firft  view,  then,  the  advantage  is  wholly 
in  favor  of  htm,  that  rultth  his  spirit^  I's  better 
than  bcf  that  taketb  a  city. 

2.  Compare,  in  the  fécond  place,  the  exploits 
of  him  that  rulelh  his  spirit,  with  the  exploits 
eihim,  that  taketh  a  city.  He,  who  is  capable 
OÏ ruling  his  spirit,  is  capable  of  all  that  is  great 
and  noble  in  him,  that  takt:th  a  city  :  but  he, 
that  taketb  a  city,  is  not  capable  of  all  t."  t  is 
great  and  magnanimous  in  him^  that  ruletb  his 
spirit»     I  will  explain  myftlf. 

What  is  there  great  and  mognanimous  in  a. 
hero  that  takeih  a  city  ?  Patience  to  endure 
fatigue,  to  furmount  difficulties,  to  fuffer  contra- 
diclion  :  intrepidity  in  the  mo{\  frightful  dan- 
gers :  prefence  of  mind  in  the  moft  violent  and 
painful  exerciCes  :  unfliaken  firmnefs  in  fight 
©f  a  near  and  terrible  difPolution.  Thefc  are  dif- 
pofitions  of  mind,  1  grant,  which  feem  to  elevate 
roan  above  humanity  :  but  a  chr'iftian  hero  is 
capable  of  all  this,  Ifpeakfinc^rely,  and  without 
a  figure.  A  man,  who  hath  obtaii>ed  a  religious 
freedom  of  mind,  who  always  pteferves  this 
liberty,  who  always  weighs  good  and  evi!,  who 
believes.only  what  is  true,  and  does  only,  what  is 
right  ;.  who  hath  always  his  eye  upon  his  duty, 
or,  as  the  pfalmift  exprefTeth  it,  who  sets  the 
Lord  always  before  him,  fuch  a  man  is  capable, 
literally  capable,  of  all  you  admire  in  a  worldly 
hero.  No  difRculty  difcourages  him,  no  contra- 
diélion  difconcerts  him,  no  fatigue  (lops  him,  no 
dangers  afTright  him,  no  pain  but  he  can  bejir,  no 
appearance  of  death  fhocks  him  into  palenefs, 
and  fear,  and  flight.  Our  women  and  children, 
our  confeffors  and  martyrs,  have  literally  per- 
formed greater  exploits  of  fortitude,  patience, 
courage,  and  conftan'cy,  in  convents,  prifons,  and 
diuigeons,  at  flakes,  and  on  fcaffolds,  than  Alex- 
anders 


Christian  Heroism.  2^> 

andiers  and  C«fars  in  all  their  lives.  And  where 
is  the'hero  of  this  world,  who  bath  performed  Co 
many  adtions  of  courage  and  magnanimity  in 
ficges  and  battles,  as  our  confeffors  have  for  thir- 
ty '  years  o«n  board  the  gallies  ?  The  former 
-were  fuppprted  by  the  prefence  of  thoufands  of 
witneffcs  :  thé  latter  had  no  fpe^ators  but  God, 
and  their  own  confciences.  The  chriRian  hero 
is  capable  then  of  all  that  fs  great  in  the  hero  of 
the  world.  But  the  worldly  hero  is  incapable  of 
performing  fuch  exploits  as  the  chriflian  hero 
peVforms  ;  and  he  knows  perfeûly,  that  his  hero- 
ifra  doth  not    condufl  him  fo  far    in  the  gath  of 

f'lory.  Try  theftrength  of  a  worldly  hero.  Set 
im  to  contend  with  a  pafllon.  You  will  foon 
End  this  roan,  invincible  before,  fubdued  into 
flavery  and  {hame.  He,  who  was  firm  and  fear- 
lefs  in  fight  of  fire  and  flame,  at  the  found  of 
warlike  inftruments,  becomes  feeble,  mean,  and 
enervated,  by  a  feducing  and  enchanting  obje£t»- 
Sampfon  defeats  the  Philiftines  :  but  Dalilah  fûb- 
dues  Sampfon.  Sampfon  carries  away  the  gates 
eif  Gaza  :  hut  Sampfon  finks  under  the  weight 
of  hi?  own  fcnfuality.  Hercules  feek^  highwajr 
robbers  to  combat,  and.roonflers  to  fqbdue  :  but 
he  cannot  rcfi(\  impurity.  We  find  him  on  mon- 
uments of  antiquity  carrying  an  infant  on  his 
fhoulders,  an  emblem  of  roluptuoufnefs,  (looping^ 
under  that  unworthy  burden,  and  letting  his  club 
fall  from  his  hand.  There  is,  therefore,  no  dec- 
lamation, no  hyperbole  in  our  propofition  :  the 
chriftian  hero  is  capable  of  performing  all  the 
great  a£lions  performed  by  the  hero  of  the  world  : 
but  the  hero  of  the  world  is  incapable  of  per- 
forming fuch  noble  allions  as  the  chrifiian  hero 
performs;  and  in  this  lefpe^VjZ'e,  that  ruletb  bis 
spirit^  is  bttter  than  Z?f,  thaf  tahetb  a  city, 

3.  Compare  /i/m,  that,  taketb  a  city^  ivitb 
him  that  ruletb  his  spirit^  in  regard  to  iht  ene- 
mieSf  whom  they  attack,  and  you  will  find  in  thé 

latter 


iî70'  Christian'  Heroiwik 

latter  a  third  title  of  fupenority:>  over  the  former» 
//f,  that  takelh  a  city^  attack's  ah  exterior  trne- 
iny,  who  is  a  Oranger,  and' often  odious  to  him. 
The  ambition,  that  fills'  his  foul,  leaves  no  roorh 
for  compafiion  and  pity  ;  and,  provided  he  can 
but  obtain  his  end,-  no  matter  to  hint  though 
the  way.  be  flre-vved  vt'\i\\  the  dying  and  the  dead^ 
to  obtai'O  that;  he  travels  over  mountains  of 
heads,  and  arms,  and  carcafes.  The  tumultu- 
ous p.iffions,  which  tyrannize  over  him,  flifte  the 
voice  of  nature,  and  deafen  him  to  the  cries  of 
a  thoufand  miferable.  wretches  facrificed  to  i»is 
fame. 

The  enemy,  whom  the  rhriftian  combats,- .is- 
his  own  heart:  for  he  is  required  to  turn  his- 
arms  againfl  himfelf.  He  mult  fufpend  aJUfehti- 
ments  of  felf-love  ;  he  mufl  become  his  own  e»- 
ccutioner,  and,  to  ufe  the  ideas  and  expreflions  of- 
Jcfus  Chrilt,  he  mult  adlually  deny  hîinself, 

Jefus  Ghrift  well  knew  mank.indi.  He  did  not 
preach  like  fome  preaching,  novices,  who,  in  or* 
der  to  incline  their  hearers  to  fubdue  their  paf- 
fions,  propofe  the  work  to  them  as  free  from  dif>^ 
ficulty.  Jefus  Chrift  dj(j  not  difguife  the  difEcuI- 
ties,  which  the  man  mufl. Undergo,  who  puts  on ^ 
the  fpirit  of  chriftiapity  :  and  I  do  not  know 
"whether  we  meet  with  any  expréfliori  in  tfie 
"writings  of  pagan  poets  or  philofophers,  more 
natural,  and  at  the  fame  time  more  emphatical- 
than  this  :  If  any  maniuill  come  after  me, let 
bim  denj himself  Matt.  xvi.   24. 

Not  that  this  is  Istérally  pra6licablé,  not  that 
tnaiTcan  put  off  himfelf,  not  that  religion  re- 
quires us  to  facrifice  to  it  what  makes  the  ef- 
fence  and  happincfs  of  our  nature  :  on  the  con- 
trary, flriclly  fpeakitig,  it  is  fin,  which  makes  us 
put  off  or  deny  what  is  great  and  noble  in  ouf 
effence  ;  it  is  fin,  which  requires  us  to  facrifice 
our  true  happinefs  to  it.  If  Jefus  Chrift  ex- 
prcffcs  himfcif  in  this  manner,  it  is  bccaufc,  when 

man 


christian  Heroism.  27-1 

man  îs  poTTeffed  with  a  paffion,'h  is  incorporated, 
as  it  were,  witli  liin^lclt"  ;.it  feems  to  him  effcn- 
tial  to  his  felicity  ;  every  thing  troubles,  and 
every  thing  puts  him  on  the  rack,  when  he  can- 
not gratify  it,;  without  gratifying  his  paffion, 
his  food  hath  no;ta(ie,  flowers  no  fmell,  pleafuies 
no  pomt,  the  funis  dark,  fociety  difagreeabie, 
life  itfelf  hath  no  charms.  To  attack  a  reign- 
ing pafiion  is  to  deny  self  ;  ^.nà  here  is  the  pa-- 
tie  nee  of  the  saints  ;  this  is  the  enemy,  whom 
the  chrjflian  attacks  ;  this  Is  the  war,  which  he 
wageth.  How  tremulous  and  weak  is  the  hand, 
when  it  toucheth  a  fwcrd  to  be  plunged  into 
one's  own  bofom  !  Love  of  order,  truth,  and 
virtue,  fupport  a  .cbriflian  hero  in  this  almoft 
deQperate.  undertaking. 

4.  In  fine,  compare  i»/??:,  that  ruletb  bis  spir^ 
it,  with  him  that  taketh  a  citjy  in  regard. to  the 
acclamations  with  which  they  are  acG;C'rapanied, 
.and  the  crowns  prepared  for  them.  Who  are  the 
authors  of  thofe  acclamations,  vwith  which  the 
air  refounds  the  praife  of  worUjy  heroes  ?  They 
are  courtiers,  poets,  panegyrifiao  But  what  I  are 
people  of  this  order  the  . only  perfons,  who  enter- 
tain juîl  notions  of  glory  ;  and,  if  they  be,  are 
they  generous  enongh  to  fpeak  out  ?  How  can 
a  foul  wholly  iievoted  to  the  will  and  caprice  of 
a  conqueror  ;  how  can  a  venal  creature,  who 
makes  a  market  of  eulogiums  and  praifes,  which 
he  fells  tx>  the  higheft  bidder;  how  can  a  brutal 
foldiery  determine  what  is  worthy  of  praifé  or 
blame  ?  Js  it  for  fuch, people  todiftribute  prizes 
of  glory,  and  to  affign  heroes  their  rank  ?  To  be 
exalted  by  people  of  this  fort  is  a  fhamc  ;  to  be 
crowned  by  their  hands  an  infamy. 

ïllevate,  elevate  thy  meditation,  chriftian    foul, 
rife   into    the  Majefty  of    the   Great    Supreme, 
Think  of  that  fublime  Intelligence,  who    unités 
in  his    elTence    every   thing  noble    and  fublime. . 
Contemplate  God,    furrounded  with   angels  and 

archangels, 


«7^-  Christian  Heroism* 

archangels,  cberubims  and  feraphims.  Hear  the 
concerts,  which  happy  fpirits  perform  to  his  glo- 
ry. Hear  them  pei.Vuated,  ravifiied,  charmed 
with  the  divine  beauties,  crying  night  and  day, 
*♦  Holy,  holy,  holy,  is  the  Lord  of  Hofts,  the 
"whole  earth  is  full  of  his  giory,  Blefling  and 
glory,  vvifdom,  and  thankfgiving,  honor  and  pow- 
er and  might  be  unto  our  God  for  ^ver  and  ever. 
Great  and.  marvellous  are  thy  works,  Lord  God 
Almighty  ;  juft  and  true  are  thy  ways,,  thou 
îÇlng  of  faints.  Who  fhall  not  fear  thet,  O 
Lord,  and  glorify  thy  name  ?"  This  being,  fo 
perfcd,  this  bein^,  fo  worthily  praifed,  this  being, 
'lb  worthy  of  everlafting  praifc,  this  ir  he,  who 
will  pi-.onounce  upon  true  glory;  this  is  he,  who 
•will  compofe  the  eulogîum  of  all  who  afpire  at 
it  ;  this  is  be,  -who  will  one  day  praife  in  the 
face  of  heaven  and  earth,  all  thofe,  who  fiiall 
have  made 'the  noble  con^uefis,  wliich  we  have 
been  defcribing^ 

Imagination  fjriks  «nder-  the"  •wie'î^ïiX  of  thls^ 
fiibjeâ;  and  this  object  is  joo  bright  for  cye&' 
•like  otjrs  :  but  the  nature  of  things  doth  not 
<lepend  on  our  faculty  of  feeing  them.  As  God 
Ccilîs  U3  to'coinbats  more  than  human,  fo  he  fees 
lit  to  fupport  us  by  3  profpect  of  more  than  hu- 
man  rewards.  Yes,  it  is  the  Supreme  Being,  it 
is  he,  who  will  one  day  diftribute  the  praifes, 
"which  are  due  to  fuch  as  have  triumphed  over 
themfelves.  What  a  fpeûàcle  I  what  a  prof- 
pe6l  1  Yes,  chriftiah  champion,  af:er  thou  haJl 
refilled  flefli"  and  blood,  after  thou  haft  been  treat- 
ed as  a  fool  by  mankind,  after  thou  hafl  run  t>ie 
race  of  tribulation,  after  thou,  haft  made  thy  life 
one  perpetual  maityrdom,  thou  (halt  be  called 
forth,  in  the  prefence  of  men  and  angels,  thé 
mafter  of  the  world  fliall  feparate  thee  from  the 
crowd  ;  there  he  will  addrefs  to  thee  this  lan- 
guage, iVeU  done ^  good  and  faithful  servant  i 
tHerç  lie  !wiU  ,^çcornpU(h  tb?  promifei  .wlilcfi  he  ; 

this"  ■■ 


Christian-  Heroism»  273 

this  day  makes  to  all  who  fight,  under  his  ftand» 
ard»  be  that  cvercometb  shall  sit  doiun  in  my 
throiie.  Ah  Î  glory  of  worldly  heroes  ;  profane 
encomiums  ;  faftidious  infcripuons  ;  proud  tro- 
phies; brilliant  but  corruptible  diadems;  what 
are  you  in  comparifon  with  the  acclamations 
which  await  the  chrillian  hero,  and  the  crowns 
vhich  God,  the  rewarder,  prepares  for  him. 

And  you,  mean  and  timid  fouls,  who  perhaps 
admire  thefe  triumphs,  but  who  have  not  the  am- 
bition to  ftrive  to  obtain  them  ;  you  foft  and  in- 
dolent fpirits,  who,  without  reluûance,  give  up 
all  pretcnfions  to  the  immortal  crown,  whicli 
God  prepares  for  heroifir,  provided  he  require  no 
account  of  your  indolence  and  efîeminacy,  and 
fuffer  you,  like  brute  beaRs,  to  follow  the  firft 
inllincis  of  your  nature  ;  undeceive  yourfelves. 
1  faid  at  the  beginning-,  you  are  all  called  to 
heroifra  ;  there  is  no  midway  in  religion  ;  you 
mu(t  be  covered  v.'ith  fliaroe  aud  infamy  along 
with  the  bafe  and  timid,  ivc  crowned  wl»h  glory 
in  company  with  heroes.  I'he  duty  of  an  in- 
telligent foul  is  to  adhere  to  truth,  and  to  fol- 
low virtue  ;  we  bring  into  the  world  with  us  ob- 
ft.acles  to  both;  our  duty  is  to  furmount  them  ; 
without  this  we  betray  our  trufl:  ;  we  do  not  an- 
swer the  end  of  our  creation  ;  we  are  guilty,  and 
we  lîiall  be  puniflied  for  not  endeavoring  to  ob- 
tain the  great  end  for  which  we  are  created. 

Let  this  be  the  great  principle  of  our  divinity 
and  morality.  Let  us  invariably  retain  it.  Let 
us  not  lofe  ourfelves  in  diicuirions!  and  rcfearches 
into  the  origin  of  evil,  and  into  the  permilîijn  cf 
the  e^itrance  of  iin  into  the  world.  Let  us  not 
bury  ourfelves  alive  in  f[:iecuIation3  and  laby- 
rinths ;  let  us  not  plupge  into  abyfTes,  from 
which  no  pains  can  difcng.^ge  us.  Let  us  fear  an 
ocean  full  of  rocks,  and  let  an  idea  of  the  fiiip- 
wrecks,  which  fo  many  rafli  people  have  made, 
flop  us  on  the  fhorc.  Let.  us  confider  thefe  quef- 
Y  tiuns 


rs^74  Christian  Heroism. 

tions  lefs  with  a  view  to  difcover  the  perfe<!!\ions 
of  the  Creator  in  the  thick  daiknefs,  under 
"which  he  hath  thought  proper  to  conceal  them, 
than  in  that  of  learning  the  obligations  of  a 
creature.  I  do  not  mean  to  decry  thofe  great 
geniufes»  who  have  treated  of  this  profound  fub- 
jeâ:.  Their  works  do  honor  to  the  human 
wind.  They  are  eternal  monuments  to  the  glory 
of  a  reafon,  which  knows  how  to  colle<St  its 
force,  and  to  fix  itlclf  on  a  fingle  objed  ;  but,  it 
is  always  certain,  that  wc  cannot  arrive  at  clear 
truth  on  this  fubjcfCl,  except  by  means  of  thou- 
sands of  diftindtioas  and  abftractions,  which  mod 
of  us  cannot  make.  This  fubjedl  is  To  delicate 
and  refined,  that  moft  eyes  are  incapable  of  fee- 
ing it,  and  it  is  placed  on  an  eminence  fo  ftelep 
and  inacceflible,  that  few  geniufes  can  attain  it. 

Let  us  religiouily  abide  by  our  principle. 
The  duty  of  an  intelligent  foul  is  to  .adhere  to 
truth,  and  to  praftife  virtue  :  We  are  born  with 
a  difinclination  to  both.  Our  duty  is  to  get  rid 
of  this,  and  without  doing  To  we  negledl  the  ob- 
ligation of  an  intelligent  foul,  we  do  not  anfwer 
the  end,  for  which  we  were  intended,  we  are 
guilty,  and  we  flîall  be  punilhed  for  not  having 
^nfwéred  the  end  of  our  creation. 

Let  us  confider  ourfelves  as  foldiers  placed 
round  a  befieged  city,  and  having  fuch  or  fuch  an 
enemy  to  fight,  fuch  or  fuch  a  pofi:  to  force. 
You,  you  are  naturally  fubjed  to  violence  and 
anger.  It  is  fad  to  find  iii  one's  own  conftitu- 
tion  an  oppofition  to  virtues  fo  lovely  as  thofe  of 
fubmiffion,  charity,  fweetnefs,  and  patience. 
Groan  unëer  this  evil:  but  do  not  defpair  ;  when 
you  are  judged,  lefs  attention  will  be  paid  to 
your  natural  indifpofition  to  thefe  virtues  than  to 
the  efforts,  which  you  made  to  get  rid  of  it.  To 
this  point  direct  all  your  attention,  and  your 
flrength,  and  all  your  courage.  Say  to  youifelf, 
this    is    the  pod,  which    my  general   intends  I 

(hould 


Christian  Heroism.  2f^ 

iftoiild  force  ;  this  is  the  enemy  I  am  to  fight 
■with.  And  be  you  fully  convinced,  that  one  of 
the  principal  views,  which  God  haih  in  preferv- 
ing  your  life,  is,  that  you  fhould  re.  vier  yourfelf 
mafler  of  this  paiTion^  You,  you  are  naturally 
difpofed  to  be  proud.  The  moment  you  leave 
your  mind  to  its  natural  bias,  it  turns  to  fuch 
objecSls  as  feem  the  moO  fit  to  give  you  high 
ideas  of  yourfelf,  to  your  penetration,  your  mem- 
ory, your  imagination,  and  ev^n  to  exterior  ad- 
vantages, which  vanity  generally  ^incorporatess 
Avith  the  perfon  who  enjoys  them.  It  is  melan- 
choly to  find  within  yourfelf  any  feeds  of  an  in- 
clination, whicii  fo  ill  agree  with  creatures  vile 
and  miferable  as  men.  Lament  this  misfortunes 
but  do  not  defpair  ;  to  this  fide  turn  all  your 
attention  and  all  your  ccurage  and  ftrength. 
Say  to  yourfelf,  this  is  the  poft,  which  my  general 
"Would  have  me  force  ;  this  is  the  enemy,  whom 
he  hath  appointed  me  to  oppofe.  And  be  fully 
convinced,  that  one  of  the  principal  views  of 
God^  in  continuing  you  in  this  world,  is,,  that 
you  may  redft  this  pafïion,  and  mal^x  yourfelf 
matter  of  it. 

Let  us,  all  togv^tber,  my  brethren,  endeavor  to 
rule  our  own  fpirits.  Let  us  not  be  difmayed  at 
the  greatnefs  of  the  work,  becaufe  greater  is  he 
that  is  in  us,  than  be  that  is  in  the  laorid» 
Grace  comes  to  the  aid  of  nature.  Prayer  ac- 
quires ftrength  by  exercife.  The  paflions,  after 
having  been  tyrants,  become  flaves  in  their  turn. 
The  danger  and  pain  of  battle  vanilli,  when  the 
eye  gets  fight  of  conquefl.  How  inconceivably- 
beautiful  is  victory  then  !  God  grant  we  may 
obtain  it  I  To  him  be  honor  and  glory  for  ever. 
Amen. 


SERMOî^ 


o 


SERMON    XL 

GENERAL     MISTAKES, 

RoaiANS   xii.  2, 

Be  not  conformed  to  this  nvorîd. 


F  all  the  difcourfes  delivered  in  this  pul- 
pit, thofe,  which  deferve  the  greateft  deference, 
and  ufually  obtain  the  leaft,  are  fuch  as  treat  of 
general  miftakes.  What  fu-bje<5ls  require  greater 
Reference  ?  Our  defign  in  treating  of  them  is  to 
diiTipate  thofe  illufions,  with  which  the  whole 
world  is  familiar,  which  are  authorized  by  the 
multitude,  and  which,  like  epidemical  difeafes, 
infli£led  fometimes  by  providence  on  public 
bodies,  involve  the  ftaie,  the  church,  and  indi- 
viduals.  Yet,  are  any  difcourfes  lefs  refpeded 
than  fuch  as  thefe  ?  To  attack  general  miftakcs, 
is,  to  excite  the  difpleafure  of  all  who  favor 
them,  to  difguil  a  whole  auditory,  and  to  acquire 
the  mofl  odious  of  all  titles,  I  mean  that  of  pub- 
lic cenfor.  A  preacher  is  then  obliged  to  choofe, 
either  never  to  attack  fuch  miftakesas  the  multiw 
tude-think  fit  to  authorize',  or  to-rencunce  the 
advantages,  which  he  r>iay  promife  himfelf,  if  he 
adapt  his  fubjeds  to  the  tafle  of  his  auditor?, 
and  touch  their  diiorders  only  fo  far  as  to  accom- 
modate their  crimes  to  their  confciences. 

Let  us  not  hefitate  what  part  to  take.  St. 
Paul  determines  us  by  his  cxat-nplc.  I  am  going 
to-day,  in  imitation  of  this  apoftle,  to  guard  you 
againft  the  rocks,  where  the  many  are  fhipwrcck- 
cd.  He  exhort:3  us,  in  the  words  of  the  text,  not 
to  take  the  world  for  a  model  ;  the  worlds  that 
is,  the  crowd,  the  multitude,  fociety  at  large. 
But  what  fociety  hath  he  in  view  ?  Is  it  that 
of  ancient  Rome,  which  he  defcribes  as  extreme- 
ly 


General  Mistakes*  27^' 

II'  d'*pr?.ved  in  the  beginning  of  this  epiftle  ?  ' 
Djr-3  he  {a>  m  hiiig- of  our  world,  our  cities  and 
provinces  ?  We  are  going  to  exair.ine  this,  and 
Lferr  I  flu  11  be  able  to  prove  to  you,  th?.t  our 
nniltitude  is  a  dangerous  guide  to  ihew  us  the 
way  to  heaven  ;  and,  to  confine  ourfelves  to  a 
few  articles,  I  fliâU  prove  that  they  are  bad  guides 
to  diredt  us,  firfl,  in  regard  to  faith  ;  fecondly, 
in  regard  to  the  worfliip  which  God  requires  of 
us  ;  thirdly,  in  regard  to  morality  ;  and  laflly, 
in  regard  to  the  hour  of  death.  In  thefe  four 
views  I  fnall  enforce  the  words  of  my  text,  Be 
not  conformed  to  this  world.  This  is  the  whole 
plan  of  this  difcourfe. 

I.  The  multitude  is  a  bad  guide  to  dired  our 
faith.  We  will  not  introduce  here  the  famous 
controverfy  on  this  queiHon,  whether  a  great 
number  form  a  prefiimption  in  favor  of  any  re- 
ligion, or  whether  tiniverfality  be  a  certain  evi- 
dence of  the  nuechriQian  church  ?  How  often 
has  this  queftion  been  debated  and  determined  Î 
How  often  have  we  proved  againft  one  communi- 
ty, which  difplays  the  number  of  its  profefTors 
with  fo  much  parade^  that,  if  the  pretence  were 
well  founded,  it  would  operate  in  favor  of  pagan- 
ifm,  for  pagans  were  alv/ays  more  numerous  than 
chnftians  !  How  often  have  we  told  them,  that 
in  divers  periods  of  the  ancient  church,  idolatry 
and  idolaters  have  been  enthroned  in  both  the 
kingdoms  of  Judah  and  Ifrael  !  How  often  have 
we  alledged,  that  in  the  cime  of  Jefus  Chrift, 
the  church  w»3  defcribed  as  a  little  fock,  Luke 
xii.  32.  that  heathens  and  Jews  were  ail  in 
league  againft  chriftianity  at  firft,  and  that  the 
gofpel  had  only  a  fmall  number  of  difciples  ! 
How  often  have  we  retorted,  that  for  whole  cen- 
turies, there  was  no  trace,  no  (hadow,  of  the 
opinions  of  modern  Rome  !  But  we  will  not  ap- 
ply ourfelves  to  this  controverfy  to-day,  by  fix- 
iDgyour  attention  on  the  fophlfms  of  foreigners, 
Y  2  perhaps 


278 


General  Mistakes* 


perhaps  we  might  divert  your  eyes  frorh  your 
own  ;  by  fliewing  you  our  triur.iphs  over  the- 
vain  attacks  made  on  us  by  the  enemies  of  the 
reformation,  perhaps  we  might  ttirn  away  yCvr 
attention  from  other  more  dangerous  wound«y. 
which  the  reformed  themfelves  aim  at  the  heart 
of  religion.  When  I  fay  the  multitude  is  a  bsd 
guide  in  matters  of  faith,  I  me'in,  that  the  man- 
revj  in  which  m'oft  men  adhere  to  truth,  is  not  by 
principles,  which  ought  to  attach  them  to  it,  but 
by  a  fpirit  of  negligence  and  prejydice. 

Ic  is  no  fmall  work  to  examine  the  truth, 
when  we  arrive  at  an  age  capable  of  difcivâion. 
The  fundamental  points  of  religion,  1  grant,  lie 
in  the  fcriptures  clear  and  perfpicnoUs,  and  with- 
in the  comprehenfion  of  all  who  chufe  to  attend 
to  them  :  .  but  when  we  pafs  from  infaticy  to 
iBanhoody  an"d  arrive  at  an  iTge  in  whicii  realoti 
feems  mature,  we  find  ourfelves  covered  with  -i 
veil,  which  either  hides  oHjecls  frou>  us,  or  dif- 
figDres  them.  The-  public  difcourfes  we  have 
heard  in  favor  of  the  fed,  in  which  we  were 
educated,  the  inveterate  hatred  we  have  for  all 
others,  who  hold  principles  oppofite  to  ours,  the 
frightful  portraits  that  are  drawn  before  our 
eyes,  of  the  perils  we  muft  encounter,  if  we  de- 
part from  the  way  we  have  been  brought  up  in,. 
the  imprelfiîns  made  upon  us  by  the  examples 
and  decifions  of  our  parents^  ai.d  nraikr?,  and 
teachers,  the  bad  tade  of  thofe,  who  had  the  care 
of  our  education,  and  who  prevented  our  acquir- 
ing that  mofl  noble  cirpofition,  without  which  it 
is  impofîible  ever  to  be  a  true  philcfr-pher,  or  a 
real  chriftian,  I  mean,  that  of  fufpending  our 
judgment  on  fubjeéls  not  fufficientiy  proved  : 
Irom  all  this  arile  clouds,  that  render  the  truth 
jnacceiTible,  and  which  the  world  cannot  diflîpatc. 
We  do  not  fay,  that  natural  talents  or  fuperrat- 
ural  afiiflance  are  wanting  ;  we  are  fully  con- 
vinced that  God  will  never  give  op  to  final  error, 

any 


General  Mistakes,  ^f^ 

any  man  who  does  all  in  his  power  to  Mnderftand 
îhe  truth.  But  the  world  are  incapable  ot"  this 
woik.  Why  ?  Becaule  all  the  world,  except  a 
few,  hate  labor  and  meditation  in  regard  to  thé 
fubjecls,  which  rcfpe^  another  lite  :  btcaufe  all 
the  world  would  choofe  rather  to  attach  them- 
felves  to  what  regards  their  temporal  intereftj, 
than  to  the  great  intereft  of  eternal  bappinefs.  2 
becaufe  aH  the  world  like  better  to  fuppofe  the 
piinciplcs  imbibed  in  their  childhood  true,  than 
to  impofe  on  themfclves  the  tafk  of  weighing- 
them  anew  in  the  balance  of  a  found  and  fevere 
reafon  :  becaufe  all  the  world  have  an  invinci« 
bie  aveifion  to  fuppofe,  that  when  they  are  ar» 
rived  at  manhood,  they  have  alnioft  loft  theif 
time  in  fome  refpeds,  and  that  when  they  leave 
fchool  they  begin  to  be  capable  of  inftrudion. 

If  the  nature  of  the  thing  Ga4inot  convince 
you,  that  the  multitude  continue  through  negli» 
gence  in  the  profeflion  of  that  religion,  in  which 
they  were  born,  experience  may  here  fupply  the 
place  of  reafoning.  There  is  an  infinite  variety 
of  geniufes- among  mankind.  Propofe  to  an  afr. 
fcmbly  a  queftion,  that  no  fyClem  hath  yet  decid- 
ed, and  you  will  Snd,  as  it  is  ufually  faid.,  as  many 
opinion?  as  heads. 

It  is  certain,  if  mankind  were  attached  to  a 
religion  only  becaufe  they  had  ftodied  it,  we 
fhould  find  a  great  number  of  people  forfake  that, 
iri  which  they  had  been  brought  up,  for  it  is  im- 
poflibîe,  that  a  whole  fociety  fhould  unite  in  one 
point  of  error,  or  rather,  it  i*  clear  to  a  demon- 
ftration,  that  as  truth  hath  certain  charadters 
fuperior  to  falfehood,  the  teniples  of  idols  would 
be  inftantly  defertcd,  erroneous  feds  would  be 
foon  abandoned,  the  religion  of  Jefus  Chrift,  the 
only  one  worthy  of  beirvg  embraced,  the  only 
one  that  dclerves  difciples,  would  be  the  only 
one  embraced,  and  would  alone  be  received  by 
rII  fincere  difciples  of  truth» 

Do 


2^b  General  Mistakes. 

Do  not  think,  my  brethren,  tnat  this  icfleclion 
concprnir  g  that  fpirit  of  ne£r|igeiice,  whi'th  re- 
tains moft  mf  n  in  a  profelTion  of  their  owi>  re- 
ligion, regards  opI)'  fuch  communions  as  lay  down 
their  own  infallibility  for  a  fundamental  article 
of  faith,  and  which  prefcribe  ignorance  and  blind 
fubmiffion  as  a  firfl:  principle  to  their  partizans, 
for  it  is  but  too  eafy  to  prove,  that  the  fame  fpir- 
it of  negligence  reigns  in  ail  communities.. 
Hence  it  comes  to  pafs,  that  in  general  fo  few 
chriftians  can  render  a  reafon  for  their  faith. 
Hence  It  is  that  people  are  ufually  belter  furnifh- 
ed  with  argaiiients  to  oppofe  fuch  focieties  as  fur- 
round  them,  than  with  tbofe,  which  eftabliflî  the 
fundamental  truths  of  chriftianity.  jf  then  you 
follow  the  direction  of  the  multitude  in  the  ftudy. 
of  religion,  you  will  be  condudted  by  a  fpirit  of 
negligence,  prejudice  will  be  held  for  proof,  edu- 
cation for  argument,  and  the  decifions  of  your 
parents  and  teachers  for  infallible  oracles  of. 
truth. 

II.  The  multitude  is  a  bad  guide  in  regard  to 
that  worships  which  God  requireth  of  us,  ihey 
defile  it  with  a  fpirit  of  fuperftition.  Superfti« 
tion  is  a  difpofition  of  mind,  that  inclines  us  to 
regulate  all  parts  of  divine  woiTnip,  not  by  juft 
rotions  of  the  Supreme  Being,  nor  by  his  reia- 
tions  t  .  us,  nor  by  what  he  has  condefcended  to 
reveal,  but  by  our  own  fancies.  A  fuperftitious 
man  entertains  fantaflical  ideas  of  God,  and  ren- 
ders to  him  capricious  worfhip  ;  he  not  unfre- 
quently  takes  himfelf  for  a  model  of  God  ;  he 
thinks,  that  what  mofl  refembles  himfelf,  howev- 
er mean  and  contemptible,  approaches  nearcft  to 
perfeûion.  We  affirm,  this  difpofition  is  almoft 
univerfal. 

It  would  be  needlefs  to  prove  this  to  you,  my 
brethren,  in  regard  to  erroneous  communities. 
Were  fuperftition  baniflied  from  the  world,  we 
Ihould  not  fee  men,  who  are   made  in  the  image 

of 


General  Mistakes»  281 

of  God,  difgraee  their  nature  by  proftrating  them- 
felves  before  idols,  and  marmofets,  fo  as  to  render 
religious  honors  to  half  a  block  of  wood  or  (lone, 
the  other  half  of  which  they  apply  to  the  meaneft 
purpofes  :  we  fliould  not  fee  a  crowd  of  idola- 
ters performing  a  ceremonial,  in  which  convic- 
tion of  mind  hath  no  part,  and  which  is  all  ex- 
ternal and  material  :  we  fliould  not  fee  a  con- 
courfc  of  people  receiving  wiih  rcfpe£l,  as  the 
piecious  blood  of  the  Saviour  of  the  world,  a 
few  drops  of  putrified  water,  which  the  warmth 
of  the  fun  hath  produced  by  fermentation  in  the 
trunk  of  a  decayed  tree  :  we  Ihculd  not  fee  pil- 
grims in  proccffion  mangling  their  flefli  in  the 
ftreets,  dragging  along  heavy  loads,  howling  in 
the  highways,  and  taking  fuch  abfurd  praûices 
for  that  repentance,  which  breaks  the  heart,  and 
transforms  and  renews  the  life.  You  will  eafily 
grant  all  this,  for,  I  have  obferved,  it  is  often 
Jefs  difiBcult  to  infpire  you  with  horror  for  thefe 
praiSlices,  than  to  excite  compafSon  in  yau  for 
fuch  as  perform  thera. 

But  you  ought  to  be  informed,  that  there  are 
other  fuperftitions  lefs  grofs,  and  therefore  more 
dangerous.  Among  us  we  do  not  put  a  worfliip 
abfolutely  foreign  to  the  purpofe  in  the  place  of 
that,  which  God  bath  comrDanded  and  exemplift- 
ed  to  us  ;  but  we  make  an  eOimate  of  the  feveral 
parts  of  true  worfliip.  Thefe  eO-imates  are  regu- 
lated by  opinions  formed  through  prejudice  or 
pafllon.  What  beft  agrees  with  our  inclinations 
we  cnnP.der  as  the  effence  of  religion,  and  what 
would  thwart  and  condemn  them  we  think  cif- 
cumftantial. 

We  make  a  fcruple  of  not  attending  a  fermon, 
not  keeping  a  feflival,  not  receiving  the  Lord's 
fupper  ;  but  we  wake  none  of  neglecling  to  vifit 
a  prifoner,"to  comfort  the  Tick,  or  to  plead  for  th(i 
oppreffed.  We  obferve  a  flri^^  decency  in  our 
religious  affemblies,   while  our  miniftcrs    addrefs 

prayer 


itS^  General  Mistakes. 

prayer  to  God,  but  we  take  no  pains  to  accorTf-. 
pany  him  with  our  minds  and  hearts,  to  unite 
our  ejaculntions  with  his,  to  bcfiege  the  throne 
of  grace.  We  think  it  a  duty  to  join  our  voices 
•with  thofe  of  a  whole  congregation,  and  to  fill 
our  places  of  worlhip  with  the  praifes  of  our  Cre- 
ator ;  but  we  do  not  think  oui Telves  obliged  to 
underhand  the  fenfé  of  the  pfalm,  that  is  fung 
with  fo  much  fervor,  and,  in  the  language  of  an 
apoftle,  to  sing  with  understanding.,  1  Lor.  xiv, 
15.  We  lay  aijde  innocent  occupat'rons  the  day 
before  wc  receive  the  Lord's  fupper,  but  no  foon- 
er  do  w«  return  fi'om  that  ordinance,  than  w'C 
allow  the  mofl:  criminal  pleafures,  and  enter  up- 
on the  mofl  fcandalous  intrigues.  Who  make 
thefe  miftalces,  my  brethren  ?  Is  it  the  few  ? 
Be  7iot  conformed  to- this  worldy  in  regard  to  the 
•worlhip  that  God  requires  of  you  ;  the  multitude 
perform  it  in  a  fpirit  of  foperftition.- 

III.  Neither  arcthe  many  a  better  guide  \a 
regard  to  morality.  Here,  my  brethren,  we  are 
going  more  particularly  to  delcribe  that  clafs  of 
mankind,  among  whicli  we  live,  and  of  which  we 
ourfelves  are  a  part.  Indeed,  the  portraits  we 
are  going  to  draw  will  not  be  flattering  to  thenr, 
for  juftice  requires,  that  we  ihould  defcribe  men 
as  they  are,  notas  they  pretend  to  be.  In  order 
to  exaélnefs,  let  us  confider  them  feparately  and 
apart.  Firft,  in  regard  to  the  makers  who  gov- 
ern them.  Secondly,  in  regard  to  the  profef- 
lions,  which  they  exercife.  Thirdly,  in  regard 
to  fome  maxin)s  generally  received.  Fourthly, 
in  regard  to  the  fplendid  actions,  which  they 
celebrate.  And  lafUy,  in  regard  to  certain  dec>- 
five  occaiîons,  that  like  touchftones,  difcover  their 
principles  and  motives. 

].  Confider  mankind  in  regard  to  the  masters 
who  govern  them.  Here  I  congratulate  myft-lf 
on  the  happinefs  of  fpeaking  to  a  free  people, 
among  whom  it  is  not  reputed  a  crime    to  praife 

>Yhat 


General  'Mistakes,  2^83 

"^.hat  is  praife-worthy,  and  to  blame  what  de- 
serves blame,  and  where  we  may  freely  trace  the 
characters  of  foine  men,  of  whom  prudence  re- 
quires U3  not  to*'  fpeak  evil,  no  not  in  thought^ 
no  not  in  the  bed  chamber,  left  a  bird  of  the  air 
ftioiild  carry  the  vuice,  and  that  which  hath 
wings  fliould  tell  the  matter,"  Eccles.  x.  20. 
Is  it  in  the  palaces  of  the  great  that  humiluy 
reigns,  humility  which  fo  well  becomes  creatures, 
who,  though  crowned  and  enthroned,  are  yet  in- 
■  iirm,  criminal,  dying  creatures,  and  who,  in  a 
few  days,  will  become  food  for  worms,  yea,  per- 
haps viftims  in  the,  flames  of  hell  ?  Is  it  in  the 
palaces  of  the  great  that  uprightnefs,  good  faith, 
and  firtcerity  reign,  -yet  without  thefe  fociety  is 
nothing  but  a  banditti,  treaties  are  only  fnares, 
and  laws  cobwebs,  which,  to  ufe  a  well  known 
exprefîion,  catch  only  weak  infed\5,  while  the 
free  and  carnivorous  break  through  ?  Is  it  in 
the  palaces  of  the  great  that  gratitude  reigns, 
that  lawful  tribute  due  to  every  motion  made 
to  procure  our  happinefs  ?•  IsSt  there  that  the 
fervices  of  a  faithful  fubje6l,  the' labors  of  an  in- 
defatigable merchant,  the  perils  of  an  intrepid 
foldiery,  blood  llied  and  to  be  flied,  are  eftimatcd 
and  rewarded  Ï  Is  it  there  that  the  cries  of  the 
wretched  are  heard,  tears  of  the  opprefTcd  wiped 
away,  the  claims  of  truth  examined  and  granted  ? 
Is  it  in  ;he  palaces  of  thegre^t  that  benevolence 
reigns,  that  benevolence  without  which  a  man  is 
only  a  wild  beafl  ?  Is  it  there  that  the  young 
ravens  ivhicb  cry  are  heard  and  fed  ?  Pfal.  cxlvii, 
9,  Is  it  there  that  they  attend  to  the  bitter 
complaints'bf  an  indigent  man,  ready  to  die  with 
hunger,  and>who  aiks  for  no  more  than  will  juft 
keep  him  alive  ?  Are  the  palaces  of  the  great, 
feats  of  piety  and  devotion  ?  Is  it  there  that 
fchemes  are  formed  for  the  reformation  of  man- 
ners ?  Is  it  there  that  they  are  grieved  for  the 
fiction  of  Joseph)  Amos  vi.  6.  and  take  pleas^ 

ure 


284  General  Mistakes. 

tire  in  the  dust  and  stones  of  Zion  ?  Pfal.  cii.  14,  " 
Is  it  there  that  we  hear  the  praifes  of  the  Cre- 
ator,do  they  celebrate  the  compaffion  of  the  Re- 
deemer of  mankind  ? 

What  ideas  are  excUed  in  our  minds  by  the 
names  of  fiich  as  Caligula,  Nero,  Dioclelian,  De-' 
cius,  names  deteflable  in  all  ages  ?  What  ideas 
CQuld  we  excite  in  your  minds,  were  we  to 
weigh  in  a  juR  balance  the  virtues  of  fueh  heroes 
as  have  been  rendered  famous  by  the  encou)iums 
given  them  ?  You  would  be  aftonifned  to  fee 
that  theie  men,  who  have  been  called  \.\\tt  delight  s 
of  mankind  y  have  often  deferved  execration,  and 
ought  to  be  confide  red  with  horror.  But  I  pur- 
pcfïly  forbear,  and  will  not  put  in  this  lift  all 
that  ought  to  be  placed  there,  that  is  to  fay,  all 
thofe  who  have  had  fovereign  power,  except  a 
■very  few,  who,  in  comparifon,  are  next  to  none, 
and  who  are,  as  it  were,  loft  in  the  crowd  among 
the  reft.  And  yet  t-he  elevation  of  kings  makes 
their  cri^ies  more  communicable,  and  their  ex- 
amples more  contagious  ;  their  fins  become  a 
filthy  vapor  infedling  the  air,  and  ftiedding  their 
malignant  influence  all  over  our  cities  and  fami- 
lies, lightning,  and  thundering,  and  difturbing 
the  world.  Accordingly,  you  fee  in  general, 
that  what  the  king  is  in  his  kingdom,  the  gov- 
ernor is  in  his  province  ;  what  the  governor  is 
in  his  province,  the  nobleman  is  in  his  domain  ; 
what  the  nobleman  is  in  his  domain,  the  mafter 
is  in  his  family.  The  multitude  is  a  bad  guide, 
mankind  are  a  dangerous  model,  confidered  in 
regard  to  the  matters  who  govern  them. 

2.  Gonfider*  the  many  In  regard  to  divers  pro» 
fessions.  What  is  the  profeifton  of  a  foldier, 
particularly  of  an  officer  of  rank  in  the  army  ?  It 
is  to  defend  fociety,  to  maintain  religion,  to  be  a 
parent  to  the  foldiery,  to  bridle  the  licLUtiouf- 
refs  of  arms,  to  oppofe  power  againft  injuftice, 
to  deriv^^om   all  the   views   of  death,  that  liç 

open 


General  Mistakes»  2^5 

open  before  him,  motives  to  prepare  his  accounts 
to  produce  before  his  judge.  But  what  is  the 
conduit  of  a  foldier  ?  Is  it  not  to  brave  focle- 
ty  ?  Is  it  Hot  to  trample  upon  religion  ?  Is  it 
not  to  fet  examples  of  debauchery,  îtcéntiour» 
nefs,  and  vengeance  ?  Is  it  no:'  to  let  out  hi^ 
abilities,  and  to  facrifice  his  life  to  the  rnofl  am"- 
bitious  defigns,  and  to  the  m  oft  bloody  enterprlzes 
of  princes  ?  Is  it  not  to  accuïlom  himfelf  to 
ideas  of  death  and  judgment,  till  he  laughs  at 
both,  to  ftiBe  all  remorfe,  and  to  extirpate  all  the 
fears,  which  fuch  objcd?  natiJrallv  excite  in  thfe 
confciences  of  other  men  ? 

What  is  the  profefiTion  of  a  judge  ?  It  is  to 
have  no  regard  to  the  appearances  of  men,  it  i« 
to  be  afifable  to  ail,  who  appeal  to  authority,  to 
ûudy  with  application  the  nature  of  a  caufe, 
which  he  is  obliged  to  decide,  it  is  patiently  to 
go  through  the  moft  fatiguing  details  of  proofs 
and  objections.  But  what  is  often  the  condu(St 
cf  a  judge  ?  Is  it  not  to  be  ftruck  with  the  ex- 
terior différence  of  two  parties  appearing  before 
him?  Is  it  not  to  be  inacceffible  to  the  poor,  to 
invent  cruel  referves,  and  intolerable  dehys  2  Ts 
it  not  to  grovel  in  ignorance,  and  to  hate  ftudy 
and  labor  ? 

What  is  the  profelHon  of  a  man  learned  in  the 
law  ?  It  is  to  devote  his  fervice  only  to  truth 
and  juRice,  to  plead  only  a  good  caufe,  to  affift 
even  thofe,  who  cannot  reward  his  labors.  Wh»t 
is  the  conduit  of  counfel  •*  Is  it  not  to  fupport 
both  the  true  and  the  falfe,  and  to  maintain  by 
turns  both  juftice  and  iniquity  ?  Is  it  not  to 
adjuft  his  efforts  to  his  own  glory,  or  to  his  cli- 
ent's ability  to  pay  ? 

What  is  the  profeffion  of  a  merchant  ?  It  is 
to  deteft  fdlfe  weights  and  meafures,  to  pay  hfs 
dues,  and  never  to  found  his  fortune  on  falf^- 
hood,  fraud,  and  perjury.  But  what  is  the  con- 
duit of  a  merchant  ?  Is  it  not  to  ufe  falfe 
Z  weights 


At6  General  Mistakes, 

weights  anci  meafures  ?  Is  it  not  to  cheat  the 
ilate  of  its  dues  ?  Is  it  not  to  indulge  an  infa- 
tiable  avidity  ?  Is  it  not  to  enrich  himfelf  by 
telling  untruths,  by  praclifing  frauds,    by  taking 

-falfc  oaths  ? 

What  is  the  profeffion  of  a  roinrfler  ?  It  is 
to  devote  himfelf   wholly  to    troth  and  virtue,  to 

.  iet  the  whole  church  an  example,  to  fearch  into 
hofpitals,  and  couages,  to  relieve  the  miferies  of 
the  Tick  and  the  poor  ;   it  is    to  determine  himfelf 

-in  his  fludies,  not  by  what  will  acquire  him  repu- 
tation for -learning  and  eloqueuce,  but  by  what 
•will  be  moft  ufeful  to  the  people,  over  whom  he 
is  fet  ;  it  is  to  regulate  his  choice  of  lubjeûb,  not 
by  what  will  make  himfelf  (hine,  but  by  what 
vill  moft  benefit  the  people  among  whom  he  ex- 
crcifes  his  miniflry  ;  it  is  to  take;as  much  care 
«fa  dying  perfon  in  an  obfcure»  family,  lying  on 
a  bed  of  ftraw,Jo(l  in  oblivion  and  iilence,  as  of 
him,  who,  with  an  iiluftrious  ,name,    lives  araidft 

•iilver  and  gold,  and  for  whom  the  moft  magnifi- 
cent and  pompous  funeral  honors  will  be  prepar- 
ed ;  it  is  to  cry  aloiid^  to  lift  up  bis  voice  like  a 
trumpet^  and  shew  the  people  their  transgres- 
sions^  and  the  bouse  of  Israel  their  sins^  Ifa.  iviii, 

1.  Mic.  iii..  8.  and  .2  Cor.  v.  16.  it  is  to  know 
,710  man  after  tbejiesh  when  he  afcends  the  pul- 
pit, boldly  to  reprove  vice,  how  eminent  foever 
the  feat  of  it  may  be.  AVhat  is  the  ufual  con- 
du£l  of  a  minifter  ? — O  God  Î  Enter  not  into 
judgment  ivitl?  tbj  servants,  for  vJc  cannot  an- 
SKver  one  comprint  of  a   thousand!  Plal.    cxliii, 

2.  Job  ix.  S. 

3.  Gonlider  the  multitude  in  regard  to  fomc 
general  maxims,  which  they  adopt,  and  hold  as 
rules  and  approved  axioms.  Have  you  read,  in 
the  gofpel,  the  following  maxims  ?  Charity  be- 
•gins  at  home.  Youth  is  a  time  of  pleafure.  It 
is  allowable  to  kill  time.  We  fliould  not  pre- 
rteiid  to  be  faints.     Slander  is  the  fait  of  conver- 

fation. 


General  Mistakes.  2r^^ 

ration.  We  mull  do  as  other  people  do»  It  \é 
unworthy  of  a  man  ot"  honor  to  put  up  an  af- 
front, A  gentleman  ought  to  avenge  himfelf. 
Ambition  i?  the  vice  of  great  fouls.  Providecl 
we  commit  no  great  crimes,  we  fufficicntly  an-i 
fwer  our  calling.  Impurity  Is  an  intolerable 
vice  in  a  woman,  but  it  is  pardonable  in  a  man. 
It  would  be  eafy  to  enlarge  this  catalogue* 
Which  of  ihefe  maxims,  pray,  doth  riot  fap  fome 
of  the  firft  principles  of  the  religion  of  Jefus 
Chrift  ?  Yet,  which  of  thcfe  maxims  is  not  re- 
ceived in  fociety  as  a  fundamental  rule  of  ac- 
tion, which  we  (hould  be  accounted  fingular  and 
pftulant  to  condemn  ? 

4:  Confider  the  multitude  in  regard  to  certain 
actions^  on  nvbich  tbey  lavish  praise  and  ivrite 
encomiums.  We  do  not  mean  to  fpeak  at  pref- 
cm  of  fuch  crimes  as  the  depravity  of  the  world 
fomctimes  celebrates  under  the  notion  of  heroical 
aidions.  Our  reflexion  is  of  another  kind.  It 
is  pretty  clear,  that  depravity  is  general,  and  pie- 
ty in  the  poffeffion  of  a  very  few,  when  perfons 
of  fuperficial  knowledge  are  praifed  for  the  depth 
of  their  underflanding,  and  when  fuch  as  pcrforni 
very  fmall  and  inconfiderable  actions  of  virtue^ 
are  confidered  as  the  wonders  of  the  world*» 
Sometimes  I  hear  the  world  exclaim,  what  be- 
nevolence r  What  liberality  !  What  generoiV- 
ty  I  I  inquire  for  the  evidences  of  thefe  virtues, 
on  which  fuch  lavilh  encomiums  are  beftowed  ; 
I  expedt  to  find  another  St.  Paul,  who  wished 
himself  accursed  for  his  brethren^  Rom.  ix.  3.  I 
hope  to  meet  with  another  Mofes,  praying  to  be 
blotted  out  of  the  book  of  life,  rather  than  fee 
his  nation  perifh,  Exod.  xxxii.  S2.  But  no,  this 
boafl?d  gcncrofity  and  charity  is  that  of  a  maiT, 
who  distributed  to  the  poor,  on  one  folemn  occa-* 
fion,  once  in  his  life,  fuch  a  fura  of  money  as  he 
expends  every  day  in  prodigality  and  fuperfluity» 
It  is  that  of  a  nvan,  who  beftows  on  all  the  mema 

bers 


«88  General  Mistakes» 

fcers  of  Jefiis  Chrîft,  almoft  as  much  as  he  docs 
en  ihe  walls  of  a  room,  or  the  harnefs  of  a  horfe. 
I  hear  the  wprld  exclaim  in  fome  circumftancesj 
what  friendfliip  !  Whnt  tendernefs  Î  I  inquire 
for  this  tcndpr,  zealous,  g;^nerous  friend.  1  ex- 
pert to  find  fuch  an  original  as  I  have  feen  de- 
fcribed  in  books,  though  I  have  never  met  with 
fuch  An  one  in  fociety.  1  hope  at  leafl  to  fee 
one  example  of  a  friend,  faying  to  a  dying  n)an, 
iippoint  me  your  executor,  and  leave  me  your 
children  to  Ipring  up,  and  your  widow  to  provide 
^or.  But  no,  1  find  nothing  but  the  friendfhip 
of  a  man,  who,  by  improving  the  fortune  of  an- 
other, attrads  the  chief  sdvantages  to  himfeif. 
I  hear  -he  world  exclaiming  in  certain  circum- 
fiances,  \vhat  virtue  i  What  purity  I  What  a 
jnother  of  a  family  1  Again  I  look  for  the  ob- 
ject of  thefe  encomiums.  1  hope  to  fee  fuch  a 
woman  as  Solomon  imagined,  a  mother  of  a  fam- 
ily, who  makes  her  houfe  a  houfe  of  God,  and 
her  children  patterns  of  pieiy.  But  no,  I  meet 
>vith  a  woman,  who  indeed  does  not  defile  the 
nuptial  bed,  who  only  doth  not  ouilive  her  in- 
come, and  who  teaches  her  children  only  the  lit- 
tle courfe  of  domeftic  economy.  All  thefe  ac- 
tions are.  praife-worthy.  All  thefe  examples 
ought  to  be  imitated.  3'Jt  is  there  any  ground 
for  exclaiming  as  if  virtue  bad  been  carried  to 
its  higheft  pitch?.  Are  thefe  then  fuch  great 
efforts  of  religion  ?  Alas  1  My  brethren,  com- 
plete chari^O.ers  mufl  needs  be  very  fcarce  in  the 
world,  fincc  the  wprld  is  in  raptures  on  account 
of  thefe  imperfcdl  virtues  ;  there  mufl  needs  be  à 
great, dearth  of  wife  men  in  the  world,  fince  there 
i*  fu  much  bo^fting  of  one  man,  who  takes  only 
one  ftep  in  the  path  of  wifdom. 

5.  Confider  mankind  in  regard  to  certain  deci^ 
sLv.e  occasions^  which,  like  touchttones,  difcover 
their  hearts.  We  do  not  know  oùrfelves,  we 
fornî  falfe  ideas   of  ourfelves,  when   our  virtues 

liAve 


General  Mistakes,  285 

have  not  been  brought  to  the  teft.  We  Imagine^ 
wc  incline  to  be  patiert,  clement  and  charitable,, 
irv  cafes  where  we  are  not  tried,  where  neither  our 
fortune,  nor  our  reputation,  nor  our  honor,  are 
afFcfted  :  but  the  momenta  ftroke  is  aimed  at 
any  of  thefe,  the  countenance  changes,  the  brain 
ferments,  the  mouth  foams,  and  we  breathe  noth- 
ing but  hatred  and  vengeance.  Nothing  is  more 
common  among  us  than  to  talk  highly  of  juftice, 
to  deteil  and  cenfure  iniquity,  and  to  engage  our- 
felves  inviolably  to  follow  fueh  rules  of  equity  as 
are  marked  out  in- the  divine  law.  Let  any  man 
bring  an  aftion  againfV  us,  with  reafon  or  with- 
out, and  all  thefe  ideas  vanifn,  we  inflantly  be- 
come familiar  with  the  very  vices,  to  which  wc 
thought  wc  had  an  invincible  averfion.  We  dif- 
guife  our  caiifej  we  fupprefs  unfavorable  circum» 
ilances,  we  impofe  on  our  eounfel,  we  try  to  take 
even  the  judges  by  farprife,  we  pretend  to  make 
great  matters  of  this. importance  of  our  rank,  the 
worth  of  our  names,  the  credit  of  our  lamilies, 
the  tone  of  oar  voices,  and  all  thi3  we  wifh  to 
incorporate  in  our  caufe;  .  A  difintereQed  fpirit  ■ 
is  always  the  fubject  of  our  utmofl  admiration 
and  praife.  A.  generous  man  is  the  admiration  - 
of  aU  mankind,  his  noble  allions  unite  all  hearts, 
and  every  man  is  eager- to  give  fucb.  aûions  their 
dignity  and  praife:  but  no  fooner  have  we  a  lit- 
tle bufinefs  to  do,  in  which  we  have  no  kind  of  ' 
intcreft,  but  difintereftednefs  appears  odious  to  os, 
and  magnanimity  feems  to-  us  more  pri^pec  for  a 
heVo  of  a  romance  than  for  a  man  living  and  jjcI- 
ing  in  fociety,  and  generous  aillions-  appear  to  us 
mere  creatures  of  imagination.  O  !:tw  little  does 
the  multitude  deferve  confideratiou  in  regard  to 
manners  1   : 

IV,     No  more  ought  they  to  be  imitated  in  re- 
gard to  the  manner,  in  which  they  quit  theivorl-d. 
Here  I  forefee,   my    brethren,  you    will    all    fide 
with  one  another  againft  our  dod^rine,  and  thaJi.  . 
Z  2   '  we« 


2<g0  General  Miitakes. 

-we  fhall  be  obliged  to  blame  both  perfons  and 
things  about  dying  people  ;  fuch  as  are  dyieg, 
fuch  as  furround  them,  fuch  as  vifit  them  ;  in 
fl»ort,  all  arc  in  difcider  in  the  cafe  before  us. 
Almofl  every  perfon  that  dies  is  canonized.  If 
the  light  of  chriftianity  had  not  aboliOied  deifica- 
tion, we  fhould  have  filled  heaven  with  faints  and 
heroes  and  deified  fouls.  Each  houfe  of  mc-jrning 
echoes  with  the  praifes  of  the  dead,  none  of  his 
looks  towards  heaven  are  forgotten,  not  a  figb, 
not  an  ejaculation  liath  efcaped  notice.  The  fu- 
neral convoys  of  perfons  the  moft  worldly,  whofe 
hearts  had  been  the  moll  hardened  in  fin,  are  all 
littering  orations  in  praife  of  the  deadc  For  our 
parts,  my  brethren,  we,  who  have  fcen  a  great 
number  of  fick  people,  and  attended  many  in  their 
dying  hours,  we  freely  grant,  that  the  fajvation 
of  many  of  them  is  probable.  We  have  hardly 
fecn  one,  whofe  falvation  we  cjuite  defpair.  But 
how  Icldom  have  we  been  inclined  to  fay,  while 
"we  faw  fuch  people  expire  uttering  the  language 
of  the  molt  eminent  faints  in  fcripture,  Let  us  die 
the  death  of  thefe  righteous  people,  and  let  our 
last  end  he  like  iht'irs  [  Numb,  xxiii.  10. 
I  will  give  you  a  fhort  lift  of  general  miftakes  on 
this  lubjett. 

The  firft  miflake  is  this.  Moft  fick  people  are 
ingenious  to  difgoilc  the  danger  of  their  illncfs, 
JBe  not  conforjyied  to  this  world.  Whenever  a 
dangerous  illnefs  attacks  you,  be  aware  of  your 
condition,  and  let  each  fay  to  himfelf,  I  have  not 
long  to  live,  at  leaft  this  may  be  my  laft  illnefs. 
My  brethren,  this  fuppofition  is  never  unfeafon- 
able,  we  are  in  little  danger  of  being  deceived  by 
thinking  death  at  hand,  for  the  numberlefs  acci« 
dents,  to  which  we  are  cxpofed,  juflify  the  thought 
—Is  there  any  thing  extravagant,  pray,  in  affirm- 
ing that  ficknefs  added  to  all  thefe  accidents 
renders  the  near  approach  of  death  highly  prob* 
able  ? 

The 


General  Mistakes»  291 

The  fécond  iniftake  is  thi?.  M  oft  dying  people 
put  off  the  regulation  of  their  temporal  wffairs  too 
long.  Be  not  conformed  to  this  ivorld.  You 
fliiould  take  patterns  from  better  models,  both  for 
rcafons  of  affe^ion,  and  reafons  of  prudence- 
True  affe£tion  to  a  family  engages  a  roan  to  pre- 
clude in  favor  of  bis  heirs  -fuch  troubles  and  di- 
vifions  as  are  the  infcparable  confcquences  of  an 
undivided  or  perplexed  eftaie.  Prudence,  too, 
will  forefee,  that  while  our  minds  are  all  occupied 
about  temporal  jiffairs,  a  Ihciifand  ideas  will  in- 
trude to  difturb  our  devotion.  Do  not  wait  till 
the  la(\  moment  to  fettle  your  affairs,  to  make 
your  will,  to  difpofe  of  your  family,  and  be  not 
fo  weak  as  to  i-Ht^gine  that  the  drfchaitge  of  thefe 
neceflary  duties  will  hafîen  your  death.  Employ 
yonrfelves  wholly  about  the  ftate  of  your  fouls, 
and  let  each  fay  to  himfelf,  fince  1  have  been  in 
the  world  I  have  hardly  devoted  one  whole  day 
to  devotion  :  ft  nee  I  have  been  a  member  of 
the  church,  I  have  been  exercifcd  about  aifairs 
which  intereft  the  whole  fociety  :  but  now  that 
I  am  come  to  the  end  of  my  life,  now  I  am  paff- 
ing  oHt  of  this  world,  now  that  I  am  going" 
where  I  fhall  have  no  more  portion  for  ever  m 
any  thing  that  is  done  under  the  sun,  difturb  me 
no  more,  ye  worldly  ideas  ;  thou  fashion  of  this 
world  passing  aiuajfy  appear  no  more  in  my  light  ; 
ye  wild ybw/5,  interrupt  my  facrifice  no  more. 

The  third  miftake  is  this.  Moft  dying  people 
delay  fending  for  their  minifters  till  the  laft  mo- 
ment. They  would  have  us  do  violence  to  the 
hws  of  nature,  they  fet  us  to  exhort  trunks,  to 
inftrucl  carcafes,  to  prepare  flcin  and  bones  for 
eternity.  Be  not  conformed  to  ihis  nvorld*  Why 
(hould  ye  delay  ?  Is  there  any  thing  odious  in 
our  miniftry  ?  We  do  not  bring  death  along' 
with  us,  we  do  not  haften  its  approach  :  if  we 
denounce  the  judgments  of  God  agairtt  you,  it 
is  not  wiih  a   dcfign  to    terrify  you,  but  to  free 

you 


292  General  Mistakes. 

you  from  them,  and  to  pull  ji ou  out  of  the  Jire^ 
Jude23. 

To  thefe  I  add  a  fourth  miftake.  Mofl  dying 
people  think  it  a  duty  to  tell  their  paflors  ot  ex- 
cellent fen' inients,  which  indeed  they  have  not, 
and  they  are  afraid  to  difcover  their  dcfeds. 
When  death  makes  his  formidable  appearance 
before  them,  they  think  religion  requires  theqa 
to  fay,  they  are  ^iiite  willing  to  die»  We  desire, 
fay  they,  fo  Jf/j.flrf,  when,  alas  1  all  their  dtiires 
are- to  make  a  tabernacle  in  the  world,  for  it  is 
goodyXhej  think,,  to  àe  there»  ,  They  tremble  at 
.  the  coming  of  :  Chrili,  and  yet  they  cry,  CûjmCj 
.Lord  yesusycome  quickly, .  Ah!  Be, not  conform" 
ed  to  this  ^vorldy  optn  thy  heaci  that  it  may  be 
known,  difcover  the  maladies  of-.thy  foul,  that 
■we  may  apply  fuch  remedies  as  are  proper.  Do 
not  imagiîîe  you  will  acquire  fuch  fentiments  and 
tmotions  as  faints  of  the  firft  order  had  by  talk- 
ing their  lauguage  ;  .  but  imbibe,  their  princi- 
ples in  your' mind,  and  their  .  teinpçrs  in  you,r 
heart,  before  you  make  ufc  of  their  language.  . 

The  fifth  iniûake  is  this.  .  Mofi>  dying  people 
fpe-àk;to< their  miniRers  only,  in  the  pretence  of  a 
great  number  of  attendants,  ^nd  .moll  attendants 
•interfere  in  whni  mitiifters  fay  <)n  thofe  occaJSons, 
^Be  not  conformed  to  tbis.  world.  Two  reafons 
may  convince  you  of  the  necefliiy  of  being  alone» 
The  firft  regards  the  paflor.  Surrounding  at- 
tendants divert  his  attention  from  the  fick  per- 
fon.  The  fécond  regards  the  fick  perfon  him» 
feif.  Would  it  bo  juft  or  kind  to  give  him  di- 
re(5lions  in  public  ?  What  i  would  you  have 
us,  i4i  the  prcfence  of- a  hufbandj  lay  open  the  in- 
trigues of  an  immodeft  wife,  and  endeavor  to 
bring  her  to- repent,  of  her  lafcivioufnefs  by  con- 
victing her  of  her  crimes  ?  .  Would  you  have  ;US 
reprove  the  head  of  a  family  for  the  iniquity  that 
has  difgracfd  his  long  life,  in  the  prefence  of  his 
fon  ?     Would  you  have  us  exhort  a  dying  mau 

to 


General  Mistakes^  293 

to  make  reftitotion  of  his  ill-gotten  wtalth,  in 
the  preCence  of  an  hungry  heir,  who  already 
gluts  his  eyes,  and  fatiates  his  foul  with  hopes  of 
fucceffion  ?  Wete  we  cafuifts  after  the  RcmaA 
falhlon,  did  we  compel  confciences  to  reveal  fe- 
crets  to  us,  which  ought  to  be  confeffed  to  God 
alone,  did  we  interfere  with  your  families  and 
properties,  there  would  be  fome  ground  for  your 
fcruples  s  but  while  we  defire  nothing  but  to 
exonerate  your  confciences,  and  to  awaken  your 
foals  to  a  fenfe  of  danger,  before  you  be  plunged 
into  an  abyfs  of  eternal  mifery,  refpeft  our  con- 
duo,  and  condefcend  to  fubmit  to  our  inftruilion. 
To  thcfe  I  add  one  miftake  more.  Moft  dy- 
ing people  truft  too  much  to  their  rainiftcrs,  and 
take  too  little  pains  themfelves  to  form  fuch  dif- 
pofitions  as  a  dying  bed  requires.  £e  not  con- 
formed to  ibis  world»  It  is  not  enough  to  have 
external  help  to  die  well,  we  ourfelves  muft  con- 
Cur  in  this  great  work,  we  muft,  by  profound 
tneditatton,  by  frequent  reflexions,  and  by  fer- 
vent prayers,  fupport  ourfelves  under  this  laft  at- 
tack, and  thus  put  the  hft  hand  to  the  work  of 
©ur  falvation.  It  is  true,  the  infirmities  of  your 
bodies  will  alFeft  your  minds,  and  will  often  in- 
terrupt your  religious  excrcifes  ;  but  no  matter*, 
God  doth  not  require  of  a  dying  perfon  connect- 
ed meditations,  accurate  reflexions,  precife  and 
formal  prayers,  for  one  figh,  one  tear,  one  ejacu- 
lation of  your  foul  to  God,  one  ferious  with  rif- 
ing  from  the  bottom  of  your  heart  will  be  highly 
éfteemed  by  the  Lord,  and  will  draw  down  neW 
favors  upon  you. 

To  conclude.  The  multitude  is  a  bad  guide 
in  regard  to  faith,  in  regard  to  manners,  and  in 
regard  to  departing  out  of  this  life.  A  man  who 
defues  to  be  faved,  fhould  he  always  upon  his 
guard,  left  he  (hould  be  rolled  down  the  torrent  t 
he  ought  to  compile  in  h>s  cloiet,  or  rather  in  his 
confcience,  a  religion  apart,  fuch   as  is,  not  that 

of 


2:9^ 


General'  Mistake  So 


of  the  children  of  the  world,"  but  'that  of  the  dif- 
ciples  of  Avifdom.  Be  r.(M  conformed  to  tbi9- 
xuorld. 

I  finifli  w4th  Itv©,  re^irftians.  '  I  addrefs  the 
firft  to  thoffe,^  who  derive  fr^n)  this  difcourfe  no 
confequences  to  direcSt  their  anions  :  and  the 
fécond  to  fdch  as  refer  it  to  its  true  defign, 

Firft.  1  addrefs  niyfeif  to.  you  who  do  no6 
draw  any>  confequences  from  this  difcourfe  to 
regulate youraftions. .  You  have  feem  a  portrait 
of  the  multitude*.  I  fuppofe  you  acknowledge 
the  likenefs,  awd  acquiefce  in  the  judgment  we 
have  made.  It  feems,  too  many  proofs  and  dem- 
onftratîons  «ftablifh  this  propoiuiony  the  multi- 
tude is  a  bad  guide.  N-ow  you  nvay  follcv- 
which  example^you  picafe.  You  may  make  you? 
■choice  between  the  maxims  of  Jefus  Chrift  and 
thC' maxims  of  the  world.  But  we  have  a  right 
tOTcquire  one.>  thitig.  of  .  youv  which  you  cannot 
Tcfufe  us  without  inj-ufticef  that  is,  that  grant- 
ing the  geniiis  of  thf  nwltituee,  when  you  are 
told  you  are^defti'oying  yourfelve^,  you  do  not 
•pretend  to  h«ve  refuted  us  by  replying,  we  con- 
du£l  ourfelres  aa  the  world  does,  and  every  body- 
does  what  you;  condemn  in  us»  Thanks  be  to 
God-,-yourpropofition.is-no^,ftriftly^true  I. Thank» 
be  to  GodytheTule  hath  fcwiie.  exceptions  Î  There 
»re  manyrregenerate- folios,  hidden  perhaps  from 
the  eyes  of  men,  but  viable  to  God.  There  arc 
even  feme  faints,-  who  ihine  in  the  fight  of  the 
■whole  world,  and  who,  to  ufe  the  exprefïîon  of 
Jefus  Chrift,  are  a  city  s^t  on  a  hill.  Matt,  v. 
14.:  What  then,  you  never  caft  your  eyes  oa 
the  moft  lUuftrious  objeûs  in  this  world  i  D« 
you  reckon  for  nothinjd^  w-hat  alone  merrts-  obfer- 
vation  in<  fociet/j  and  w4j*t  ronftitutes  the  trut 
glory  of  it  ?  Have  you  no  value  for  men,  for 
whtrfe  fake  the  world  fubfifts,  and  fociety  is.  pre*, 
ferved  ? 

However)  your  propofuion  is  indifputable  in  a 

general 


'General  Mistakes,  ^  2:§^ 

-general  fenfe,  and  we  are  obliged  to  alio \v-  it,  for 
our  whole  difcouiTe  tends  to  elucidate  and  eflab- 
iiih  the  jpoint.  Alledge  this  propofition,  but  do 
not  alledge  it  for  the  purpofe  of  oppofing  the 
cenfures  you  have  heard,  or  of  gettifig  rid  of  our 
reproofs,'  By  anfwering  in  this  manner,  you  give 
us  an  advantage  over  you,,  you  lay  a  foundation 
•which  you  mean  to  deOiroy,  you  do  not  furniQi 
yourfelves  with  a  fhicld  againft  your  mi'nifters, 
but  you  yourfelves  fupply  •  them  wiih  arms  to 
■wound  and  dcftroy  you.  "Why  do  we  declaim 
againft  your  conduft  ?  V/hat  do  we-mean  when 
•we  reprove  your  way  ©f  living,  except  to  con- 
vince you  that  it  is  not  anfwerable  to  the  chrif- 
tian  character  which  you  bear?  What  do  we 
inean,  except  t'hat -you  break  the  vows  made  for 
you  in  your  baptifm,  and  which  you  yourfelves 
have  often  ratified  at  the  Lord's  table  ?  What, 
in  one  word,  except  that  you  do  not  obey  the  laws 
of  the  gofpel  ?  But  what  can  you  advance 
more  proper  to  ftrengthen  the  teftimony,  which 
we  bear  againftyou,  than  that  which  you  advance 
to  weaken  it,  that  is,  that  you  live  as  the  world 
lives. 

AH  the  world,  fay  you,  conduid  tKemfèlves  as 
"we  do,  and  every  body  does  what  you  cenfure  us 
for  doing.  But  allthe-world  ccndudl  themfelve-s 
badly,  all  the  world  violate  the  fpirit  of  religion, 
all  the  world  attack  the  maxims  of  Jefus  Ohrift, 
all  the  world  run  in  the  b^oad  road  of  perdition, 
■all  the  world  are  deftroying  themfclves,  and  the 
apoftle  exhorts  us  not  to  take  the  world  for  an 
•example. 

Secondly.  I  addrefs  myfelf  to  you,  who  fin« 
cerely  dcfire  to  apply  this  difcourfe  to  its  true 
defiign.  I  grant,  the  road  opened  to  you  is  dif- 
-^ficuU.  To  refift  the  torrent,  to  brave  the  multi- 
tude, to  fee  one's  fdf  like  Elijah  alone  on  the 
^Lord's  fide,  and,  in  this  general  apoftacy,  in 
which  a  chriftian  fo  often  finds  himfelf,  when  he 

délires 


Q^G  General  Mistakes, 

deQres  to  facvifice  all  to  his  duty,  to  recolleft 
in  nives  of  atlschment  to  it,  this  is  one  of  the 
iioblcft  eflorts  of  chriftian  /heroifm. 

However,  after  all,  it  would  argue  great  pu- 
erility to  magnify  our  ideas  of  th«  crowd,  the 
many,  the  multitude  ;  it  would  be  childiih  to  be 
too  much  ftruclc  with  thefe  ideas,  every  body 
thinks,  in  this  manner,  all  the  world  ads  thus. 
I  affirm,  that  truth  and  virtue  have  more  parti- 
zans  than  ^rror  and  vice,  and  God  hath  more 
difciples  than  Satan.  What  do  you  Call  the 
crowd,  the  many,  the  multitude  ?  What  do  you 
mean  by  all  the  world  ?  What  -i  \ou  and  your 
companions,  your  family,  your  acquaintances, 
your  fellow  citizens,  the  inhabitants  of  this  globe, 
to  which  the  Creator  hath  confined  you  ;  is  this 
Mvhat  you  call  all  the  world  Ï  What  littlenels 
of  ideas  .Î  Gaft  your  eyes  on  that  little  mole 
hill,  occupied  by  a  few  thoufands  of  ants,  lend 
them  intelligence,  propofe  to  one  of  thefe  infcfla 
other  maxims  than  thofe  of  his  fellowi,  exhort 
him  to  have  a  little  more  ambition,  than  to  occu- 
py a  tiny  imperceptible  fpace  upon  that  mole 
hill  ;  animate  him  to  form  projets  ruore  noble 
than  that  of  collcding  a  few  grains  of  corn,  and 
then  put  into  the  mouth  of  this  little  emmet  the 
fame  pretext  that  you  make  ufe  of  to  us  ;  1  (hall 
be  alone,  all  the  world  condu<^  themfelves  in  an- 
other manner.  Would  you  not  pity  this  infedl  ? 
Would  not  he  appear  more  contemptible  to  you 
for  his  mean  and  fpiritlefs  ideas,  than  for  the  di- 
ninutivenefs  of  hisbody  ?  Would  you  not  look 
T/ith  difdain  on  an  ant,  that  had  no  other  ambi- 
tion than  that  of  taking  for  a  model  other  infr^ls 
about  him,  and  preferring  their  approbation  be- 
fore that  of  mankind,  who  hold  a  rank  fo  high 
jn  the  fcale  of  the  world  ?  My  brethren,  give 
what  colors  you  will  to  this  imagination,  it  is 
however  certain,  thatyoj  would  form  unjuft  ideas 
of  this    infed.     An    emmet  hath    no  relation  to 

thofe 


General  Mistakes,  297 

'thoCc  beings,  which  you  propofe  to  him  for  mod- 
els. Such  ideas  of  happinefs  as  you  trace  to  him 
have  no  proportion  to  his  faculties.  Is  an  em- 
inet  capable  of  fcience,  to  be  allured  by  the  com- 
pany of  the  learned  ?  Ca»  an  ant  form  plans  of 
i'leges  and  battles,  to  render  himfelf  fenfible  of 
that  glory,  which  exploits  of  war  acquire,  and  for 
which  the  heroes  of  the  world  facrifice  their, 
repofe  and  their  lives  ? 

It  is  you,  who  have  that  meannefs  of  foul, 
which  you  juft  now  pitied  in  an  ant.  You  inhab» 
it  cities  and  provinces,  which,  compared  with  the 
reft  of  the  wor^d,  refemble  the  fiac  of  mole  hills  ; 
the  whole  globe  itfelf  is  nothing  in  compariftyn 
of  the  immenftr  fpaces,  in  which  other  works  of 
the  Creator  aj;e  lodged.  You  creep  on- earth  with 
a  handful  of  men  much  lefs  in  comparifon  with 
the  thoufand  thoufands  of  other  intelligences 
than  an  ant  hill  is  in  comparifon  of  mankindo 
You  have  intimate  relations  to  thefe  intelligen- 
ces ;  you,  like  them,  are  capable  of  great  and 
noble  fundions  ;  like  them,  you  are  capable  of 
knowledge  ;  like  them,  you  arc  able  to  know  the 
Supreme  Being  ;  you  can  love  like  them  ;  you 
can  form  tender  and  delicate  connections  as  they 
can  ;  and  like  them,  you  arc  deflined  to  eternal 
duration  and  felicity. 

Do  not  fay  then,  I  (hall  be  alone,  nobody  lives 
as  you  would  have  me  live.  They  arc  the  men, 
who  furround  you,  that  are  nobody  in  comparifon 
of  the  intelligences,  whom  I  propofe  to  you  for 
examples.  It  ill  fuits  infignificant  men  to  con- 
fider  themfelves  alone  as  in  the  centre  of  divine 
benevolence,  and  as  the  only  fubjefts  of  t  mon- 
arch, who  reigneth  over  all  exiftence.  He  sit- 
teth  upon  the  circle  of  the  earthy  whence  the  iw- 
habitants  appear  to  him  as  grasshoppers.  He 
bringeth  princes  to  nothings  he  consideretb  the 
judges  of  the  earth  as  vanity.  He  shall  blow 
upon  them  and  they  shall  xvither,  and  the  wbirU 
A   %  tvind 


S^: 


Général  Mîsiaiies» 


vfind  shàii  taàé  them  at9,aj   like  stuhbîey    Ifa^- 

But  ye^  celeHtal  intelligence?,  ferapbîms  burn* 
iiig  witb  love,  ange îs  mighty  in  i^rength,  meffen- 
gers  of  th©  divi-ne  wiîlj  fpirits  rapid  as  the  wind,, 
and  penetrating  as  Êr«,  ye  redeemed  of  all  wa- 
t  ions  J  all  kindrtd^  all  pecplcy  all  tongues^  Rev. 
▼.9.  ye  make  the  crowd,  ye  £11  the  court  of  the 
fovercign  of  the  world  ;  and^  when  we  refufe  to 
conform  ourfelves  to  this  worlds  we  imitate  you  j 
and  when  the  flarves  of  the  world  fliall  be  loaded 
with  chains  of  darknefs,  we  fttall  ihare  w'nh  you 
the  river  of  pleasures,  at  the  right  band  of  that 
God,  whom  you  fcrve,  and  to  whofe  fervice  we, 
like  you,  devote  ourfelves*  God  grant  us  this 
grace  Î  To  hi»  b«  honor  and  glory  for  ever» 
Amen* 


^i}m